Sie sind auf Seite 1von 257

INDO-EUROPEAN COLLECTIONS Firth, Raymond W. (ed.) 1956. Two Studies of Kinship in London. London: University of London/Athlone Press.

(London School of Economics. Monographs on Social Anthropology 15.) Reviews: Huber 1957; Banton 1958; Orlans 1958; Schneider 1958. Gullestad, Marianne, and Martine Segalen. (eds.) 1995. La Famille en Europe: Parent et Perptuation Familiale. Paris: Editions La Dcouverte. Review: Fonseca 1997. Kuklo, Cezary. (ed.) 1992. Les Modles Familiaux en Europe aux XVIe-XVIIIe Sicles. Bialystok, Poland: Podlaska. Wall, Richard, Jean Robin, and Peter Laslett (eds.) 1983. Family Forms in Historic Europe. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Reviews: Badcock 1984; Gordon M. 1984; Palliser 1984; Wheaton 1984. White, Stephen D. 2005. Re-Thinking Kinship and Feudalism in Early Medieval Europe. Aldershot: Ashgate Press. Review: Reynolds 2007. GENERAL Adamantidis, Aliki. 2003. Das -ter in Schwester und seine etymologische Bedeutung. Seminararbeit. Deutsches Seminar der Universitt Zrich. http://www.hausarbeiten.de/faecher/hausarbeit/lin/24132.html Alderson, Arthur S., and Stephen K. Sanderson. 1991. Historic European Household Structures and the Capitalist World-Economy. Journal of Family History 16: 419-432. Allen, George. 1991. New Perspectives on European Marriage in the Nineteenth Century. Journal of Family History 16: 1-5. Anderson, Robert T. 1956. Changing Kinship in Europe. Ph.D. dissertation. University of California, Berkeley. 153 P. Anderson, Robert T. HAVE 1963. Changing Kinship in Europe. Kroeber Anthropological Society Papers 28: 1-48. Ascoli, Graziadio I.

1863a. Avus, vuka. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 12: 157-159. [On several IE kin terms.] Ascoli, Graziadio I. 1863b. , janitrices, ytaras. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 12: 239-240. [IE terms for wives of two brothers.] Ascoli, Graziadio I. 1863c. 1. , glos. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 12: 319-320. [IE terms for husbands sister.] Aufbrecht, Theodor S. 1854. The Last Results of the Germanic Researches. In Christianity and Mankind, Their Beginning and Prospects, by Christian C. J. Bunsen. Vol. 3. Pp. 65-83. London: Longman. [Pp. 72-75: The Words for Family Relations.] HAVE Augustins, Georges. 1989. Comment se Perptuer?: Devenir des Lignes et Destins des Patrimoines dans les Paysanneries Europennes. Nanterre: Socit dEthnologie. 433 P. Review: Treanton 1993; Collomp 1997. Bachofen, Johann J. 1880-1886. Antiquarische Briefe, vornemlich zur Kenntniss der ltesten Verwandtschaftsbegriffe. Bd. 1-2. Strassburg: K. J. Trbner. Reprinted in: Johann Jakob Bachofens Gesammelte Werke. Bd. 8. Basel and Stuttgart: Schwabe, 1966, with additional Aus dem Nachlass zu den Antiquarischen Briefen (pp. 417-522). [Mostly Indo-European material, with comparative notes on Oceania, North America, and Australia (from Morgans Systems).] Baldi, Philip. 1999. The Foundations of Latin. Berlin and New York: Mouton de Gruyter. [Pp. 10: basic kin terms in IE languages (table); 94: PIE kinship system as Omaha (after Friedrich 1966).] Baldi, Philip. HAVE 2001. Some Observations on Inalienable Possession in Hittite and Proto-Indo-European. In Donum Grammaticum: Studies in Latin and Celtic Linguistics in Honour of Hannah Rosn, edited by Lea Sawicki and Donna Shalev. Pp. 29-37. Leuven, etc.: Peeters. Bartoli, Matteo. 1934. Il ritmo dei tipi e e la poligamia degli Ario-europei. In Miscelnea Scientfica e Literria Dedicada ao Doutor J. Leite de Vasconcellos. Vol. 2. Pp. 229-241, Lisbona. Reprinted in: Saggi di Linguistica Spaziale, by Matteo Bartoli. Pp. 170-179. Torino: Universita di Torino, 1945. Beekes, Robert S. P. 1972. The Nominative of the Hysterodynamic Noun-Inflection. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 86: 30-63. [Pp. 38, 44-46, 61-62: basic IE kin terms in laryngealist reconstruction.] HAVE

Beekes, Robert S. P. HAVE 1975. Two Notes on PIE Stems in Dentals. In Flexion und Wortbildung. Akten der V. Fachtagung der Indogermanischen Gesellschaft, Regensburg, 9. 14. September 1973, herausgegeben von Helmut Rix. Pp. 9-14. Wiesbaden: Ludwig Reichert. [P. 13: on IE *ieneter husbands brothers wife. Beekes, Robert S. P. 1976. Uncle and Nephew. Journal of Indo-European Studies 4 (1): 43-63. Beekes, Robert S. P. HAVE 1988. Laryngeal Developments: A Survey. In Die Laryngaltheorie und die Rekonstruktion des Indogermanischen Laut- und Formensystems, herausgegeben von Alfred Bammesberger. Pp. 59-105. Heidelberg: Carl Winter. [Includes laryngeal reconstructions of IE kin terms (itemized by language).] Beekes, Robert S. P. 1992. Widow. Historische Sprachforschung 105: 171-188. HAVE

Beekes, Robert S. P. 1995. Comparative Indo-European Linguistics: An Introduction. Amsterdam and Philadelphia: John Benjamins. [P. 38: IE terms for family relationships; 264: Alb vjeherr < *sweskuro- < *swekuro-; 266: mbese < *nepti). Beekes, Robert S. P. 2002. Comment on Kullanda. Current Anthropology 43 (1): 100-101. HAVE

Benveniste, mile. HAVE 1934. Un nom indo-europen de la femme. Bulletin de la Socit de Linguistique de Paris 35: 104-106. Benveniste, mile. HAVE 1963. Expression indo-europen du mariage. In A Pedro Bosch y Gimpera en el Septuagsimo Aniversario de su Nacimiento. Pp. 49-52. Mxico: Instituto Nacional de Antropologia e Historia. Benveniste, mile. 1965. Termes de parent dans les langues indo-europennes. LHomme 5 (3-4): 5-16. Benveniste, mile 1969. Le Vocabulaire des Institutions Indo-Europennes. Vol. 1: conomie, Parent, Socit. Vol. 2: Pouvoir, Droit, Religion. Paris: Les ditions de Minuit. Reviews: Emmerick 1970; Ernout 1970; Dressler 1971; Davies 1972; Morpurgo Davies 1972; Szemernyi 1972. Bernhft, Franz. 1884. Germanische und moderne Rechtsideen im rezipierten rmischen Recht. II. Der Verwandtschaftsbegriff. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Rechtswissenschaft 4: 227265. Bernhft, Franz. 1885. Zur Geschichte des Europischen Familienrechts. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Rechtswissenschaft 8: 29-89.

Bernhft, Franz. 1886. Prinzipien des Europischen Familienrechts. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Rechtswissenschaft 9: 392-444. Blaek, Vclav. HAVE 2001. Indo-European Kinship Terms in *-Hter. In Grammaticus: Studia Linguistica Adolfo Erharto Quinque et Septuagenario Oblata, edited by Adolf Erhart, Ondrej Sefck and Bohumil Vykypel. Pp. 24-33. Brno: Masarykova Univerzita v Brne. Bloomfield, Maurice. 1891. On Adaptation of Suffixes in Congeneric Classes of Substantives. American Journal of Philology 12 (1): 1-29. [Pp. 23-24: mutual contamination among IE kin terms.] HAVE Bhtlingk, Otto von. 1851. ber die Sprache der Jakuten. St. Petersburg: Buchdruckerei der Kaiserlichen Akademie der Wissenschaften. [Pp. VII, XI: on IE kin terms in -ter.] HAVE Bomhard, Allan. 1976. The Placing of Anatolian Languages. Orbis 25 (2): 199-239. [Pp. 205, 206, 211, 231: kin terms in Anatolian, Armenian and IE.] Bonfante, Giuliano. 1929. I nomi greci in -. Studi Italiani di Filologia Classica 7: 203-223. [P. 217, etc. on IE *swekuros, *gelu-, *snus, *patrs.] HAVE Bonfante, Giuliano. 1985. La parola indoeuropea per padre. Rendiconti: Atti dellAccademia Nazionale dei Lincei. Classe di Scienze Morali, Storiche e Filologiche 39: 259-260. Bopp, Franz. 1847. Die Kaukasischen Glieder des Indoeuropischen Sprachstamms. Berlin: Dmmler. [Pp. 70-71: some kin terms in Ossetian, Persian and main IE languages.] Bremmer, Jan. 1976. Avunculate and Fosterage. Journal of Indo-European Studies 4: 65-78. Brugmann, Karl. HAVE 1903-1904. Beitrge zur griechischen, germanischen und slavischen Wortforschung. 2. Homerisch  Indogermanicshe Forschungen 15: 93-97. [On a Greek term for earth and IE terms for grandparents.] Buck, Carl D. 1949. A Dictionary of Selected Synonyms in the Principal Indoeuropean Languages. Chicago: University of Chicago Press. [Pp. 93-134: Family Relationship.] Budimir, Milan. 1951. Problem bukve i protoslovenske domovine. Rad Jugoslavenske Akademije Znanosti i Umjetnosti, Odjel za Filologiju 1: 5-32. [Pp. 12-13: on matriarchate in PIE society.] HAVE

Buti, GianGabriella. 1987. The Family and the Tribe: Remarks on Indo-European Social Setting. In Studien zum Indogermanischen Wortschatz, herausgegeben von Wolfgang Meid. Pp. 9-20. Innsbruck: Institut fr Sprachwissenschaft der Universitt Innsbruck. Campanile, Enrico. 1998. The Indo-Europeans: Origins and Culture. In Indo-European Languages, edited by Anna G. Ramat and Paolo Ramat. Pp. 1-24. London and New York: Rotledge. [Pp. 1013: terms for family and marriage, with a critique of Szemernyi.] Carruba, Onofrio. HAVE 1995. Die Verwandtschaftsnamen auf -ter des Indogermanischen. In Analecta Indoeuropaea Cracoviensis, vol. 2. Kuryowicz Memorial Volume, pt. 1, edited by Wojciech Smoczyski. Pp. 143-158. Cracow: Universitas. Carruba, Onofrio. 1991. Searching for Woman in Anatolian and Indo-European. In Perspectives on IndoEuropean Language, Culture and Religion: Studies in Honor of Edgar C. Polom. Vol. 1. Pp. 155-181. McLean, VA: Institute for the Study of Man. Carruba, Onofrio. HAVE 1998. Il lessico indoeuropeo della famiglia. In Ars Linguistica. Studi offerti da colleghi e amici a Paolo Ramat in occasione del suo 60 compleanno, a cura di Giuliano Bernini, Pierluigi L.Cuzzolin e Piera Molinelli. Pp. 129-139. Roma: Bulzoni. Clarke, David L. 1972. A Provisional Model of an Iron Age Society and Its Settlement System. In Models in Archaeology, edited by David L. Clarke. Pp. 801-869. London: Metuen. [A patrilineal, patrilocal model of an early Indo-European society based on archaeological data and ethnographic analogies.] Cuisenier, Jean, Martine Segalen, et Michel de Virville. 1970. Pour ltude de la parent dans les socits europennes. Le programme dordinateur ARCHIV. LHomme 10 (3): 27-74. Cuny, A. HAVE 1912. Notes de phontique historique: Indo-europen et smitique. Revue de Phontique 12: 101-132. [P. 113, 120: on laryngeals in some IE kin terms, including the importance of Tocharian.] Delbrck, Berthold. 1870. Die Namen der Eltern im Indoiranischen und im Gothischen. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 19: 241-247. Delbrck, Berthold. 1889. Die Indogermanischen Verwandtschaftsnamen. Ein Beitrag zur Vergleichende Altertumskunde. Abhandlungen der Philologisch-Historischen Classe der Kniglichen Schsischen Gesellschaft der Wissenschaften 11 (5): 379-606. Leipzig: S. Hirzel. Review: Wheeler 1890. Delbrck, Berthold. 1895. Das Mutterrecht bei den Indogermanen. Preussische Jahrbcher 79: 14-27.

Delille, Grard. 2000. Echanges matrimoniaux entre lignes alternes et systme europen de lalliance: Un premier approche. In En Substances: Textes pour Franoise Hritier, edit par JeanLuc Jamard, Emmanuel Terray and Margarita Xanthakou. Pp. 219-252. Paris. Deroy, Louis. HAVE 1962. Le nom de la fille et la structure fonctionnelle de la socit indo-europenne. In II. Fachtagung fr Indogermanische und Allgemeine Sprachwissenschaft, Innsbruck, 10.15. Oktober 1961. Pp. 159-162. Innsbruck: Sprachwissenschaftliche Institut der Leopold-Franzans-Universitt. Devoto, Giacomo. HAVE 1931. Preistoria di lingue e di cultura. La Cultura 10: 1-14. Milano and Roma. [Pp. 1114: on kin terms.] Devoto, Giacomo. HAVE 1970. Lingua e societ nellantichit indeuropea. In Linguaggi nella Societ e nella Tecnica. Pp. 29-37. Milano: Edizioni di Comunit. [Largely on kin terms.] Devoto, Giacomo. HAVE 1975. Unit e variet nella storia dellindeuropeismo. In Mlanges Linguistiques offerts mile Benveniste. Pp. 107-115. Louvain: Peeters. [Pp. 113-115: on IE kin terms forwife, sister and brother.] Donati, Pierpaolo. 1997. Family Associations in Europe: A General Outlook and Typology. Associations: Journal for Social and Legal Theory 1 (2): 235-255. Eder, Birgit. 2004. Ausgewhlte Verwandtschaftsbezeichnungen in den Sprachen Europas, untersucht anhand der Datensammlungen des Atlas Linguarum Europae. Frankfurt am Main and Oxford: Peter Lang. 346 P. (Ph.D. dissertation. Universitt Bamberg, 2003). Edgerton, Franklin. HAVE 1910. Origin and Development of the Elliptic Dual and of Dvandva Compounds. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 43: 110-120. Eichner, Heiner. 1978. Die urindogermanische Wurzel *H2reu hell machen. Die Sprache 24 (2): 144162. [P. 145, n. 11: two IE roots for grandfather h2auh2- and h2uh2o-.] Ellis, J. HAVE 1951. A Further Note on the Soviet Linguistics Controversy. Soviet Studies 3 (2): 172174. [P. 173: on a Marrian treatment of the origin of IE *mtr mother as derived from the combination of ber and sal.] Ellison, Ann B. 1981. Towards a Socioeconomic Model for the Middle Bronze Age in Southern England. In Patterns of the Past: Studies in Honour of David Clarke, edited by Ian Hodder, Glynn Isaac and Norman Hammond. Pp. 413-438. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. [A patrilineal, patrilocal model of the early Indo-European society.]

Feist, Sigmund. 1913. Kultur Ausbreitung und Herkunft der Indogermanen. Berlin: Weidmannsche Buchhandlung. [Pp. 98-123: Individual, Family, Clan, Nation.] Review: Bloomfield 1914. Fick, August. 1873. Die Ehemalige Spracheinheit der Indogermanen Europas. Eine Sprachgeschichtliche Untersuchung. Gttingen: Vandenhoeck & Ruprecht. [Pp. 262-292: Gemeinsam europischer Wortschatz. Includes IE kin terms and old European family life.] HAVE Fine, Agns. 1994. Parrains, Marraines: La Parent Spirituelle en Europe. Paris: Fayard. Reviews: Collard 1995; Lynch 1995; Peden 1996. Flajhans, V. 1941. Z eci naich dti. Listy Filologick 68: 364-374. [Nursery kin terms in IE languages.] Fortson, Benjamin W. 2004. Indo-European Language and Culture: An Introduction. Oxford: Blackwell. [Pp. 18-19, 112, 178-179: IE kinship and terms.] Fortunato, Laura, Clare Holden, and Ruth Mace. HAVE 2006. From Bridewealth to Dowry? A Bayesian Estimation of Ancestral States of Marriage Transfers in Indo-European Groups. Human Nature 17 (4): 355-376. Fourbee, Louanna. HAVE 1993. The Problem of Proto-Indo-European *snuss Daughter-In-Law. In Horizons and Styles: Studies in Early Art and Archaeology in Honour of Professor Homer L. Thomas, edited by Paul strm. n. p. Jonsered: Paul strms Frlag. Fowler, Frank H. 1896. The Negatives of the Indo-European Languages. Chicago: University of Chicago Press. [Pp. 3-4: on IE *nept grandson, descendant.] HAVE Frnkel, Ernst. HAVE 1923. Zur baltoslavischen Grammatik I. 2) Zu den Ausdrcken fr Ehegatten und Heirat in verschiedenen idg. Sprachen. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 51: 247249. Frnkel, Ernst. 1927. Miscellen. 4. Zu prkr. pali dhta, *dhta. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 54: 300-301. [Diminutive forms of IE kin terms.] HAVE

Frnkel, Ernst. 1935. Namenwesen. In Paulys Real-Encyclopdie der Classischen Altertumskunde, herausgegeben von Wilhelm Kroll. T. 16 (2). Pp. 1611-1670. Stuttgart: J. B. Metzler. [P. 1635: on short forms of IE kin terms; 1669: Lat name Aulus possibly as diminutive of avus grandfather.]

Friedrich, Paul. 1966. Proto-Indo-European Kinship. Ethnology 5 (1): 1-36.

HAVE

Reprinted in: Language, Context, and the Imagination, by Paul W. Friedrich. Pp. 201252. Stanford: Stanford University Press. Friedrich, Paul. 2003. Reconstruction: Semantic Reconstruction. In International Encyclopedia of Linguistics, edited by William J. Frawley. 2d edition. Vol. 3. Pp. 442-448. New York: Oxford University Press. [P. 444: on IE *bhrter brother.] Froehde, F. 1863. Sodes. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 12: 158-159. [IE kin and social terms in swe-.] Galton, Herbert. HAVE 1957. The Indo-European Kinship Terminology. Zeitschrift fr Ethnologie 82: 121-138. Gamkrelidze, Tamaz V., and Vyacheslav V. Ivanov. 1984. Indoevropeiskii yazyk i indoevropeizy. T. 1-2. Tbilisi: Izdatelstvo Tbilisskogo Universiteta. [T. 2, pp. 755-775: IE kin terminology and social organization; 942: IE *gloos husbands sister as borrowed into Uralic.] Gamkrelidze, Thomas V., and Vjaeslav V. Ivanov. 1995. Indo-European and the Indo-Europeans: A Reconstruction and Historical Analysis of a Proto-Language and a Proto-Culture. Pt. I. The Text. Berlin and New York: Mouton de Gruyter. Pp. 658-677: kinship terminology; 802, 819-820, 834: kin term borowings into Uralic languages.] Reviews: Justus 1997; Melchert 1997. Ghurye, J. S. 1955. Family and Kin in Indo-European Culture. Bombay and New York: Oxford University Press, Indian Branch. Reviews: Edmonson 1958; Homans 1958. Glies, Eugene. 1962. Favism, Sex-Linkage, and the Indo-European Kinship System. Southwestern Journal of Anthropology 18 (3): 286-290. Goidnich, P. G. HAVE 1938. Il suffisso di pater, mater e simm. e la funzione primitive generale del suffiso indoeuropeo -tero-. In Scriti in Onore di Alfredo Trombetti. Pp. 215-224. Milano: Ulrico Hoepli Editore. Goody, Jack. 1959. Indo-European Society. Past and Present 16: 88-91. HAVE

Goody, Jack. 1969. Info-European Kinship. In Comparative Studies in Kinship, by Jack Goody. Pp. 235-239. Stanford CA: Stanford University Press. Goody, Jack.

1983. The Development of the Family and Marriage in Europe. Cambridge and New York: Cambridge University Press. Reviews: Houlbrooke 1984; Schneider J. 1984; Wemple 1984; Davis 1985; Parkin 1986a; Langlois 1989. See also Verdery 1988. Goody, Jack. 2000. The European Family: An Historico-Anthropological Essay. Malden, MA: Blackwell. Review: Shorter 2001. Gosden, Chris. 1985. Gifts and Kin in Early Iron Age Europe. Man 20 (3): 475-493. Grassmann, Hermann. 1863. 1. Ueber die Aspiraten und ihr gleichzeitiges Vorhandensein im An- und Auslaute der Wurzeln; 2. Ueber des ursprnglich Vorhandensein von Wurzeln, deren Anlaut und Auslaut eine Asoirate enthielt. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 12 (2): 81138. [Pp. 92, 126: thugater, duhita, dauhtar; 127: attestation of Skrt druhas son, druhi daughter.] Grimm, Jacob. 1848. Geschichte der Deutschen Sprache. Leipzig: Weidmann. [Vol. 1, pp. 266-273: basic kin terms as one of the proofs of IE family.] HAVE Guerreaud-Jalabert, Anita. 1989. La parent dans lEurope mdivale et moderne: propos dune synthse rcente. LHomme 29: 69-93. Guerreaud-Jalabert, Anita. 1999. Parent. In Dictionnaire Raisonn de lOccident Medievale, edit par Jacques Le Goff et Jean-Claude Schmitt. Pp. 861-876. Paris: Fayard. Hajnal, John. 1965. European Marriage Patterns in Perspective. In Population in History, edited by D. V. Glass and D. E. C. Eversley. Pp. 101-143. Chicago: Aldine. Hajnal, John. 1983. Two Kinds of Pre-Industrial Household Formation System. In Family Forms in Historic Europe, edited by Richard Wall, Jean Robin, and Peter Laslett. Pp. 65-104. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Hammerich, Louis L. 1948. Laryngeal Before Sonant. Kbenhavn: I Kommission hos Ejnar Munksgaard. (Det Kongelige Danske Videnskabernes Selskab, Historisk-filologiske Meddelelser 31 (3).) [Pp. 7-8, 16, 25, 31-32, 70: various IE kin terms involving a laryngeal.] HAVE Hamp, Eric P.

1973a. Varia. 1. Underlying and Reapplied Lautgesetze in Germanic and Keltic. riu 24: 160-163. [IE *genH- to beget.] Hamp, Eric P. 1973b. Varia. 9. teir. riu 24: 177-178. [IE *sor- woman and IE numerals.] Hamp, Eric P. HAVE 1979. Indo-European *gwen-Ha. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 93: 1-7. [The IE term for woman, wife.] Hamp, Eric P. 1984. On the Semantics of Blood. Folia Linguistica Hungarica 5: 193. Hamp, Eric P. 1988a. The Indo-European terms for marriage. In Studies in Honor of Edgar C. Polom, edited by M. A. Jazayery and W. Winter. Pp. 179-182. Berlin and Amsterdam: Mouton. Hamp, Eric P. HAVE 1988b. *sor- woman and Indo-Hittite. Journal of Indo-European Studies 16 (1-2): 121-122. Hamp, Eric P. 1992. For Flo. Anthropological Linguistics 34 (1-4, Florence M. Voegelin Memorial Volume): 15-18 [The meaning of anthropological linguistics is illustrated by examples from the IE kin terms.] Hamp, Eric P. HAVE 2007. Does Morphological Reconstruction Really Exist? Celtica 25: 65-87. [Pp. 65-67: on IE terms daughter and brother.] Hardarson, J. A. 1987. Das uridg. Wort fr Frau. Mnchener Studien zur Sprachwissenschaft 48: 115137. Havet, L. 1884. Sur des termes de droit de date ario-europenne, dsignant des personnes. Mmoires de la Socit de Linguistique de Paris 5: 415-418. [Pp. 416-318: on IE kin terms.] Heady, Patrick. HAVE 2005. Nuclear Families and Cognatic Descent: Reflections on Two Characterizations of European Kinship. In Anthropology of Europe: Teaching and Research, edited by Peter Skalnik. Pp. 67-76. Prague. Hearn, William. E. 1879. The Aryan Household, Its Structure and Development: An Introduction to Comparative Jurisprudence. London: Longmans, Green. HAVE

Hendriksen, Hans. 1941. Untersuchungen ber die Bedeutung des Hethitischen fr die Laryngaltheorie. Kbenhavn: I Kommission hos E. Munksgaard. (Det Kongelige danske videnskabernes selskab. Historisk-Filologiske Meddelelser 18 (2).) [P. 29: critique of Kurylowiczs identification of Hitt huhhas with Lat avus.] HAVE

Hermann, Eduard. 1918. Sachliches und sprachliches zur indogermanischen Grossfamilie. Nachrichten der Akademie der Wissenschaft in Gttingen I. Philogische-Historische Klasse: 204-232. Hermann, Eduard. 1931. Lautgesetz und Analogie. Berlin: Weidmann. (Abhandlungen der Gesellschaft der Wissenschaften zu Gttingen. Philologisch-Historische Klasse, Bd. 23 (3)). [P. 141-142: analogical formations in kin term declensions in several IE dialects; 142-143: analogical formation of kin vocatives in Lithuanian; 145: analogical formation of kinship plurals using the suffix -vija in Russian ; 171-172: kinship plurals and duals in Lithuanian.] Review: Bloomfield L. 1932. Hermann, Eduard. 1935. Einige Beobachtungen an den indog. Verwandtschaftsnamen. Indogermanische Forschungen 53: 97-103. Hermann, Eduard. 1937a. Die Eheformen der Urindogermanen. Gttinger Gelehrte Nachrichten. Philogische-Historische Klasse. Fachgruppe III. Bd. 1: 29-65. Hermann, Eduard. HAVE 1937b. Zwei Analogiebildungen. 2. Der elliptische Dualis. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 64: 73-75. [On elliptic dual forms of kin terms.] Hettrich, Heinrich. 1985. Indo-European Kinship Terminology in Linguistics and Anthropology. Anthropological Linguistics 27 (4): 453-480. HAVE

Hirt, Herman. 1893. Zu den Slavischen Auslautgesetz. Indogermanische Forschunngen 2: 337-364. [Pp. 351, n. 1, accent in IE kin terms; 360: Slav *brat < *bhratr; 363: Lith sesuo < *ses, Slav *sesra, sestra.] Hirt, Herman. 1907-1908. Untersuchungen zur indogermanischen Altertumskunde. Indogermanische Forschungen 22: 55-95. [Pp. 78-86: IE kin terms, with a table of comparison of Lithuanian and Serbian kinship vocabularies.] Hocart, Arthur M. 1928. The Indo-European Kinship System. Ceylon Journal of Science 1 (4): 179-204. Reprinted in: Imagination and Proof: Selected Essays of A. M. Hocart, edited by Rodney Needham. Pp. 61-86. Tucson: University of Arizona Press, 1987. Hoops, Johannes. 1911-1919. Reallexikon der Germanischen Altertumskunde. Bd. 1-4. Strassburg: K. J. Trubner. Hujer, Oldich. 1915. Vraz pro pojem rodie v jazycich indo-evropskch. Listy filologick 42: 421433. [On the concept of parents in Indo-European languages.] Huld, Martin E. (with Douglas Q. Adams and J. P. Mallory) HAVE

1997. Aunt, Brother, Brother-in-Law, Cousin, Daughter, Daughter-in-Law, Father, Father-in-Law, Granddaughter, Grandfather, Grandmother, Grandson, Nephew, Niece, Kinship, Marriage, Mother, Mother-in-Law, Sister, Sister-in-Law, Son, Son-in-Law, Uncle, Wife. In Encyclopedia of Indo-European Culture, edited by J. P. Mallory and Douglas Q. Adams. London and Chicago: Fitzroy Dearborn. Jevons, Frank B. HAVE 1887. Kin and Custom. Journal of Philology 16 (31): 87-110. [Roman, Greek and Hindu laws of inheritance.] Jucquois, Guy. HAVE 1969. Termes de parent en Indo-Europen et anthropologie structurale. Muson: Rvue dtudes Orientales 82: 213-230. Louvain. Kertzer, David I. 1989. The Joint Family Household Revisited: Demographic Constraints and Household Complexity in the European Past. Journal of Family History 14: 1-15. Key, Thomas H. 1874. Language: Its Origin and Development. Oxford: Oxford University Press. [Pp. 365-379: on gender in IE languages, with many examples from kin terms.] Kiparsky, Valentin. 1942. Der Schwiegersohn als Bekannte. Neuphilologische Mitteilungen 43: 113-120. Kloekhorst, Alwin. 2011. The Accentuation of the PIE Word for daughter. In Accent Matters, edited by T. Pronk and R. Derksen. Pp. 235-243. Amsterdam and New York. (Papers on Balto-Slavic Accentology = Studies in Slavic and General Linguistics 37.) Kluge, Friedrich. 1883. Zur altgermanischen Sprachgeschichte. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 26: 68-103. [P. 86: etymology of the IE term for husbands of two sisters.] HAVE Kluge, Friedrich. HAVE 1888. Etymologica. In Festgruss an Otto von Bhtlingk zum Doktor-Jubilum 3. Februar 1888 von Seinen Freuden. Ss. 60-61. Stuttgart: W. Kohlhammer. [Includes etymologies of IE terms for parents siblings.] Knobloch, Johann. HAVE 1992. Die Funktion des Schwagers im Indogermanischen Hochzeitsbrauch: Ein Versuch der Deutung von idg. *dy-wr. Archivio Glottologico Italiano 77: 86-88. Kopen, Frantiek. 1965. Die sogenennten Elementarverwandtschaft. Linguistics 19: 80-101. [Pp. 84-85: nursery kin terms in IE languages and wider.] Koppers, Wilhelm. 1935. Die Indogermanenfrage im Lichte der historischen Vlkerkunde. Anthropos 30: 131. [Pp. 8-11: kinship and social organization; the question of Grossfamilie.]

Koptjewskaja-Tamm, Maria. 2002. Adnominal Possession in the European Languages: Form and Function. Sprachtypologie und Universalienforschung 55 (2): 141-172. [Includes discussion of kinship possession.] Konek, J. M. 1932. K indoevropeiskmu *snuss nurus. Listy Filologick 59: 125-144. Konek, J. M. 1936-1937. Nkolik slov o vznamu A. Meilleta pro souasnou jazykovdu. Slavia 14: 481-495. [P. 489: on the expressive means in IE phonetics (reduplicaion, palatalization in Slavic, etc.). Not specifically on kin terms.] HAVE Koschaker, Paul. 1937. Die Eheformen bei den Indogermanen. Zeitschrift fr Auslndisches und Internationales Privatrecht 11: 723-725. Berlin. Krause, Wolfgang. HAVE 1923. Die Entwickelung einer alten elliptischen Konstruktion in den indogermanischen Sprachen. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 51: 223-249. Kretschmer, Paul. 1892. Indogermanische Accent- und Lautstudien. 2. Indogermanische u-Epenthese. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 31: 440-451. [Pp. 446-447: on *swekuros husbands father and terms for parents siblings.] HAVE Krogmann, Willy. 1955. Das Buchenargument (Schluss). Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 73: 1-25. [P. 13: etymologies of various IE affinal terms.] Kuhn, Adalbert. 1845. Zur ltesten Geschichte der Indogermanischen Vlker. Berlin: Nauck. 18 P. [Pp. 24: kin term cognate sets.] HAVE Kullanda, Sergey. HAVE 2002a. Indo-European Kinship Terms Revisited. Current Anthropology 43 (1): 89-111. See also Beekes 2002; Lujn 2002; Parkin 2002; Pfeffer 2002; Scheffler 2002; Schrijver 2002. Kullanda, Sergey. 2002b. Reply. Current Anthropology 43 (1): 105-111. HAVE

Kurylowicz, Jerzy. 1927a. indo-europen et h Hittite. In Symbolae Grammaticae In Honorem Ioannis Rozwadowski. Vol. 1. Pp. 95-104. Krakow: Druk. Uniwersytetu Jagiellonskiego. [Includes sound correspondences between Hittite and other Indo-European kinship terms in the context of the laryngeal reconstructions of Proto-Indo-European.] Kuryowicz, Jerzy. 1927b. Les effets du en indoiranien. Prace Filologiczne 11: 201-243. [Pp. 203: IE *gwenH- woman, wife; 236-238: on several IE kin terms.] HAVE Kuryowicz, Jerzy.

1977. Problmes de Linguistique Indo-Europenne. Wrocaw: Polska Akademia Nauk. [P. 216: on the a-vocalism of Gk daer and Arm taygr husbands brother.] HAVE Lallemand, S. 1988. Adoption, fosterage et alliance. Anthropologie et Socits 12: 25-40. Laroche, E. 1970. tudes de linguistique anatolienne. III. Revue Hittite et Asianique 28: 22-71. [P. 51: the on IE terms for woman and sister.] HAVE Laslett, Peter. 1983. Family and Household as Workgroup and Kin Group: Areas of Traditional Europe Compared. In Family Forms in Historic Europe, edited by Richard Wall, Jean Robin, and Peter Laslett. Pp. 513-563. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Laslett, Peter. 1988. Family, Kinship and Collectivity as Systems of Support in Pre-Industrial Europe: A Consideration of Nuclear Hardship Hypothesis. Continuity and Change 3: 153-175. Lehmann, Winfred P. 1952. Proto-Indo-European Phonology. Austin: University of Texas Press. [P. 50: on IE terms for husbands brother.] HAVE Lehmann, Winfred P. 2002. Pre-Indo-European. Washington: Institute for the Study of Man. [Pp. 223-228: kinship and social terminology.] HAVE Le Play, Frdric P. G. 1871. LOrganisation de la Famille selon le Vrai Modle Signal par lHistoire de Toutes les Races et de Tous les Temps. Paris: Tqui. [Differences in family structure between Western and Eastern Europe.] Leumann, Ernts. 1893. Eine arische Femininbilgungsregel. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 32: 294-310. [Pp. 306-308: on kin terms in -ter.] HAVE Leumann, Ernst. HAVE 1888. Indogerm. npt, nptr' Waise. In Festgruss an Otto von Bhtlingk zum DoktorJubilum 3. Februar 1888 von Seinen Freuden. Ss. 77-78. Stuttgart: W. Kohlhammer. [An etymology of IE term for grandson.] Lewy, Ernst. 1905. Etymologieen. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 40: 561-563. [P. 562: Rus. materj fest, gross, stark, etc. from IE *mter mother.] Lidn, Evald. 1897. Studien zur Altindischen und Vergleichenden Sprachgeschichte. Uppsala: Almqvist & Wiksells. [Pp. 36-37: some kin term etymologies, and analogical deformations of kin terms, especially Lith laigonas wifes brother and IE *daiwer husbands brother.] HAVE Lindeman, Fredrik O.

1982. The Triple Representation of Schwa in Greek and Some Related Problems of IndoEuropean Phonology. Oslo, etc.: Universitetsforlagen. [Pp. 14, 36-38, 56: on several kin terms.] HAVE Lindeman, Fredrik O. 1997. Introduction to the Laryngeal Theory. Innsbruck: Institut fr Sprachwissenschaft der Universitt Innsbruck. [Pp. 37-39, 156, 159-160: on several IE kin terms (*daiwer, *dhugHter, etc.] HAVE Linke, Uli. 1985. Blood as a Metaphor in Proto-Indo-European. Journal of Indo-European Studies 13 (3-4): 333-376. [Includes etymological interpretations of IE kin and affinal terms.] Loewenthal, John. 1926. Wirtschaftsgeschichtliche Parerga. Wrter und Sachen 9: 173-191. [P. 188: etymology of IE *gwen- woman, wife.] HAVE Loewenthal, John. 1927. . Untersuchungen zur lteren Geschichte der Indogermanen. Wrter und Sachen 10: 140-179. [P. 164-165: etymologies of several IE kin terms.] HAVE Loewenthal, John. 1928. Etymologica. Beitrge zur Geschichte der Deutschen Sprache und Literatur 52: 457-459. [P. 459: on the IE word for husband's sister, with a possible Latvian toponymic reflex.] Lubotsky, Alexander. HAVE 1989. Against a Proto-Indo-European Phoneme *a. In A New Sound of Indo-European, edited by Theo Vennemann. Pp. 53-66. Berlin and New York: Walter de Gruyter. [Pp. 58-59: a laryngeal in IE *daiwer < *deHiwer.] Lujn Martinez, Eugenio R. HAVE 1997. Pragmatics and Indo-European Linguistics. Journal of Pragmatics 28: 189-204. [Pp. 196-197: on IE *swe- as a reciprocal and as a name of a kinship group.] Lujn Martinez, Eugenio R. 2002. Comment on Kullanda. Current Anthropology 43 (1): 101-102. HAVE

Mallory, J. P., and Douglas Q. Adams. 2006. The Oxford Introduction to Proto-Indo-European and the Proto-Indo-European World. Oxford: Oxford University Press. [Pp. 209-218: IE kin terms and a reconstruction of PIE kin terminology.] Marbach, Otto. HAVE 1926. Die Bezeichnungen fr Blutsverwandte. Ein Beitrag zur Wortforschung auf psychoanalytischer Basis. Imago 12: 478-489. [Cross-listed in THEORY.] Markey, T. L. 1987. The Lexdical Semantics of Western European Girl. In Aspects of Language: Studies in Honour of Mario Alinei. Papers presented to Mario Alinei by his friends and colleagues of the Atlas Linguarum Europae on the occasion of his 60th birthday. Vol. 1. Pp. 275-288. Amsterdam: Rodopi.

Matasovi, Ranko. 2004. Gender in Indo-European. Heidelberg: Universittsverlag Winter. [Pp. 80-81: Kinship terms.] Mayrhofer, Manfred. HAVE 1952. Gibt es ein indogermanisches *sor- Frau ? Studien zur Indogermanischen Grundsprache 4: 32-39. Wien. Mayrhofer, Manfred. 1986. Indogermanische Grammatik. Bd. 1. Lautlehre. Heidelberg: Carl Winter. [Pp. 136138: an extensive analysis of the IE term for daughter.] Meid, Wolfgang M. HAVE 1966. Idg. *guen Frau? Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 80: 271-272. Meillet, Antoine. HAVE 1920. Le nom du fils. Mmoires de la Socit de Linguistique de Paris 21: 45-48. Meillet, Antoine. 1928. Esquisse dune Histoire de la Langue Latine. Paris: Librairie Hachette. [Pp. 139: on Lat socer father-in-law; 166-167: on the geminated consonants in IE kin terms and their loss in Slavic.] HAVE Meillet, Antoine. 1931. Essai de chronologie des langues indo-europennes. Bulletin de la Socit de Linguistique de Paris 32: 1-28. [Pp. 8-9: IE formant *sor- allegedly found in words for sister and wife.] Meillet, Antoine. HAVE 1933. Compte-rendu de Sprachliche Beziehungen zwischen Arisch und Balto-Slawisch, par H. Arntz. Bulletin de la Socit de Linguistique de Paris 34: 38-39. [P. 39: on the assimilation processes in the IE terms for father-in-law.] Mestheneos, Elizabeth, and Antonia Svensson-Dianellou. 2004. Naming Grandparents. Generations Review 14 (3): 10-13. [A comparative survey of terms and nicknames applied to grandparents in IE dialects, with some notes on Africa.] Mezger, Fritz. 1948a. I.e. Se-, Swe- and Derivatives. Word 4: 98-105. [On a common formant in IE kin terms.] Mezger, Fritz. HAVE 1948b. Some Formations in -ti- and -tr(i)-. Language 24 (2): 152-159. [Extensively on kin term morphology.] Miranda, Rocky V. 1975. Indo-European Gender: A Study in Semantic and Syntactic Change. Journal of Indo-European Studies 3 (3): 199-215. [On the formative role of semantic change in *gwenH- woman, wife on the evolution of IE gender system.] Mitterauer, Michael.

1995. Medieval Roots of European Family Development. In Stredoeurpske Kontexty Ludovej Kultry na Slovensku, edited by Jn Michlek. Pp. 92-105. Bratislava: Stimul. Mitterauer, Michael. 2000. Die Terminologie der Verwandtschaft. Zu mittelalterlichen Grundlagen von Wandel und Beharrung im europischen Vergleich. Ethnologia Balkanica 4: 11-44. Mitterauer, Michael, and R. Siedel. 1982. The European Family: Patriarchy to Partnership from the Middle Ages to the Present. Oxford: Blackwell. Mller, Max. HAVE 1873. The Science of Thought. London: Longmans, Green. [Pp. 473-475: denotative vs. connotative meanings after J. S. Mill and Jevons as exemplified by such a kin term as IE *bhrater, allegedly carrier. Cross-listed in LINGUISTICS-ONOMASTICS.] Needham, Rodney. HAVE 1987. Editors Introduction. In Imagination and Proof: Selected Essays of A. M. Hocart. Pp. 1-14. Tucson: University of Arizona Press. [Pp. 7-10: on Hocarts essay The IndoEuropean Kinship System; Cross-listed in THEORY.] Nehring, Alfons. 1936. Studien zur Indogermanischen Kultur und Urheimat. In Die Indogermanen- und Germanenfrage. Pp. 7-229. Salzburg-Leipzig: Anton Pustet. [Pp. 167-181: family and clan organization.] Normier, R. 1980. Nochmals zu *sor-. Indogermansiche Forschungen 85: 43-80. [An alleged PIE word meaning woman and its possible reflections in IE words for sister and wife.] Oettinger, Norbert. HAVE 1998. Wiesel und Gevatterin. Zu einem semantischen Problem. In Man and the Animal World: Studies in Archaeozoology, Archaeology and Palaeolinguistics in Memoriam Sndor Bknyi, edited by Peter Anreiter, Lszl Bartosiewicz, Erzsbet Jerem and Wolfgang Meid. Pp. 649-654. Budapest: Archaeolingua Alaptvny. Oosten, Jarich G. 1985. The War of the Gods: The Social Code in Indo-European Mythology. London: Routledge. Reviews: Hastrup 1986; Lincoln 1987. Osthoff, Hermann. 1899. Vom Suppletivwesen der Indogermanischen Sprachen. Heidelberg: J. Hrning. [Pp. 5, 15-17, 50, 60-61: on the pairs of kin terms in IE.] HAVE Review: Giles 1901. Otir, K. 1926-1927. K predslovanski etnologiji Zakarpatja (). Etnolog 1: 1-35. Ljubljana. [Pp. 14-20, 35: etymologies of various IE kin and affinal terms.] Ostrbski, Jan. HAVE

1967. Die von dem indoeuropischen Reflexivpronomen *se, *seue, *sue usw. abgeleiteten Verwandtschaftsnamen. In Beitrge zur Indogermanistik und Keltologie. Julius Pokorny zur 80. Geburtstag gewidmet, herausgegeben von Wolfgang Meid. Pp. 73-77. Innsbruck: Sprachwissenschaftliche Institut. Ottenheimer, Martin. 1996. Forbidden Relatives: The American Myth of Cousin Marriage. Urbana: University of Illinois Press. Pariente, Angel. HAVE 1943. En torno a nepos. Emerita 11 (2): 61-122. [Contains I. Nepos prdigo; II. Nepus: non purus; III, Filii descendientes; IV. Liberi; V. .] Pariente, Angel. 1953. Ms sobre Nepos. Emerita 21: 18-35. Parkin, Robert 2002. Comment on Kullanda. Current Anthropology 43 (1): 102-103. HAVE HAVE

Prvulescu, Adrian. 1989. Blood and IE. Kinship Terminology. Indogermanische Forschungen 94: 67-88. Prvulescu, Adrian. 1993. IE. *dhughtr Daughter and Grassmanns Law: A Phonetic and Semantic Analysis. Indogermanische Forschungen 98: 55-91. Prvulescu, Adrian. 1996. IE. *bhrtr brother. Indogermanische Forschungen 101: 99-106. Prvulescu, Adrian. 1997. Knee and Generation/People in Indo-European: Lat. poples knee vs. populus People and Parallels. Indogermanische Forschungen 102: 74-83. Patterson, Shirley G. 1909. Interchange of Suffixes. -Aster, -Ignus, and -Icus. Modern Language Notes 24 (8): 241-243. [On the affixes commonly occurring with terms denoting step-kinship.] Pedersen, Holger. HAVE 1893. Die idg. Form des Wortes fr Schwiegertochter. Beitrge zur Kunde der Indogermansiochen Sprachen 19: 293-298. Pedersen, Holger. 1900. Wie viel Laute gab es im Indogermanischen. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 36: 74-110. [P. 83: on child language kin terms in IE.] HAVE Pedersen, Holger. 1926. La Cinquime Dclinaison Latine. Kbenhavn: Andr. Fred. Hst & Sn. (Det Kongelige Danske Videnskabernes Selskab, Historisk-filologiske Meddelelser 11 (5).) [Pp. 23, 25, 26, 38, 39, 41-44: on the declension of various IE kin terms.] HAVE Peschel, Dietmar. HAVE 1981. Warum hat der Vater keinen *Sohn-ter? Versuch einer sistematischen Darstellung indo-europischer Verwandtschaftsbezeichnungen. Acta Germanica 14: 175-194.

Pfeffer, Georg. 2002. Comment on Kullanda. Current Anthropology 43 (1): 103-104. Pictet, Adolph. 1859-1863. Les Origines Indo-Europennes, ou, Les Aryas Primitifs: Essai de Palontologie Linguistique. Paris: J. Cherbuliez. [Includes a chapter entitled La Famille.]

HAVE

Pinnelli, Antonella, Hans-Joachim Hoffmann-Nowotny, and Beat Fux. 2001. Fertility and New Types of Households and Family Formation in Europe. Council of Europe. Pisani, Vittore. 1953. Recensione: Louis Renou. Grammaire de la Langue Vdique, 1952. Rivista degli Studi Orientali 28: 137-145. [Pp. 142-143: on the IE term for woman, wife and Skrt gn (divine) woman vs. jni woman; IE *kwni as an original i-stem and not *kwn with an apophonic alternation /i < * and not as a lengthened grade of *gnay as in Gk gunaik- and Arm kanay; 143-144: RV dhitr*- < *duhitr* daughter, comp. Pali dhta, Sauraseni dhd.] Pisani, Vittore. 1959. Roma e Sparta. In Saggi di Linguistica Storica. Scritti Scelti di Vittore Pisani. Pp. 220-231. Torino: Rosenberg & Sellier. [P. 226: terms for son in daughter in IE languages.] HAVE Pisani, Vittore. 1961. La reconstruzione dellindeuropeo e del suo sistema fonetico. Archivio Glottologico Italiano 46: 1-31. [P. 17: on alternation s k in satem languages, including Slav *svekr.] Pisani, Vittore. 1966. Wrter auf -r fr Weib, Ehefrau. Acta Baltico-Slavica 3: 135-136. Pisani, Vittore. HAVE 1975. Zii e cugini nel mondo indeuropeo antico. Archivio Glottologico Italiano 60: 4748. Polom, Edgar. 1973. Das indogermanische Vokalsystem in neuer Sicht? In Die Entwicklung des Indogermanischen Vokalsystems, von Robert Schmitt-Brandt. Pp. 167-179. Heidelberg: Gross. [P. 174-175: on *dHeywr husbands brother] HAVE Pott, August F. HAVE 1861. Etymologische Forschungen auf dem Gebiete der Indo-Germanischen Sprachen. Lemgo & Detmold, Meyersche Hofbuchhandlung. [Pp. 148-181: IE kin terms; 724: step-parental terms.] Proulx, Paul. HAVE 2005. Women in Proto Indo European Society. Studies in Linguistic Paleontology Publication 5. [A reconstruction of Proto-Indo-European kinship with a comparison to Proto-Algonquian kinship.] Puhvel, Jaan. HAVE

1959. Review of Die indoeuropischen Personalpronomina und die Laryngaltheorie: Ein Beitrag zur Erforschung der Pronominalbildung, by Gsta Liebert. Language 35 (4): 645-655. [Pp. 646-648: IE terms for daughter in the light of the laryngeal theory.] Pulju, Timothy J. 1995. Problems in the Reconstruction of Indo-European Stop Consonants. Ph.D. dissertation. Rice University. [Pp. 51-59: on *dhugHter daughter; 160-162: on *dlaiwer husbands brother.] HAVE Pulju, Timothy J. 2000. Indo-European *d, *l, and *dl. In Historical Linguistics 1995. Vol. 1: General Issues and Non-Germanic Languages, edited by John C. Smith and Delia Bentley. Pp. 311-326. Amsterdam: John Benjamins. [P. 317: IE *daiwer husbands brother.] Rasmussen, Jens E. 1992. One Type of o-Grade: A Consonantal Root Infix? In Rekonstruktion und Relative Chronologie: Akten der VIII. Fachtagung der Indogermanischen Gesellschaft, Leiden, 31. August 4. September 1987, herausgegeben von Robert Beekes, Alexander Lubotsky und Jos Weitenberg. Ss. 335-358. Innsbruck: Institut fr Sprachwissenschaft der Universitt Innsbruck. [Pp. 337-339: on *nept, *swesr and *pHtr.] HAVE Reher, S. D. 1998. Family Ties in Western Europe: Persistent Contrasts. Population and Development Review 24 (2): 203-234. Risch, Ernst. HAVE 1944. Betrachtungen zu den indogermansichen Verwandtschaftsnamen. Museum Helveticum 1: 115-122. Reprinted in: Kleine Schriften von Ernst Risch. Ss. 647-654. Berlin-New York: De Gruyter. Rowlands, Michael J. 1980. Kinship, Alliance and Exchange in the European Bronze Age. In Settlement and Society in the British Later Bronze Age, edited by John Barrett and Richard Bradley. Pp. 15-55. Oxford: British Archaeological Reports Series. Reprinted in: Social Transformations in Archaeology: Global and Local Perspectives, edited by Kristian Kristiansen and Michael J. Rowlands. Pp. 142-177. London: Routledge, 1998. Snchez-Calvo, Estanislao. 1884. Los Nombres de los Dioses. Madrid: Enrique de la Riva. [Pp. 132-137: etymological observations on IE terms for brother and son-in-law.] HAVE

Sandoz, Claude. HAVE 1987. Aspects du vocabulaire indo-europen de la parent. Cahiers Ferdinand de Saussure 41: 185-192. Sapir, Edward. 1919. Corrigenda and Addenda to W. D. Wallis Indo-Germanic Relationship Terms as Historical Evidence. American Anthropologist 21: 318-328. Saussure, Ferdinand de.

1877. Le suffix -T-. Mmoires de la Socit de Linguistique de Paris 3: 197-209. [Pp. 202, 203-204: on IE *nept, etc.] Saussure, Ferdinand de. 1884. Termes de parent chez les Aryas. In Les Origines du Mariage et de la Famille, par A. Geraud-Teulon. Genve: A. Cherbuliez. Reprinted in: Recueil des Publications Scientifiques de Ferdinand de Saussure. Pp. 477480. Genve: Socit Anonyme des ditions Sonor, 1922. HAVE Sauvageot, M. A. HAVE 1950. Expos. Bulletin de la Socit de Linguistique de Paris 46 (1): XX-XXII. [Report on the Benvenistes presentation on his work on IE kinship terms.] Scheffler, Harold W. 2002. Comment on Kullanda. Current Anthropology 43 (1): 104. HAVE

Scherer, Anton. HAVE 1952. How Far Can the Methods and Principles of Linguistic Geography be Successfully Applied to the Study of Indo-European? Report. In Proceedings of the 7th International Congress of Linguists, London, 1-6 September 1952. Pp. 161-166. London: Titus Wilson. [Pp. 164-166: The Social System.] Scherer, Anton. 1965. Indogermanische Altertumskunde (seit 1956). Kratylos 10 (1): 1-24. [Pp. 20-21: family and kin terminology.] Schlerath, Bernfried. 1973. Die Indogermanen. Das Probleme der Expansion eines Volkes im Lichte seiner Sozialen Struktur. Innsbruck: Institut fr Sprachwissenschaft der Universitt Innsbruck. Schlerath, Bernfried. 1987. Knnen wir die Urindogermanische Sozsialstruktur rekonstruiren? Methodologische Erwgungen. In Studien zum Indogermanischen Wortschatz, herausgegeben von Wolfgang Meid. Pp. 249-264. Innsbruck: Institut fr Sprachwissenschaft der Universitt Innsbruck. Schmalstieg, W. R. 1973. New Thoughts on Indo-European Phonology. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 87: 99-157. [P. 109: IE terms for father.] HAVE Schmeja, Hans. 1976a. Zum idg. Wort fr Tochter. In Opuscula Slavica et Linguistica. Festschrift fr Alexander Issatschenko, herausgegeben von Heinz D. Pohl und Nikolai Salnikov. Pp. 393-400. Klagenfurt: Heyn. Schmeja, Hans. 1976b. Zur Rekonstruktion des indogermanischen Wortes fr Tochter : Wortbildung und Etymologie. In Wortbildung Diachron Synchron. Akten des Kolloquiums der Sektion fr Diachrone Sprachwissenschaft im sterr. Linguistischen Programm, Innsbruck 5.-6. Dezember 1975. Pp. 23-24. Innsbruck: Institut fr Sprachwissenschaft der Universitt Innsbruck. Schmeja, Hans. HAVE

1999. Zum indogermanischen Wort fr Vater. In Studia Celtica et Indogermanica. Festschrift fr Wolfgang Meid zum 70. Geburtstag, herausgegeben von Peter Anreiter und Erzsbet Jerem. Pp. 413-423. Budapest: Archaeolingua Alaptvny. Schmidt, Johannes. HAVE 1879. Zwei arische a-Laute und die Palatalen. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 25: 1-179. [Pp. 26-42: IE names with suffix -ter, including kin terms; p. 34: tat father from *ptat.] Schmitt, Rdiger. 1972. Florilegium Onomasticum. 1. Zur anthroponomastischen Terminologie. Beitrge zur Namenforschung 7: 337-339. [On the types of name formation in connection with kin terms and modes of descent.] Schrader, Otto. HAVE 1883. Sprachvergleichung und Urgeschichte. Linguitisch-Historische Beitrge zur Erforschung des Indogermanischen Altertums. Jena: H. Costenoble. 490 P. Translated into English as Prehistoric Antiquities of the Aryan Peoples Prehistoric Antiquities of the Aryan Peoples by Frank B. Jevons. London: Griffin, 1890. [Pp. 369404: Family and the State.] HAVE Review: Keary 1890. Schrader, Otto. 1898. Etymologische Beitrge zu den Begriffen Familie, Sippe und Stamm. Indogermanische Forschungen (Anzeiger) 9: 170-173. [A section of Die indogermanische Sektion auf der vierundzwanzigsten Versammlung deutscher Philologen und Schulmanner zu Dresden. 29. September 2. Oktober 1897.] HAVE

Schrader, Otto. 1901. Reallexikon der Indogermanischen Altertumskunde. Grundzge einer Kultur- und Vlkergeschichte Alteuropas. Strassburg: K.J. Trbner. 1048 P. 2d edition: Berlin und Leipzig: W. de Gruyter & Co., 1917-1929. Schrader, Otto. 1904-1905. ber Bezeichnungen der Heiratsverwandtschaft bei den idg. Vlkern. Indogermanische Forschungen 17 (1-4): 11-36. Schrijver, Peter. 2002. Comment on Kullanda. Current Anthropology 43 (1): 104-105. HAVE

Schulze, Wilhelm. HAVE 1908. Vom idg. l-Suffix. In Jagi-Festschrift. Zbornik v Slavu Vatroslava Jagia. Pp. 343-347. Berlin: Weidmannsche Buchhandlung. [Includes the use of the suffix with kin terms.] Schulze, Wilhelm. HAVE 1924. Zum Lesbischen. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 52: 311. [On IE words for man, husband.] Schwartz, Martin.

1975. Proto-Indo-European gem-. In Monumentum H. S. Nyberg. Vol. 2. Pp. 195-207. Thran: Bibliothque Pahlavi; Leiden: Diffusion, Brill. Schweizer-Sidler, H. 1859. Review of Vergleichende Grammatik des Sanskrit, Zend, Armenischen, Griechischen u s. f., von Franz Bopp. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 8: 221-236. [P. 228: etymologies of svasr as sa + vastr co-resident, duhitr from Goth daug ich bin gewachsen and filia/filius as Suglinge.] Sergent, Bernard. 1986. Three Notes on the Trifunctional Indo-European Marriage. Journal of IndoEuropean Studies 12: 179-191. Sihler, Andrew L. HAVE 1988. Greek Reflexes of Syllabic Laryngeals, with a Postscript on PIE Kinship Terms in *-H2ter. In Die Laryngaltheorie und die Rekonstruktion des Indogermanischen Laut- und Formensystems, herausgegeben von Alfred Bammesberger. Pp. 547-561. Heidelberg: Carl Winter. [Pp. 558-559: Postscript: PIE *-H2ter Kinsman.] Sihler, Andrew L. 1995. New Comparative Grammar of Greek and Latin. New York: Oxford University Press. [Pp. 277-278: devi-type formations in kin terms and their shift to i-stems in Latin; 279: amphikinetic accent in kin terms; 320: i-stems and u-stems in IE kin terms, neptis and socrus; 364: matertera vs. amita.] Simonyi, S. 1922. Knie und Geburt. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 50: 152-154. Sommer, Ferdinand. 1916. Das Femininum der u- und i-Adjectiva im R(gveda und im Altiranischen. Indogermanische Forschungen 36: 165-232. [Pp. 198-199, n. 2: swekrs, with -s as a suffix < *-w-.] Specht, Franz. 1938. Zur Bildung der adjektivischen s-Stmme. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 65: 193-207. [P. 193: on IE *swekuros father-in-law.]

HAVE

Specht, Franz. 1941. Die indogermanische Familie und der Unsterblichkeitsgedanke. Deutschlands Erneuerung 25: 11-20. Specht, Franz. 1942. Zur Bedeutung des Ariernamen. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 67: 42-52. [Pp. 46-47: IE *swe- in kin terms.] HAVE Specht, Franz. 1944. Der Ursprung der Indogermanischen Deklination. Gttingen: Vandenhoeck & Ruprecht. [Pp. 87-98, 335: IE kin terms and family terminology.] HAVE Steinmeyer, Elias, and Eduard Sievers. HAVE 1895. Althochdeutschen Glossen. Berlin: Weidmann. [Vol. 3, pp. 65-68: terms of kinship and affinity.] Streitberg, Wilhelm.

1894. Die Entstehung der Dehnstufe. Indogermanische Forschungen 3: 305-470. [P. 334: on IE *nepot grandson.] HAVE Streitberg, Wilhelm. HAVE 1897. Die Indogermanische Sektion auf der vierundzwanzigsten versammlung deutscher Philologen und Schulmnner zu Dresden. 29. September 2. Oktober 1897. Anzeiger fr Indogermanische Sprach- und Altertumskunde 9 (1-2): 171-173. [On O. Schraders report on his research on IE kinship and social terms.] Streitberg, Wilhelm. HAVE 1915. Die Bedeutung des Suffixes -ter-. Indogermanische Forschungen 35: 196-197. Sturtevant, Edgar H. 1928a. Original h in Hittite and the Medio-Passive in r. Language 4 (3): 159-170. [Pp. 162-163: the identification of Hitt huhhas grandfather and hannas grandmother as cognate with, respectively, Lat avus and anus.] Sturtevant, Edgar H. HAVE 1928b. Review of The Vedic Declension of the Type vrkis, a Contribution to the Study of a Feminine Noun-Declension in Indo-European, by Ruth N. Albright. Language 4 (4): 281-284. [Includes discussions of IE tanu- and devi- declensions with kin term examples and their transformation to i- and u-stems in Latin.] Sturtevant, Edgar H. 1931. Changes of Quantity Caused by Indo-Hittite h. Language 7 (2): 115-124. [P. 119: Hit huhhas and Lat avus grandfather.] Sturtevant, Edgar H. 1949. An Indo-European Word for woman. Language 25: 343-345. Stterlin, L. 1909. Der Schwund von idg. i und u. Indogermanische Forschungen 25: 51-76. [P. 70, no. 43, 45: IE *swekuro-, *sunu- and *snusos.] HAVE Szemerenyi, Oswald. HAVE 1956a. How Far Can Conclusions about Cultural and Social Systems Be Drawn from Purely Linguistic Evidence in the IE Languages? In Proceedings of the 7th International Congress of Linguists, London, 1-6 September 1952, edited by F. Norman. Pp. 515-517. London: The Congress. [Includes discussion of IE words for sister and father-in-law, and an interpretation of the meaning of the swe-component.] Szemernyi, Oswald. 1956b. Latin rs and Indo-European Long-Diphthong Stem Nouns. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 73: 167-202. [Pp. 192-193, n. 1: on the IE term for woman, wife.] HAVE Szemernyi, Oswald. 1962. Principles of Etymological Research in the Indo-European Languages. In II. Fachtagung fr Indogermanische und Allgemeine Sprachwissenschaft, Innsbruck, 10.-15. Oktober 1961. Pp. 175-212. Innsbruck: Sprachwissenschaftliche Institut der LeopoldFranzans-Universitt. [Pp. 194-195: etymological analysis of an IE word for boy, son.]

Szemernyi, Oswald. 1964. Syncope in Greek and Indo-European and the Nature of Indo-European Accent. Naples: Istituto Universitario Orientale di Napoli. [Pp. 291-340: IE kin and affinal terms.] Szemernyi, Oswald. 1966. The Alleged Indo-European *sor- woman. Kratylos 11: 206-221. Szemernyi, Oswald. HAVE 1977. Studies in the Kinship Terminology of the Indo-European Languages, with special references to Indian, Iranian, Greek and Latin. Teheran and Lige. 240 P. (Acta Iranica 16.) Reviews: Moreau 1978; Friedrich 1980; Considine 1981. Tremblay, Xavier. HAVE 2003. La Dclinaison des Noms de Parent Indo-Europens en -ter-. Innsbruck: Institut fr Sprachen und Literaturen der Universitt Innsbruck. (Innsbrucker Beitrge zur Sprachwissenschaft 106). Trier, Jost. 1947. Vater. Versuch einer Etymologie. Zeitschrift der Savigny-Stiftung fr Rechtsgeschichte. Germanistische Abteilung 65: 232-260. Trier, Jost. 1952. Holz: Etymologien aus dem Niederwald. Mnster und Kln: Bhlau. [Pp. 136-143: IE *mter mother.] Van Windekens, Albert J. HAVE 1979. Contributions a linterpretation du vocabulaire hittite et indo-europen. In Studies in Diachronic, Synchronic, and Typological Linguistics: Festschrift for Oswald Szemernyi on the Occasion of his 65th Birthday, edited by Bela Brogyanyi. Pt. 2. Pp. 909-925. Amsterdam: John Benjamins. [Pp. 918-924: a follow-up to Szemernyis 1977 study of IE kin terms.] Vasmer, Max. 1950. Review of Neuere Literatur zum Sprachtabu, by W. Havers. Zeitschrift fr Slavische Philologie 20 : 451-457. [Pp. 454-455 : possible influences of speech tabu on IE kin terms.] HAVE Vendryes, Joseph. 1919. Sur le nom du gendre. Revue des tudes Anciennes 21: 99-101. Verdery, Katherine. 1988. A Comment on Goodys Development of the Family and Marriage in Europe. Journal of Family History 13 (2): 265-270. See Goody 1983. Vernier, Bernard. 1994. Ressemblances familiales et systmes de parent. Des villageois grecs aux tudiants Lyonnais. Ethnologie Franaise 1: 36-44. Vernier, Bernard. HAVE

1996. Thorie de linceste et construction dobjet: Franoise Hritier, la Grce antique et les Hittites. Annales: Histoire, Sciences Sociales 51 (1): 173-200. [Cross-listed in PERSONALIA.] Vey, Marc. 1955. Deux notes grecques. Bulletin de la Societe de Linguistique de Paris 51 (1): 80105. [Pp. 86-90: etymological consideration of several IE kin terms, primarily *galoos husbands sister.] Vinogradoff, Paul. 1920. Outlines of Historical Jurisprudence. London: Clarendon Press. Ch. 8 Tribal Law (The Organization of Kinship) and Chapter 6 Joint Family are reprinted in: Anthropology and Early Law: Selected from the Writings of Paul Vinogradoff, Frederic W. Maitland, Frederick Pollock, Maxim Kovalevsky, Rudolf Huebner and Frederic Seebohm, edited by Lawrence Krader. Pp. 57-74, 117-128. New York and London: Basic Books. Viredaz, Rmy. 2002. Le nom de gendre en indo-europen et en balto-slave. Indogermanische Forschungen 107: 152-180. HAVE

Wackernagel, Jacob. 1887. Miscellen zur griechischen Grammatik. 9. . Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 28: 132-137. [P. 136: on *swekuros husbands father.] HAVE Wackernagel, Jacob. HAVE 1916. Zu den Verwandtschaftsnamen. In Festschrift Friedrich Carl Andreas zur Vollendung des Siebzigsten Lebensjahres am 14. April 1916, dargebracht von Freunden und Schlen. Pp. 1-9. Leipzig: Otto Harrassowitz. Reprinted in: Kleine Schriften. T. 1. Pp. 459-467. Gttingen: Vandenhoeck und Ruprecht. Wallis, W. D. 1918. Indo-Germanic Relationship Terms as Historical Evidence. American Anthropologist 20: 419-431. Watson, Patricia A. 1995. Ancient Stepmothers: Myth, Misogyny and Reality. Leiden: E. J. Brill. Weber, A. HAVE 1857a. Svasr,i Schwester. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 6: 235. Weber, A. 1857b. 3. vaura- socer- svaihra- . Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 6: 319. [IE terms for father-in-law.] HAVE

Westrup, Carl W. 1952. A Near-Kin Within the Kin: A Comparative Study. Kbenhavn, Munksgaard.

Review: Rose, H. 1954. Whittaker, Gordon. 2009. Milking the Udder of Heaven: A Note on Mesopotamian and Indo-Iranian Religious Imagery. In From Dan to Dn: Religion, Kultur und Sprache in der Iranischen Welt. Festschrift fr Philip Kreyenbroek zum 60. Geburtstag, herausgegeben von Christine Allison, Anke Joisten-Pruschke und Antje Wendtland. Pp. 127-137. Wiesbaden: Otto Harrassowitz. [Pp. 131-133: deity names such as Apam Napat grandson of water, Neptunus, etc. in IE languages with Sumerian parallels.] Windfuhr, Gernot L. HAVE 2002. The IE Terms for Siblings of Spouse: Etymology and Chiastic Logic. In The Linguists Linguist: A Collection of Papers in Honour of Alexis Manaster Ramer, edited by Fabrice Cavoto. Vol. 2. Pp. 461-475. Mnchen: LINCOM EUROPA. Winning, William B. HAVE 1838. A Manual of Comparative Philology: In which the Affinity of the Indo-European Languages is Illustrated and Applied to the Primeval History. London: Printed for J. G. and F. Rivington. [Pp. 52-54: kin terms as a proof of the kinship of IE languages.] Winter, Werner. HAVE 1969. Analogischer Sprachwandel und Semantische Struktur. Folia Linguistica 3: 29-45. [Vastly on IE kin terms.] Winter, Werner. HAVE 1952. An Indo-European Prefix *n- Together With. Language 28 (2): 186-191. [Includes kin term formations.] Winter, Werner. HAVE 1980. OInd. mhi: Gk. mga Reconsidered. In American Indian and Indoeuropean Studies: Papers in Honor of Madison S. Beeler, edited by Kathryn Klar, Margaret Langdon, and Shirley Silver. Pp. 487-495. The Hague, etc.: Mouton. [Pp. 493-494: IE word for daughter and its etymology.] Witczak, Krzysztof T. 2003. Review of Encyclopedia of Indo-European Culture, edited by J. P. Mallory and D. Q. Adams. Studia Indogermanica Lodziensia 5: 175-184. [P. 183: IE words for wife, dear, including Lyc lada wife, lae husbands in-laws.] Wolfe, Susan J. HAVE 1983. Sister, Sisters Son and Mothers Brother: Linguistic Evidence for Matrilineal Kinship. In 1982 Mid-American Linguistics Conference Papers, edited by Frances Ingemann. Pp. 254-268. Lawrence: University of Kansas, Department of Linguistics. Wolfe, Susan J. 1984. The Reconstruction of Proto-Indo-European Kinship. North Dakota Quarterly 52 (1): 67-76. Wolfe, Susan J. HAVE 1986. On Terms of Consanguineal Kinship in Proto-Indo-European. Papers in Linguistics 19 (4): 425-447. Wolfe, Susan J.

1989. The Reconstruction of Word Meanings: A Review of the Scholarship. In Language, Gender, and Professional Writing: Theoretical Approaches and Guidelines for Nonsexist Usage, edited by F. W. Frank and P. A. Treichler. Pp. 80-94. New York: Modern Language Association. [Includes observations on IE kin terms.] Wolfe, Susan J. 1993. Reconstructing PIE Terms for Kinship and Marriage. Word 44 (1). Wolfe, Susan J., and Julia P. Stanley. 1980. Linguistic Problems with Patriarchal Reconstructions of Indo-European Culture: A Little More Than Kin, a Little Less Than Kind. Womens Studies International Quarterly 3 (2/3): 227-237. Wordick, Frank J. F. HAVE 1970. A Generative-Extensionist Analysis of the Proto-Indo-European Kinship System. Ph.D. dissertation. University of Michigan, Ann Arbor. 318 P. Zmigrodski, Michael. 1886. Die Mutter bei den Vlkern des Arischen Stammes. Eine Anthropologisch Historische Skizze als Beitrag zur Lsung der Frauenfrage. Mnchen: T. Ackermann. 444 S. COMPARATIVE Andrjuschina, Maria. 1968. Vergleichende Untersuchung von Personnenbezeichnungen im Russischen und Deutschen. Ph.D. dissertation. University of Leipzig. Arntz, Helmut. 1933. Sprachliche Beziehungen zwischen Arisch und Balto-Slawisch. Heidelberg: Carl Winter. [Pp. 12: on r-less kin terms in Indo-Aryan and Balto-Slavic.] HAVE Austin, William M. HAVE 1942. Is Armenian an Anatolian Language. Language 18 (1): 22-25. [P. 22: on Arm haw grandfather and han grandmother compared with Anatolian.] Benigny, Julius. HAVE 1918. Die Namen der Eltern im Indoiranischen und im Gothischen. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 48: 230-236. Benveniste, mile. HAVE 1926. Un emploi du nom du genou en vieil-irlandais et en sogdien. Bulletin de la Socit de Linguistique de Paris 27: 51-53. [The intersection of the notions of knee and kinship.] Bonfante, Giuliano. 1934. Notas sobre el vocabulario cltico y latino. Emerita 2 (1-2): 263-306. [Pp. 271-277: differences between kin terms in Celtic and Latin and in other IE languages (specifically, on son daughter terms)]. Bonfante, Giuliano. 1960. Le rapports linguistiques entre la Grce et lItalie. In Hommages Lon Herrmann. Pp. 171-182. Bruxelles-Berchem: Latomus. [P. 196-197: the weakening of g to y or h or

in the anlaut and between vowels in Modern Greek and Vulgar Latin, including such kin terms as yinka woman, wife and hermano, -a sibling.] HAVE Borgmann, Dmitro A. 1986. You and Your Relations. Word Ways: Journal of Recreational Linguistics 19 91): 11-13. [Cousin terms in English and other modern European languages.] Bradke, P. von. HAVE 1894. Zwei sprachgeschichtliche Skizzen. 1. Skr. dra griech. . 2. Skr j mtr, jr griech. , ; Skr jrayti. Indogermanische Forschungen 4: 85-91. Brugmann, Karl. 1904. Etymologische Miszellen. 1. Griech. , aind. v. Indogermanische Forschungen 16: 491-495. [P. 493: Lat vitricus step-father and Skrt vi-mtar stepmother.] HAVE Brugmann, Karl. HAVE 1904-1905. Griech. und ai. sn* got. sunus. Indogermanische Forschungen 17: 483-491. Brugmann, Karl. HAVE 1907. , nurus, snu und die griechischen und italischen femininen Substantiva auf -os. Indogermanische Forschungen 21 (3-4): 315-322. Brugmann, Karl. HAVE 1907-1908. Die Anomalen in der Flexion von griech. , armen. kin und altnord. kona. Indogermanische Forschungen 22: 171-193. Cohn, Werner. HAVE 1969. Some Comparisons between Gypsy (North American om) and American English Kinship Terms. American Anthropologist 71 (3): 476-482. Delsing, Lars-Olof, and Verner Egerland. 2002. Kinship Nouns in Possessive Constructions in Italian and Scandinavian. Sprachtypologie und Universalienforschung 55 (2): 103-120. Devoto, Giacomo. 1936. Germanisch-Lateinisch und Germanisch-Oskisch-Umbrisch. In Germanen und Indogermanen: Volkstum, Sprache, Heimat, Kultur. Festschrift fr Herman Hirt, herausgegeben von Helmut Arnitz. Ss. 533-547. Heidelberg: Carl Winter. [P. 547: Latin, Celtic, Gothic and Oscan terms for son and daughter and the isolation of nuclear family.] Edwards, Jeanette. HAVE 2006. Reflecting on the Euro in Euro-America Kinship: Lithuania and the United Kingdom. In Acta Historicas Universitatis Klaipedensis 13, Studia Antropologica 2: 129136. Erhart, Adolf. HAVE 1956. Zum IE. Wechsel Media: Media Aspirata. Sbornk Prac Filosofick Fakulty Brnnsk University 5. Rady Jazykovdn (A) 4: 5-18. [P. 10: discussion of duhita ~ thugater.] Eyben, Emiel. 1980-1981. Family Planning in Graeco-Roman Antiquity. Ancient Society 11-12: 5-82.

Fay, Edwin W. HAVE 1897. Contested Etymologies. XII. Greek Wife : Latin soror Sister. Classical Review 11 (3): 146-147. Feyten, Carine M., and Keya Majumdar. 1993. Contrastive Analysis of Kinship Terms in Flemish and Bengali with American English. Language Quarterly 31 (3-4): 217-250. Filippin, Antonio. 1999. Latino flius e un lemma trascurato di Esichio. Incontri Linguistici 22: 103-109. [On a possible Illyrian word in Hesichius preserving a cognate of the Latin term for son.] Frnkel, Ernst. 1933. Review of tudes Baltiques, by Louis Hjelmslev. Balticoslavica 1: 214-228. [P. 215: on the metatony of dkteri vs. thugatra.] Frnkel, Ernst. HAVE 1955. Analogische Umgestaltung und Volksetymologie besonders im Baltischen und Slavischen. Zeitschrift fr Slavische Philologie 23: 334-353. [Pp. 346, 347, 348, 351: analogical leveling in kin terms.] Fustel de Coulanges, Numa D. 1885. Recherches sur Quelques Problmes dHistoire. Paris: Hachette. [Germanic family and inheritance laws as compared with Roman.] Georgiev, Vladimir. 1952. Proiskhozhdenie alfavita. Voprosy iazykoznaniia 6: 48-83. [Pp. 52-53: on Slav *batya 'father and Gk basileus.] Gummere, F. B. 1901. The Sisters Son in the English and Scottish Popular Ballads. In An English Miscellany Presented to Dr. Furnivall in Honour of his Seventy-Fifth Birthday, edited by W. P. Ker, A. S. Napier and W. W. Skeat. Pp. 133-149. Oxford: Oxford University Press. Hamp, Eric. HAVE 1970. Sanskrit duhit, Armenian dustr, and IE Internal Schwa. Journal of the American Oriental Society 90 (2): 228-231. Hoffmann, O. HAVE 1896. Etymologien. 7. Ssk syls Bruder der Frau, altbulg. ur, ura, urin Bruder der Frau. Beitrge zur Kunde der Indogermanischen Sprachen 21: 140-143. Hbschmann, Heinrich. HAVE 1901. Armeniaca. 1. Arm ustr : ags. suhtera. In Strassburger Festschrift zur XLVI. Versammlung Deutscher Philologen und Schulmnner. Ss. 69-70. Strassburg: Karl J. Trbner. [Terms for son and brothers son.] Reprinted in: Kleine Schriften zum Armenischen, von Heinrich Hbschmann. Edited by Rdiger Schmidt. Pp. 379-380. Hildesheim and New York: Georg Olms, 1976. Humbach, Helmut.

1971. Heroes salvete deum genus. In Donum Indogermanicum: Festgabe fur Anton Scherer zum 70. Feburtstag, herausgegeben von Robert Schmitt-Brandt. Pp. 173-180. Heidelberg: Carl Winter. [On the use of genus in Latin and Greek.] Kadlec, Jaromir 2002. A propos du champ smantique de la parent en franais, en espagnol et en tcheque. Linguistica Pragensia 12 (1): 24-39. Kalicz, Roman. 1976. On the Kinship Terms in English and Polish. Papers and Studies in Contrastive Linguistics 5: 257-270. Pozna-Arlington, VA. Karalinas, Simas. HAVE 1995. Lit. dial. mja e Gr. madre. In Res Balticae: Miscellanea Italiana di Studi Baltistici, edited by Pietro U. Dini and Nikolai Mikhailov. Vol. 1. Pp. 73-76. Pisa: Ecig. Kortlandt, Frederik. 1980. Albanian and Armenian. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 94: 243251. [On Arm skesur and Alb vjeher father-in-law.] Kbler, B. 1910. Gens. In Paulys Real-Encyclopdie der Classischen Altertumswissenschaft. Bd. 13, herausgegeben von George Wissowa. Ss. 1176-1198. Stuttgart: J. B. Metzler. Lane, George S. HAVE 1937. Celtic Notes. 12. W hogen, hogyn. Language 13 (1): 25-26. [Compares the Welsh words for by and girl to OEng suhterga brothers son and IE *seu- to beget.] Lindvall, Ann. 1996. Definite Marking and Referential Status in Greek, Swedish and Polish. Lund University, Department of Linguistics Working Papers 45 : 113-132. [Kin terms and personal names are prominent in this study.] Loth, J. 1913. Le mot designant le genou au sens de gnration chez les Celtes, les Germaines, les Slaves, les Assyrien. Revue Celtique 40: 143-152. Lurye, Alina. 1990. The Translation of Russian Diminutives into English. M.A. thesis. University of Alberta. [Includes kin terms.] McLennan, John F. 1861. Marriage and Divorce: The Law of England and Scotland. North British Review 35 (August): 187-218. Maddalon, Marta di. 2000. Famiglie: Excursus su modelli parentali ed altro, a partire da un dubbio. Quaderni di Semantica 21 (2): 319-346. [Comparative analysis of Latin, Celtic and Germanic kin term vocabularies.] Markeviien, aneta. 2002. Lietuvi, Hindi ir Sanskrito kalb leksins bendrybs. Kalbotyra 51 (1): 99-114. [Pp. 103-104: kin terms common to Lithuanian and Indic.]

Mnager, L.-R. 1980. Systmes onomastiques, structures familiales et classes socials dans le monde grco-romain. Studia et Documenta Historiae et Iuris 46: 147-235 Moorehouse, A. C. 1940. Greek , English KIN. Classical Review 54 (4): 187. HAVE

Moustos, Demetrius. 1983. Gk and Slavic *sbr. Indogermanische Forschungen 88: 165-179. Much, Rudolf. 1900. Deutsche Stammeskunde. Leipzig: Gschen. [Pp. 37: on mutual borrowings of kin terms between Slavic and Germanic.] OGorman, Richard. HAVE 1988. Reflections on Affinal Kinship Terminology in Old French and Middle English. Vox Romanica 47: 163-174 Ondru, imon. 1970. Latinsk npta a praslovansk nevsta. Slavica Slovaca 5 (3): 301-305. HAVE

Polom, Edgar G. S. 1986. Some Comments on Germano-Hellenic Lexical Correspondences. In Aspects of Language: Studies in Honour of Mario Alinei. Papers presented to Mario Alinei by his friends and colleagues of the Atlas Linguarum Europae on the occasion of his 60th birthday. Vol. 1. Pp. 171-198. Amsterdam: Rodopi. [P. 192: on Gk aelioi and ONorse svilar husbands of two sisters.] Pons-Sanz, Sara M. 2005. Friends and Relatives in Need of an Explanation: Gr anagkaios, L necessarius, and PGmc *nau(eth). Journal of English and Germanic Philology 104 (1): 1-11. Qvonje, Jrn I. 1989. Eine historisch-typologische Analyse der Konstruktion ime mter/sestra mi/sora mea. Zeitschrift fr Phonetik, Sprachwissenschaft und Kommunikationsforschung 42 (3): 339-348. [Albanian, Slavic and Romanian.] Rodman, Hyman 1967. Marital Power in France, Greece, Yugoslavia and the United States: A Crossnational Discussion. Journal of Marriage and the Family 29: 320-324. [Cross-listed in AMERICA.] Scharfe, Hartmut. 1965. Griech. thugatridous, Sanskrit dauhitra (Erb)tochtersohn. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 79: 265-284. Schindler, Johann. 1969. Die idg. Wrter fr Vogel und Ei. Die Sprache 15: 144-167. [P. 165: reconstruction of the Slavo-Indic isogloss for wifes brother.] Schmidt, Klaus T., and Klaus Strunk.

HAVE

1989. Toch B kwpe Scham, Schande, A kip Scham und germ. *wba- Weib. In Indogermanica Europaea: Festschrift fur Wolfgang Meid, edited by K. Heller, O. Panagl, and J. Tischler. Pp. 251-284. Graz: Institut fr Sprachwissenschaft der Universitt Graz. Schulze, Wilhelm. HAVE 1924. Gr. und Pali sun(is. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 52: 152. [Metathesis in the terms for husbands father.] Seebohm, Frederic. 1911. The Tribal Custom in Anglo-Saxon Law. London: Longmans, Green. [Ancient Celtic and Germanic tribes; includes such themes as kindred, fictive kinship, degrees of kinship, the role of maternal uncle, the role of blood ties, etc.] Excerpted under title Beowulf in: Anthropology and Early Law: Selected from the Writings of Paul Vinogradoff, Frederic W. Maitland, Frederick Pollock, Maxim Kovalevsky, Rudolf Huebner and Frederic Seebohm, edited by Lawrence Krader. Pp. 100-112. New York and London: Basic Books. Specht, Franz. 1935. Zur baltisch-slavischen Spracheinheit. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 62: 248-258. [Pp. 249-253: on common Balto-Slavic kin terms.] HAVE Steinhauser, Walter. 1960. Die althochdeutsche Vorsilbe uo- im Kreise ihrer Lautverwandten. Zeitschrift fr Mundartforschung 27: 101-115. [P. 107: on Lith uovis wifes father and OHG ga-swio sisters husband, wifes brother.] HAVE Stpie, Katarzyna. 2008. Les reflets de lidologie indo-europenne dans le nom de lhomme en grec et latin. Scripta Classica 5: 45-50. Svane, Gunnar. 1992. Slavische Lehnwrter im Albanischen. Aarhus: Aarhus University Press. [Pp. 186191: kin and address terms.] Szemernyi, Oswald. 1967. Slavic Etymology in Relation to Indo-European Background. Die Welt der Slaven 12 (3): 267-295. [Pp. 282-283: on the IE term for father in Balto-Slavic.] HAVE Thieme, Paul. 1956. Hema und haima. Zeitschrift der Deutschen Morgenlndischen Gesellschaft 106: 145-154. [Pp. 153-154: vrddhi kin terms in Germanic and Indic.] HAVE Thieme, Paul. HAVE 1963. Jungfrauengatte: Sanskrit kaumrah patih Homer. kourdios psis Lat. maritus. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 78: 161-246. Tilly, Louise A., and Joan W. Scott. 1978. Women, Work, and Family. New York: Holt, Rinehart & Winston. [Early modern France and England.] Reviews: Boxer 1980; Anderson B. 1982.

Vasilev, Khristo. HAVE 1968. Nechlenuvaneto na rodninski nazvaniia v rumnski i v blgarski kato ezikovo iavlenie. Blgarski Ezik 18 (2-3): 214-217. Vatasescu, Catalina. 1997. Kinship Terms of Latin Origin Preserved in Albanian and Romanian. Revue des tudes Sud-Est Europennes 35 (3-4): 189-196. Visser, Margaret. 1986. Medea: Daughter, Sister, Wife, Mother: Natal Family Versus Conjugal Family in Greek and Roman Myths About Women. In Greek Tragedy and Its Legacy: Essays Presented to D. J. Conacher, edited by M. Cropp, et al. Calgary: Calgary University Press. Wackernagel, Jacob. 1919. ber einige lateinische und griechische Ableitungen aus den Verwandtschaftswrtern. In Festgabe Adolf Kaegi von Schlern und Freunden dargebracht zum 30. September 1919. Ss. 40-65. Frauenfeld: Druck von Huber. HAVE

Wareham, Andrew. 1999. Two Models of Marriage: Kinship and the Social Order in England and Normandy. In Later Anglo-Saxon England: Life and Landscape, edited by Andrew Reynolds. Pp. 107-132. Stroud: Tempus. Winter, Werner. HAVE 1987. Old Indic sn-, Greek huis son. In Festschrift for Henry Hoenigswald on the Occasion of His Seventieth Birthday, edited by George Cordona and Norman H. Zide. Pp. 405-408. Tbingen: Gunter Narr. Winter, Werner. 1997. Lexical Archaisms in the Tocharian Languages. In Historical, Indo-European, and Lexicographical Studies: A Festschrift for Ladislav Zgusta on the Occasion of his 70th Birthday, edited by Hans H. Hock. Pp. 183-193. Berlin: Walter de Gruyter. [Pp. 184-185: an etymological connection between Toch A kip, Toch B kwpe shame and Germ. *wBa, OEng wf wife.] Wissowa, Georg. 1894. Acca. In Paulys Real-Encyclopdie der Classischen Altertumswissenschaft. Bd. 1, herausgegeben von George Wissowa. Ss. 131-134. Stuttgart: J. B. Metzler. [Comparison with Skrt acca mother.] Thalheim, Th., and Leonhard, R. 1894. Adoption. In Paulys Real-Encyclopdie der Classischen Altertumswissenschaft. Bd. 1, herausgegeben von George Wissowa. Ss. 395-399. Stuttgart: J. B. Metzler. [Greek and Roman law.] CONTACTS Katz, Hartmut. 2003. Studien zu den lteren Indoiranischen Lehnwrtern in den Uralischen Sprachen. Heidelberg: Carl Winter. [Pp. 173-180: kin terms; Cross-listed in URALIC.] HAVE Polk, Vclav.

1946. K problmu lexiklnich shod mezi jazyky kavkazkmi a jazyky slavanskmi. Listy Filologick 70: 23-31. [P. 28: on the borrowing of the IE term for daughter-in-law into Kartvelian languages.] HAVE Tischler, Johann. 2002. Bemerkungen zur Urheimatfrage. In Novalis Indogermanica. Festschrift fr Gnter Neumann zum 80. Geburtstag, herausgegeben von Matthias Fritz und Susanne Zeilfelder. Ss. 475-487. Graz: Leykam. [P. 485: the IE kin term borrowings in Kartvelian.] HAVE REGIONAL COMPARATIVE Fleming, Patricia H. 1973. The Politics of Marriage among Non-Catholic European Royalty. Current Anthropology 14 (3): 231-249. Parkes, Peter. 2004. Milk Kinship in Southeast Europe: Alternative Social Structures and Foster Relations in the Caucasus and the Balkans. Social Anthropology 12: 341-358. Pitt-Rivers, Julian. 1976. Ritual Kinship in the Mediterranean: Spain and the Balkans. In Mediterranean Family Structures, edited by J. G. Peristiany. Pp. 317-334. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Safilios-Rothschild, Constantina. 1967. A Comparison of Power Structure and Marital Satisfaction in Urban Greek and French Families. Journal of Marriage and the Family 29: 345-352. BALKANS COLLECTIONS Byrnes, Robert F. (ed.) 1976. Communal Families in the Balkans: The Zadruga. Notre Dame, IN: University of Notre Dame Press. Review: Plakans 1977. GENERAL Botev, Nikolai. HAVE 1990. Nuptiality in the Course of the Demographic Transition: The Experience of the Balkan Countries. Population Studies 44: 107-126. Durham, M. E. 1928. Some Tribal Origins, Laws and Customs of the Balkans. London: George Allen & Unwin. [Pp. 147-230: kinship and marriage. Pp. 151-153: Albanian and Montenegran kin terms.] Filipovi, Milenko S. 1954. Levirat i sororat kot Srba, Hrvata i Arbanasa. Rad Vojvodjanskih Muzeja 3. Novi Sad. Fritsche, Michael.

1977. Semantische Struktur und Sozialstruktur am Beispiel der Verwandtschaftsterminologien der Balkansprachen. Ph.D. dissertation. Berlin: Freie Universitt. 323 P. Gavazzi, Milovan. 1982. The Extended Family in Southeastern Europe. Journal of Family History 7: 89102. Hamp, Eric. 1957. Albanian and Messapic. In Studies Presented to Joshua Whatmough on His Sixtieth Birthday, edited by Ernst Pulgram. Pp. 73-89. S.-Gravenhage: Mouton. [P. 78: on Messapic and Albanian terms for son and daughter.] HAVE Kaser, Karl. 1991. Das Problem des Entstehens der Stammesgesellschaften, Verwandtschafts- und geschlechtsverbnde in den Hochgebirgsregionen des westlichen Sdeuropa. Mnchener Zeitschrift fr Balkankunde 7-8: 141-165. Kaser, Karl. 1992. The Origins of Balkan Patriarchy. Modern Greek Studies Yearbook 8: 1-39. Kaser, Karl. 1993. Ahnenkult und Patriarchalismus auf dem Balkan. Zeitschrift fr Historische Anthropologie 1: 93-122. Kaser, Karl. HAVE 1994. The Balkan Joint Family: Redefining a Problem. Social Science History 18 (2): 243-269. Mosely, Philip E. 1953. The Distribution of the Zadruga Within Southeastern Europe. In The Joshua Starr Memorial Volume: Studies in History and Philology. Pp. 219-230. New York: Conference on Jewish Relations. Reprinted in: Communal Families in the Balkans: The Zadruga, edited by Robert F. Byrnes. Pp. 58-69. Notre Dame, IN: University of Notre Dame Press, 1976. Skok, P. HAVE 1931. De ltymologie roumaino-slave. In Omagiu Profesorului Ilie Brbulescu. Pp. 207215. Iai: Presa Bun. [On bata father and batina fathers tenure in Slavic and Romanian.] Stojanovich, Traian. 1980. Family and Household in the Western Balkans, 1500-1870. In Mmorial mer Lutfi Barkan. Pp. 189-203. Paris: Bibliothque de lInstitut Franais dtudes Anatoliennes dIstanbul. Todorova, Maria. 1989. Recent Research on Household and Family in the Balkans, 15-19th Century. In Von der Pruth-Ebene bis zum Gipfel des Ida: Festschrift zum 70. Geburtstag von Emanuel Turczynski. Ss. 11-22. Mnchen: Sdosteuropa-Gesellschaft Mnchen. Todorova, Maria. 1990. Myth-Making in European Family History: The Zadruga Revisited. East European Politics and Societies 4: 30-76.

Todorova, Maria. 1993. Balkan Family Structure and the European Pattern: Demographic Developments in Ottoman Bulgaria. Washington, DC: American University Press. Todorova, Maria. 1993. Slava und zadruga. Historische Anthropologie 1: 123-129. Todorova, Maria.

1996. Za epistemologichnata stoinost na semeinite modeli: Balkanite v evropeiskiya kontekst. Balkanistic Forum 3: 51-63.
Todorova, Maria. 1997. Zum erkenntnishistorischen Wert von Familienmodellen. Der Balkan und die europische Familie. In Historische Familienforschung. Ergebnisse und Kontroversen, herausgegeben von Josef Ehmer, Tamara K. Hareven, und Richard Wall. Ss. 283-300. Frankfurt and New York: Campus Verlag. Vernier, Bernard. 1977. Rapports de Parent et Rapports de Domination. tude de cas: 1) Reprsentation Mythique du Monde et Domination Masculine chez les Pomaques, 2) LOrdre Social des Ans Canacares Carpathos et sa Reproduction. Ph.D. dissetrtation. Paris. [Pomaks and Greeks.] BALTO-SLAVIC Brckner, Aleksander. 1917. Slavisch-Litauisch. In Die Erforschung der Indogermanischen Sprachen, herausgegeben von Wilhelm Streitberg. Pp. 1-108. Strassburg: Karl J. Trbner. [Pp. 86: kin term borrowings into Uralic languages; 96: on IE *swekurus in Slavic.] Leskien, A. HAVE 1879. Spuren der stammabstufenden Declination im Slavischen und Litauischen. Archiv fr Slavische Philologie 3: 108-111. [Pp. 110-111: on Balto-Slavic kin terms and their affixation.] Milewski, Tadeusz. 1947. Stosunki jzykowe polsko-pruskie. Slavia Occidentalis 18: 21-84. [P. 42: Prus. tisties and PSlav *tisti wifes father; 53: schostro sister.] HAVE GERMANO-BALTO-SLAVIC Senn, Alfred. 1954. Die Beziehungen des Baltischen zum Slavischen und Germanischen. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 71: 162-188. [P. 186: the term for daughter in GermanoBalto-Slavic.] HAVE EASTERN EUROPE Bardach, Julius. 1977. Lindivision familiale dans les pays du Centre-Est europen. In Famille et Parent dans lOccident Mdival, edited by Georges Duby and Jacques Le Goff. Pp. 335-353. Rome: cole Franaise de Rome.

Mitterauer, Michael, and Alexander Kagan. 1982. Russian and Eastern European Family Structures: A Comparative View. Journal of Family History 7: 103-131. Plakans, Andrejs. 1977. Identifying Kinfolk Beyond the Household. Journal of Family History 2: 3-27. Plakans, Andrejs. 1982. Ties of Kinship and Kinship Roles in an Historical Eastern European Community: A Synchronic Analysis. Journal of Family History 7: 52-75. Plakans, Andrejs. HAVE 1987. Interaction Between the Household and the Kin Group in the Eastern European Past: Posing the Problem. Journal of Family History 12 (1-3): 163-175. (Special issue: Family History at the Crossroads: Linking Familial and Historical Change, edited by Tamara Hareven and Andrejs Plakans.) Plakans, Andrejs, and Charles Wetherell. 1997. Auf der Suche nach einer Verortung: Die Geschichte der Familie in Osteuropa, 18002000. In Historische Familienforschung. Bilanz und Perspektiven, edited by Josef Ehmer, Tamara Hareven, and Richard Wall. Pp. 301325. Frankfurt: Campus. Sklar, June L. HAVE 1974. The Role of Marriage Behaviour in the Demographic Transition: The Case of eastern Europe Around 1900. Population Studies 28 (2): 231-247. Szoltysek, Mikolaj. 2008a. Rethinking Eastern Europe: Household-Formation Patterns in the PolishLithuanian Commonwealth and European Family System. Continuity and Change 23: 389-427. Szoltysek, Mikolaj. 2008b. Three Kinds of Preindustrial Household Formation System in Historical Eastern Europe: A Challenge to Spatial Patterns of the European Family. History of the Family 13 (3): 223-257. MEDITERRANEAN COLLECTIONS Meloni, B. (ed.) 1997. Famiglia Meridionale Senza Familismo. Strategie Economiche, Reti di Relazioni i Parentela. Roma: Donzelli. Ravis-Giordani, Georges. (ed.) 1987. Femmes et Patrimonie dans les Socits Rurales de lEurope Mditranenne. Paris: Editions du Centre National de la Recherche Scientifique. Reviews: Fine & Leduc 1986; Allen P. 1989. Woolf, Stuart J. (ed.) 1993. Espaces et Familles dans lEurope du Sud lge Modern: Adaptations et Resistances. Paris: Editions de la Maison des Sciences de lHomme.

GENERAL David, J. 1977. People of the Mediterranean: An Essay in Comparative Social Anthropology. London, etc.: Routledge & Kegan Paul. [Pp. 167-238: Family and Kinship.] Goddard, V. A. 1994. From the Mediterranean to Europe: Honour, Kinship and Gender. In The Anthropology of Europe: Identities and Boundaries in Conflict, edited by V. A. Goddard, J. R. Llobera and C. Shore. Pp. 57-92. Oxford: Berg. Just, Roger. 1989. Fathers and Father-in-Laws. Journal of the Anthropological Society of Oxford 11 (3): 157-169. [Mediterranean kinship. Reaction to Daviss critique in People of the Mediterranean.] Meloni, B. 1984. Famiglie di Pastori. Torino: Rosenberg & Sellier. Nassiet, Michel. 2006. Parent et pouvoir local en Mditerrane occidentale. Annales: Histoire, Sciences Sociales 61 (3): 633-645. Oppo, A. 1997. Famiglia, parentela e rapporti sociali. In Famiglia Meridionale Senza Familismo. Strategie Economiche, Reti di Relazioni i Parentela. Roma: Donzelli. Palumbo, B. 1989. Parentele mediterranee. La Citt Nuova 4 (5-6): 74-82. Ravis-Giordani, G. 1985. Sur lendogamie et lexogamie mditrranennes. In Hommage George Granai. Marseille: Universit de Provence, Universit dAix-Marseille-III. SCANDINAVIA Benedictow, Ole J. 1993. Family Structure. In Medieval Scandinavia, edited by Phillip Pulsiano and Kirsten Wolf. Pp. 177-183. New York and London: Garland. WESTERN EUROPE COLLECTIONS Beech, George, Monique Bourin, and Pascal Chareille. (eds.) 2002. Personal Names Studies of Medieval Europe: Social Identity and Familial Structures. Kalamazoo: Medieval Institute Publications, Western Michigan University. Goody, Jack, Joan Thirsk, and E. P. Thompson. (eds.) 1976. Family and Inheritance: Rural Society in Western Europe 1200-1800. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. GENERAL

Bloch, Marc. 1961. Feudal Society. Translated by L. A. Manyon. Chicago: University of Chicago Press. [Vol. 1, p. 138, Vol. 2, p. 143: thesis of the weakness of kinship ties as the cause for the development of feudalism in Europe.] Bourin, Monique. 2002. How Changes in Naming Reflect the Evolution of Familial Structures in Southern Europe, 950-1250. In Personal Names Studies of Medieval Europe: Social Identity and Familial Structures, edited by George Beech, Monique Bourin and Pascal Chareille. Pp. 3-14. Kalamazoo: Medieval Institute Publications, Western Michigan University. Le Jan, Rgine. 2002. Personal Names and the Transformation of Kinship in Early Medieval Society (Sixth to Tenth Centuries). In Personal Names Studies of Medieval Europe: Social Identity and Familial Structures, edited by George Beech, Monique Bourin and Pascal Chareille. Pp. 31-52. Kalamazoo: Medieval Institute Publications, Western Michigan University. Casey, James. 1989. The History of the Family. Oxford: Blackwell. [Transition from kinship to feudalism in Europe.] Review: Sumser 1992. Fontaine, Laurence. 2007. Kinship and Mobility: Migrant Networks in Europe. In Kinship in Europe: Approaches to Long-Term Development (1300-1900), edited by David W. Sabean, Simon Teuscher and Jon Mathieu. Pp. 193-210. New York and Oxford: Berghahn Books. Gaunt, David. 2001. Kinship: Thin Red Lines of Thick Blue Blood. In The History of the European Family, edited by David I. Kertzer and Marzio Barbagli. Vol. 1. Pp. 257-287. New Haven: Yale University Press. Glendon, Mary A. 1989. The Transformation of Family Law: State, Law, and Family in the United States and Western Europe. Chicago: University of Chicago Press. [Cross-listed in AMERICA.] Goody, Jack. 1976. Inheritance, Property, and Women: Some Comparative Considerations. In Family and Inheritance: Rural Society in Western Europe, 1200-1800, edited by Jack Goody, Joan Trisk and E. P. Thompson. Pp. 10-36. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Gouesse, Jean-Marie. 1986. Mariages de proches parents (XVIe-XXe sicle). In Le Modle Familiale Europen: Normes, Dviances, Contrle du Pouvoir. Pp. 31-61. Rome. Hohkamp, Michaela. 2007. Sisters, Aunts and Cousins: Familial Architectures and the Political Field in Early Modern Europe. In Kinship in Europe: Approaches to Long-Term Development (1300-

1900), edited by David W. Sabean, Simon Teuscher and Jon Mathieu. Pp. 91-104. New York and Oxford: Berghahn Books. Jacobson, H. E. 1963. Concepts of Kinship in the Study of Urban Western Society. M.A. thesis. London School of Economics. Joris, Elizabeth. 2007. Kinship and Gender: Property, Enterprise and Politics. In Kinship in Europe: Approaches to Long-Term Development (1300-1900), edited by David W. Sabean, Simon Teuscher and Jon Mathieu. Pp. 231-257. New York and Oxford: Berghahn Books. [Europe from the Middle Age into the Modern Period.] MacFarlane, Alan. 2002. The Making of the Modern World: Visions from the West and East. New York: Palgrave. [Kinship and feudalism in European history.] Ozment, Steven E. 1983. When Fathers Ruled: Family Life in Reformation Europe. Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press. Reviews: Benedict P. 1984; Safley 1984. Pina-Cabral, J. de. 1990. Lhritage de Maine: Repenser les categories dscriptives dans ltude de la famille en Europe. Ethnologie Franaise 19 (4): 329-340. Plakans, Andrejs. 1984. Kinship in the Past: An Anthropology of European Family Life, 1500-1900. Oxford and New York, NY: B. Blackwell. Reviews: Goody 1986; Kertzer 1986; Parkin 1986a, 1986b; Smith 1987; Tilly 1987; Jasiewicz 1988. Sabean, David W. 1976. Aspects of Kinship Behaviour and Property in Rural Western Europe Before 1800. In Family and Inheritance: Rural Society in Western Europe, 1200-1800, edited by Jack Goody, Joan Trisk and E. P. Thompson. Pp. 96-111. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Sabean, David W. 2007. Kinship and Class Dynamics in Nineteenth-Century Europe. In Kinship in Europe: Approaches to Long-Term Development (1300-1900), edited by David W. Sabean, Simon Teuscher and Jon Mathieu. Pp. 301-313. New York and Oxford: Berghahn Books. Sabean, David W., and Simon Teuscher. 2007. Kinship in Europe: A New Approach to Long-Term Development. In Kinship in Europe: Approaches to Long-Term Development (1300-1900), edited by David W. Sabean, Simon Teuscher and Jon Mathieu. Pp. 1-32. New York and Oxford: Berghahn Books. Scott, J., and L. A. Tilly. 1975. Womens Work and Family in Nineteenth-Century Europe. Comparative Studies in Society and History 17: 319-323.

Seccombe, Wally. 1990. The Western European Marriage Pattern in Historical Perspective: A Response to David Levine. Journal of Historical Sociology 3: 50-74. Sperling, Jutta. HAVE 2004. Marriage at the Time of the Council of Trent (1560-70): Clandestine Marriages, Kinship Prohibitions, and Dowry Exchange in European. Journal of Early Modern History 8 (1-2): 67-108. Sperling, Jutta. HAVE 2007. Dowry or Inheritance? Kinship, Property, and Womens Agency in Lisbon, Venice, and Florence (1572). Journal of Early Modern History 11 (3): 197-238. Wheaton, R. B. 1975. Family and Kinship in Western Europe: The Problem of the Joint Family Household. Journal of Interdisciplinary History 4: 601-628. KIN TERMS and ZOONYMS Alinei, Mario. 1981. Barbagianni zio Giovanni e altri animali-parenti: origine totemica degli zoonimi parentelari. Quaderni di Semantica 2: 363-385. Alinei, Mario. 1983. Altri zoonimi parentelari. Quaderni di Semantica 4: 241-251. Alinei, Mario. 1984. Dal totemismo al cristianesimo popolare: Sviluppi semantici nei dialetti italiani ed europei. Alessandria: Edizioni dellOrso. Alinei, Mario. HAVE 1985. Evidence for Totemism in European Dialects. International Journal of American Linguistics 51 (4): 331-334. [IE and Italian dialectal names for animals as derived from kin terms.] Alinei, Mario. 1986. Belette. In Atlas Linguarum Europae I, 2, Carte 28, Commentaires. Pp. 145-224. Asse: Van Gorcum. [Kin names for the weasel.] Alinei, Mario. 1988. Slavic baba and Other Old Women in European Dialects: A Semantic Comparison. In Wokl Jzyka: Rozprawy i Studia Poswiecone Pamieci Profesora Mieczysawa Szymczaka, edited by Mieczysaw Basaj. Pp. 41-51. Wrocaw: Zakad Narodowy im. Ossolinskich. Alinei, Mario. HAVE 1997. Magico-Religious Motivations in European Dialects: A Contribution to Archaeolinguistics. Dialectologia et Geolinguistica 5: 3-30. [An English rendition of findings obtained in the course of the authors work with the Linguistic Atlas of Europe, illustrating connections between different semantic fields, including kin terms and zoonyms, in European dialects. Includes comparison with non-European languages of Siberia, Southeast Asia and Africa.] Zieliski, T.

1889. Das Wiesel als Braut. Rheinische Museum fr Philologie 44: 156-157. KIN TERMS and METEORONYMS Alinei, Mario. 1984. Riflessioni sui meteoronimi parentelari. Quaderni di Semantica 5 (2, 10): 235-243. MEDIEVAL EUROPEAN KINSHIP COLLECTIONS of ESSAYS Duby, Georges, and Jacques Le Goff. (eds.) 1977. Famille et Parent dans lOccident Mdival: Actes du Colloque de Paris (6-8 Juin 1974), organis par lcole Pratique des Hautes tudes (VIe section) en collaboration avec le Collge de France et lcole Franaise de Rome. Rome: cole Franaise de Rome. Jssen, B. 2000. Spiritual Kinship as Social Practice: Godparenthood and Adoption in the Early Middle Ages. Delaware: University of Delaware Press. GENERAL Althoff, Gerd. 1990. Verwandte, Freunde und Getreue: Zum Politischen Stellenwert der Gruppenbindungen im Frhen Mittelalter. Darmstadt: Wissenschaftliche Buchgesellschaft. English translation: Family, Friends and Followers: Political and Social Bonds in Medieval Europe. Translated by Christopher Carroll. Cambridge and New York: Cambridge University Press, 2004. Barthlemy, D. 1988. Parentela. In La Vita Private del Feudalismo al Rinascimento, a cura di P. Aris e G. Duby. Pp. 71-128. Bari: Laterza. Baschet, J. 2000. Le Sein du Pre: Abraham et la Paternit dans lOccident Mdival. Paris: Gallimard. Bouchard, Constance B. 1981. Consanguinity and Noble Marriages in the Tenth and Eleventh Century. Speculum 2: 268-287. Brundage, James A. 1987. Law, Sex, and Christian Society in Medieval Europe. Chicago: University of Chicago Press. Bullough, D. A. HAVE 1969. Early Medieval Social Groupings: The Terminology of Kinship. Past and Present 45: 3-18. DAvray, David.

2001. Lay Kinship Solidarity and Papal Law. In Law, Laity, and Solidarities: Essays in Honour of Susan Reynolds, edited by P. Stafford, J. L. Nelson, and J. Martindale. Pp. 188199. Manchester: Manchester University Press. Duby, Georges. 1978. Medieval Marriage. Baltimore: John Hopkins University Press. Gies, Frances, and Joseph Gies. 1987. Marriage and the Family in the Middle Ages. New York: Harper & Row. Guerreau-Jalabert, Anita. 1981. Sur les structures de parent dans lEurope mdivale (Note critique). Annales conomies, Socits, Civilisations 36 (6): 1028-1049. Guerreau-Jalabert, Anita, Regine Le Jean, and Joseph Morsel. 2002. Familles et parents. De lhistorie de la famille a lanthropologie de la parent. In Les Tendances Actuelles de lHistorie du Moyen ge en France et en Allemagne, edit par Jean-Claude Schmidt et Otto G. Oexle. Pp. 433-446. Paris. Hauck, Karl. 1977. Formes de parent artificielle dans le Haut Moyen Age. In Famille et Parent dans lOccident Mdival, edited by Georges Duby and Jacques Le Goff. Pp. 43-47. Rome: cole Franaise de Rome. Herlihy, David. 1985. Medieval Households. Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press. Herlihy, David. 1990. Making Sense of Incest: Women and the Marriage Rules of the Early Middle Ages. In Law, Custom, and the Social Fabric in Medieval Europe, edited by B. S. Bachrach and D. Nicholas. Pp. 1-16. Kalamazon, MI: Medieval Institute Publications. Hpper, D. 1993. Poesie und Recht aus einem Bette. Zu Verhaltensnormen und Umgangsformen in der mittelalterlichen Familie und Verwandtschaft. Frhmittelalterliche Studien 27: 87123. Jussen, Bernhard. 1991. Verwandte, Freunde, Schwurgenossen. Memoria in der Gesellschaft des Mittelalters. Frankfurter Rundschau 27. August. S. 13. (Newspaper article.) Jussen, Bernhard. 1997. Verwandtschaft. In Lexikon des Mittelalters. T. 8. Pp. 1596-1599. Mnchen: Artemis. Jussen, Bernhard. 2002. Familie und Verwandtschaft. Ein Kommentar zum Forschungsbericht von Anita Guerreau, Regine Le Jan und Joseph Morsel. In Mittelalterforschung in Deutschland und Frankreich Heute, herausgegeben von Otto Gerhard Oexle und Jean-Claude Schmitt. Gttingen. Klapisch-Zuber, Christiane.

1976. Parenti, amici e vicini: Il territorio urbano duna famiglia mercantile nel XV secolo. Quaderni Storici 33: 953-982. Klapisch-Zuber, Christiane. 2000. LOmbre des Anctres: Essai sur lImaginaire Mdival de la Parent. Paris: Fayard. Le Goff, Jacques. 1977. Le rituel symbolique de la vassalite. In Simboli e Simbologia nellAlto Medioevo. Pp. 679-788. Spoleto: Centro Italiano di Studi sullAlto Medioevo. [Vassalage as ritual kinship.] Reprinted in: Pour un Autre Moyen ge: Temps, Travail et Culture en Occident. Pp. 249420. Paris: Gallima, 1977. Translated into English as Symbolic Ritual of Vassalage in Time, Work and Culture, by Jacques Le Goff. Pp. 237-287. Chicago: University of Chicago Press, 1980. Lett, Didier. 2000. Famille et Parent dans lOccident Medieval, Ve-XVe Sicle. Paris: Hachette. Lynch, Joseph H. 1980. Spiritual Kinship and Sexual Prohibitions in Early Medieval Europe. Proceedings of the 6th International Congress of Medieval Canon Law, Berkeley, California, August, 1980. Lynch, Joseph H. 1986. Godparents and Kinship in Early Medieval Europe. Princeton, N.J.: Princeton University Press. Review: Keefe 1987. Maillet, Chlo. 2010. quelle anthropologie de la parent se rfrent les historiens? Lhistoire de la parent spirituelle mdivale lpreuve des new kinship studies. LAtelier du Centre de Recherches Historiques 6. Morganstern, Anne McG. 2000. Gothic Tombs of Kinship in France, the Low Countries, and England. College Park PA: Penn State Press. Nelson, Janet. 1997. Family, Gender and Sexuality in the Middle Ages. In Companion to Historiography, edited by Michael Bentley. Pp. 153-176. London and New York: Routledge. Ral, Isabelle, and Pierre Bonnassie. 2001. Vies de Saints, vie de Famille: Reprsentation et Systme de la Parent dans le Royaume Mrovingien (481-751) daprs les Sources Hagiographiques. Turnhout, Belgium: Brepols.

Schmid, Elisabeth. 1986. Familiengeschichte und Heilsmythologie: Die Verwandtschaftsstrukturen in den Franzsischen und Deutschen Gralsromanen des 12. und 13. Jahrhunderts. Tbingen: Niemeyer. 270 S. Tenenti, Alberto. 1977. Famille bourgeoise et idologie au Bas Moyen Age. In Famille et Parent dans lOccident Mdival, edited by Georges Duby and Jacques Le Goff. Pp. 431-440. Rome: cole Franaise de Rome. Verdon, Michel. 1988. Virgins and Widows: European Kinship and Early Christianity. Man 23 (3): 488505. Werner, Karl F. 1977. Liens de parent et noms de personne. Un problme historique et mthodologique. In Famille et Parent dans lOccident Mdival, edited by Georges Duby and Jacques Le Goff. Pp. 13-18, 25-34. Rome: cole Franaise de Rome. ALBANIAN Backer, Berit. 1979. Behind the Stone Walls: Changing Household Organization among the Albanians in Yugoslavia. Oslo. Backer, Berit. 1983. Mother, Sister, Daughter, Wife: The Pillars of the Traditional Albanian Patriarchal Society. In Women in Islamic Societies, edited by Bo Utas. Pp. 48-65. London: Curzon. Bari, Henrik. 1919. Albanorumnische Studien. T. 1. Sarajewo: Instituts fr Balkanforschung. [Pp. 2-3, 37-38, 61-62, 113-114: etymologies of Albanian terms for older brother, grandmother, daughter-in-law and young girl.] HAVE Bopp, Franz. 1855. ber das Albanesische in seinen Verwandtschaftlichen Beziehungen. Berlin: J. A. Stargardt. [On Albanian kin terms: pp. 3, 36, 55, 78.] HAVE Bugge, Sophus. 1892. Beitrge zur etymologischen Erluterung der albanesischen Sprache. Beitrge zur Kunde der Indogermansiochen Sprachen 18: 161-201. [Pp. 169, 176-177, 180: etymologies of Albanian words for father-in-law, grandfather and niece.] HAVE Camarda, Demetrio. 1864. Saggio di Grammatologia Comparata sulla Lingua Albanese. Livorno: Egisto Vignozzi. [P. 72, 75: etymology of Alb gjysh grandfather from *gelous-, Gk galoos, Lat gloos husbands sister; 72, 115: on motre sister; 83: vjeherr father-in-law.] Doja, Albert. HAVE 1998. Inscription patronymique et mythologie de fondation: Elements danalyse pour genealogie des noms de personne chez les Albanais. Anthropos 93: 155-172. Doja, Albert.

1999. Morphologie traditionnelle de la socit albanaise. Social Anthropology 7 (1): 3755. Dojaka, Abaz. 1980. La caractre des unions conjugales avant la liberation. Ethnographie Albanaise 11: 54-74. Erlich, Vera. 1976. The Last Big Zadrugas: Albanian Extended Families in the Kosovo Region. In Communal Families in the Balkans: The Zadruga, edited by Robert F. Byrnes. Pp. 244251. Notre Dame, IN: University of Notre Dame Press. Haberlandt, Arthur. 1917. Kulturwissenschaftliche Beitrge zur Volkskunde von Montenegro, Albanien und Serbien. Wien: Verlag des Vereines fur sterreichische Volkskunde. [Pp. 129-134: Albanian family and clan.] Hammel, Eugene A. HAVE 1957. Serbo-Croatian Kinship Terminology, with an appendix on Albanian Terms. Kroeber Anthropological Society 16: 45-75. [Cross-listed in SERBIAN.] Hamp, Eric P. 1962. Albanian Corrigenda to Pokornys Indogermanisches Etymologisches Wrterbuch. Indogermanische Forschungen 67 (2): 142-150. [Nos. 882, 1044: kin terms.] HAVE Hamp, Eric P. HAVE 1966. The Position of Albanian. In Ancient Indo-European Dialects. Proceedings of the Conference on Indo-European Linguistics held at the University of California, Los Angeles, April 25-27, 1963, edited by Henrik Birnbaum and Jaan Puhvel. Pp. 201-211. Berkeley and Los Angeles: University of California Press. [Pp. 112: on Albanian terms for son and daughter in the context of Messapic and Latin.] HAVE Hamp, Eric P. HAVE 1986. Alb. vajz, motr. In Studi Albanologici, Balcanici, Bizantini e Orientali in Onore di Giuseppe Valentini, edited by P. Carlo Messori Roncaglia and G. B. Pellegrini. Pp. 109-110. Firenze: Olschki. [Terms for girl and sister.] Hasluck, Margaret. 1954. The Unwritten Law in Albania. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. [Pp. 2533: kinship and marriage, including a pattern for classifying kin.] Huld, Martin E. HAVE 1979. Albanian vjerr and IE. In-Law Terms. Indogermanische Forschungen 84: 196-200. Huld, Martin E. 1983. Basic Albanian Etymologies. Columbus, OH: Slavica Publishers. [See especially entries for dhender, gjyish, mbese, moter, nuse, vella, having extensive commentary. Pp. 95-96: on Omaha system in Proto-Indo-European.] Jokl, Norbert. 1923. Linguistisch-Kulturhistorische Untersuchungen aus dem Bereiche des Albanischen. Berlin and Leipzig: Walter de Gruyter. [Pp. 4-52: family and kin nomenclature.] HAVE

Kdderitzsch, Rolf. 1994. Alb. grua, grue Frau, Weib; Ehefrau, Gattin. In Indogermanica et Caucasica: Festschrift fur Karl Horst Schmidt zum 65. Geburtstag, herausgegeben von Roland Bielmeier und Reinhard Stempel. Pp. 67-76. berlin and New York: Walter de Gruyter. Krasniqi, Mark. 1980. La grande famille patriarcale albanaise a Kosove. Ethnographie Albanaise 10: 2757. La Piana, Marco. 1949. Studi Linguistici Albanesi. Palermo: Pezzino. [Pp. 3-4: bir son, bije daughter; 34: vella brother.] HAVE Meyer, Gustav. 1883. Albanesiche Studien I. Die Pluralbindungen der Albanesischen Nomina. Wien: Carl Gerolds Sohn. [Pp. 61, 75: kin terms in etymological series.] HAVE Meyer, Gustav. 1892. Albanesiche Studien III. Lautlehre der indogermanischen Bestandtheile des Albanesischen. Sitzungberichte der Philosophisch-Historischen Classe der Kaiserlichen Akademie der Wissenschaften 125: 1-95. [P. 5: on Alb vjeher father-in-law instead of expected vjether.] Meyer, Gustav. HAVE 1884. Die Stellung des Albanesischem im Kreise der indogermanischen Sprachen. Beitrge zur Kunde der Indogermanischen Sprachen 8: 185-194. [P. 189, 191, 192: etymologies of some kin terms.] Meyer, Gustav. HAVE 1891. Etymologisches Wrterbuch der Albanesichen Sprachen. Strassburg: Karl J. Trbner. [Pp. 264-265: Alb mbese, bese niece connected to OHG basa fathers sister and Latv mosa older sister.] lberg, Hermann M. HAVE 1968. Idg. k
vor u im Albanischen. In Studien zur Sprachwissenschaft und Kulturkunde. Gedenkschrift fr Wilhelm Brandenstein (1898-1967), herausgegeben von Manfred Mayrhofer. Innsbruck: Institut fr Sprachwissenschaft der Universitt Innsbruck. [Pp. 111: gjysh grandfather, 114: vjeherr father-in-law.] Orel, Vladimir. 2000. A Concise Historical Grammar of the Albanian Language. Reconstruction of ProtoAlbanian. Leiden, etc.: Brill. [P. 230: kinship plurals; comparison with Slavic; 261-262: Albanian kin terminology.] HAVE Pedersen, Holger. 1894. Albanesische Etymologien. Beitrge zur Kunde der Indogermanischen Sprachen 20: 228-238. [P. 232: etymology of the Albanian word for niece.] Pedersen, Holger. 1895. Die albanesischen l-Laute. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 33: 535551. [Pp. 541-542: on Alb bir son, bije daughter.] HAVE Pedersen, Holger. HAVE

1900. Die Gutturale im Albanesischen. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 36: 277-340. [P. 383: on nuse; 289-290, 324: on zone, zot spouse, 339: on vjeherr.] Pisani, Vittore. 1950. Lalbanais et les autres langues indo-europennes. Annuaire de lInstitut de Philologie et dHistoire Orientales et Slaves 10: 519-538. (Mlanges Henry Grgorie. II.) [Pp. 524: IE nt > nd, as in dhnderr, n-dnj = Gk -; 526: vjeherr.] Reprinted in: Saggi di Linguistica Storica. Scritti Scelti di Vittore Pisani. Pp. 96-114. Torino: Rosenberg & Sellier. [P. 103: an interpretation of vjeherr father-in-law from *sweskuro-.] Pisani, Vittore. 1955. Lexikalische Beziehungen des Albanesischen zu den anderen Indogermanischen Sprachen. Jahrbuch fr Kleinasiatische Forschung 3 (1): 147-167. Reprinted in: Saggi di Linguistica Storica. Scritti Scelti di Vittore Pisani. Pp. 115-135. Torino: Rosenberg & Sellier. [P. 130: term for son-in-law in Albanian and other IE languages.] HAVE Polk, Vclav. HAVE 1967. Domaine albanais. Les elements caucasien en albanais. Orbis 16 (1):122-149. [Pp. 130-131: on Alb bir son; 137-138: on Alb nuse bride, daughter-in-law; 146: on Alb bac older brother.] Popovi, I. 1954. Neki Gentilni i Njima Srodni Termini kod Crnogoraca i Arbanasa. Sarajevo. [Cross-listed in MONTENEGRO.] Rapper, Gilles de. 1998. La Frontire Albanaise. Famille, Socit et Identit Collective en Albanie du Sud. Ph.D. dissertation. Paris: Paris X-Nanterre. Rapper, Gilles de. 2000. Entre masculine et feminine. La vierge jure, lhritire et le gendre la maison. LHomme 154-155: 457-466. Resta, Patrizia. 1991. Parentela ed Identit Etnica: Consanguineit e Scambi Matrimoniali in una Comunit Italo-Albanese. Milano: F. Angeli. 357 P. Shabashov, A. V. 1997. Sistema rodstva albantsev. 1. Sistema rodstva albantsev metropolii. Zapysky Istorychnoho fakultetu. Odeskyi derzhavnyi universytet imeni I.I. Mechnykova 5: 30-36. [Albanians of Albania.] Shabashov, A. V. 1998. Sistema rodstva albantsev. 2. Sistema rodstva albantsev Ukrainy. Zapysky Istorychnoho fakultetu. Odeskyi derzhavnyi universytet imeni I.I. Mechnykova 7: 20-25. [Albanians (Tosks) of Ukraine.] Tagliavini, Carlo.

1937. LAlbanese di Dalmazia. Contributi alla Conoscenza del Dialetto Ghego di Borgo Erizzo Presso Zara. Firenze: Leo S. Olschki. [Pp. 83, 207-208, 282: etymologies of several kin terms.] Tagliavini, Carlo. HAVE 1947-1948. Contributi allo studio della stratificazione del lessico albanese. I. Famiglia e parentela. Atti dellIstituto Veneto di Scienze, Lettere ed Arti 56 (2): 194-220. Tagliavini, Carlo. 1965. La Stratificazione del lessico Albanese. Elementi Indoeuropei. Bologna: Casa Editrice Prof. Riccardo Ptron. [Pp. 109-130: Kinship and Family.] HAVE Tirta, Mark. 1980. Aspects du culte des ancetres et des morts chez les albanais. Ethnographie Albanaise 10: 59-106. [Includes the transmission of names between relatives.] Treimer, Karl. 1924-1925. Review of Norbert Jokl: Linguistisch-Kultuthistorische Untersuchungen aus dem Bereiche des Albanischen. Slavia 3: 447-456. [P. 451: on several kin terms (nip, vjeherr, dhender.] Treimer, Karl. 1914. Beitrge zur albanischen Sprachgeschichte. varze Jungfrau. Mitteilungen des Rumnischen Instituts an der Universitt Wien 1: 365-366. HAVE Treimer, Karl. 1938. Der f-Laut im Albanischen. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 65: 78118. [Pp. 107-108: Aln vajze girl and Arm ordi son, Slav *rodt to give birth.] Valentini, Guiseppe. 1945. La famiglia nel diritto tradizionale albanese. Annali Lateranensi 9: 9-212. Vtescu, C. 1997. Termes dorigine latine concernant la parent, conservs en albanais et en roumain. Revue des tudes Sud-Est Europennes 35 (3-4): 189-196. [Cross-listed in ROMANIAN.] Vidov, Boidar. 1975. Croatian Grammar for Upper Level Secondary Schools in Emigration/ Hrvatska Slovnica za Vise Razrede Puckih Skola u Iseljenistvu. Toronto: B. Vidov. 119 P. [P. 103: some kin terms in syntactic constructions.] Review: Regier 1978. Vinsky, Z. 1938. Die Sudslavische Grossfamilie in Ihrer Beziehung zum Asiatischen Grossraum. Zagreb. Whitaker, Ian. 1976. Familial Roles in the Extended Patrilineal Kin-Group in Northern Albania. In Mediterranean Family Structures, edited by J. G. Peristiany. Pp. 195-204. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press.

Weigand, Gustav. 1913. Albanesische Grammatik im Sdgegischen Dialekt (Durazzo, Elbassan, Tirana). Leipzig: Johann Ambrosius. [Pp. 17, 18-19: the use of articles with kin terms.] HAVE Zhugra, A. V. 1998. Albanskie sotsionimy i sistema terminov rodstva. Algebra Rodstva 2: 167-185. St. Petersburg. ANATOLIAN GENERAL Bader, Franoise. HAVE 1988. Noms de paren anatoliens et formations laryngale. In Die Laryngaltheorie und die Rekonstruktion des Indogermanischen Laut- und Formensystems, herausgegeben von Alfred Bammesberger. Pp. 17-48. Heidelberg: Carl Winter. Carruba, Onofrio. 2000. Zur berlieferung einiger Namen und Appellativa der Arier von Mittani: A Luwian Look?. In Indoarisch, Iranisch und die Indogermanistik. Arbeitstagung der Indogermanischen Gesellschaft vom 2. bis 5. Oktober 1997 in Erlangen, herausgegeben von Bernhard Forssman und Robert Plath. Ss. 51-67. Wiesbaden: Reichert. [P. 54: the shift gn > nn in Anatolian kin terms.] Georgiev, Vladimir I. 1966. Introduzione alla Storia delle Lingue Indeuropee. Roma: Edizioni dellAteneo. [Pp. 230-231, 234: kin terms in Luwian and Lycian, including the first identification of the IE word for daughter.] Eichner, Heiner. 1973. Die Etymologie von heth. mehur. Mnchener Studien zur Sprachwissenschaft 51 : 53-108. [P. 100, n. 88: on Anatolian words for grandfather and their accentology.] HAVE Gusmani, Roberto. 1962. Kleinasiatische Verwandtschaftsnamen. Die Sprache 8 (1): 77-83. HAVE

Laroche, Emmanuel. 1958. Comparaison du Louvite et du Lycien. Bulletin de la Socit de Linguistique de Paris 53 (1): 159-197. [Pp. 186-193: kin terms.] HAVE Laroche, Emmanuel. HAVE 1972. Comparaison du Louvite et du Lycien. Bulletin de la Socit de Linguistique de Paris 67 (1): 46-66. [Pp. 48: kin term for daughter.] Melchert, Craig H. 1987. Reflexes of *h3 in Anatolian. Die Sprache 33: 19-28. [P. 20, n. 3: on the vocalization of H2 in Anatolian on the example of the terms for daughter.] Melchert, Craig H. HAVE 1990. Adjectives in *-iyo in Anatolian. Historische Sprachforschung 103: 198-207. [Some adjectives from kin trems, e.g., CLuv naanieya fraternal, nimuwiyaya filial, Lyc epnnene, apnxahba, etc.] Oettinger, Norbert. HAVE

1976. Zum Wort- und Bilderschatz der luwischen Sprachen. Mnchener Studien zur Sprachwissenschaft 34: 101-107. [P. 101-102: IE word for daughter in Anatolian.] Ofitsch, Michaela. HAVE 1998. Indogermanischer Grundwortschatz in den anatolischen Sprachen: Probleme der Rekonstruktion anhand der Verwandtschaftsbezeichnungen. In Sprache und Kultur der Indogermanen. Akten der X. Fachtagung der Indogermanischen Gesellschaft Innsbruck, 22.-28. September 1996, herausgegeben von Wolfgang Meid. Pp. 422-436. Innsbruck: Institut fr Sprachwissenschaft der Universitt Innsbruck. Puhvel, Jaan. HAVE 1998. Update on Labiovelars in Hittite. In Sprache und Kultur der Indogermanen. Akten der X. Fachtagung der Indogermanischen Gesellschaft Innsbruck, 22.-28. September 1996, herausgegeben von Wolfgang Meid. Pp. 211-215. Innsbruck: Institut fr Sprachwissenschaft der Universitt Innsbruck. [P. 213: on the word for woman, wife in Anatolian.] HAVE Puhvel, Jaan. 1992. Philology and Etymology, with Focus on Anatolian. In Reconstructing Languages and Cultures, edited by Edgar Polom and Werner Winter. Pp. 261-270. Berlin and New York: Walter de Gruyter. [An etymological interpretation of the Anatolian terms for grandchild.] Watkins, Calvert. 1995. Some Anatolian Words and Forms: Hitt. negna-, nega-, Luv. *niya-, nni-. In Verba et Structurae. Festschrift fr Klaus Strunk zum 65. Geburtstag, herausgegeben von Heinrich Hettrich. Ss. 357-361. Innsbruck: Institut fr Sprachwissenschaft der Universitt Innsbruck. [Anatolian terms for siblings.] Weeks, David M. HAVE 1985. Hittite Vocabulary: An Anatolian Appendix to Bucks Dictionary of Selected Synonyms in the Principal Indo-European Languages. Ph.D. dissertation. University of California Los Angeles. [Pp. 23-33: kin terms in Anatolian languages.] COMPARATIVE Carruba, Onofrio. 1995. Haeretica heteroclitica, oder Ursprung und Entwicklung anatolischer Abstraktbildungen. In Akten des H. Pedersen-Kolloquiums der Indoegramanischen Gesellschaft, 1993. Pp. 41-55. Kobenhavn. [Pp. 47: Lycian and Luwian terms for daughter as -ter-carrying nouns.] Pedersen, Holger. 1945. Lykisch und Hittitisch. Kbenhavn: I Kommission hos Ejnar Munksgaard. [Pp. 2526: on terms for grandparents.] HAVE Review: Sturtevant 1948 (see below). Neumann, Gnther. 1996. Hethitisch-luwische Verwandtschaftswrter. Die Sprache 38 (1): 1-13. Kammenhuber, Annelies. HAVE

1961a. Nominalkomposition in den anatolischen Sprachen des 2. Jahrtausends. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 77 (3-4): 161-218. [Pp. 190-192: on IE *sr woman and its reflexes in Anatolian.] HAVE Kammenhuber, Annelies. 1961b. Zur Stellung des Hethitisch-Luvischen innerhalb der indogermanischen. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 77 (1-2): 31-75. [P. 56, n. 1: on terms for grandfather.] HAVE evoroshkin, Vitalij V. HAVE 1977. Zu einigen Verwandtschaftsbezeichnungen im Lykischen und Milyischen. Mnchener Studien zur Sprachwissenschaft 36: 131-144. Sturtevant, Edgar H. HAVE 1928. Some Nouns of Relationship in Lycian and Hittite. Transactions and Proceedings of the American Philological Association 59: 48-56. Sturtevant, Edgar. 1948. Review of Lykisch und Hittitisch, by Holger Pedersen. Language 24 (3): 314-316. [On Hitt hanna-, atta-, huhha- and its Lycian parallels.] HITTITE Beckman, Gary M. 1986. Inheritance and Royal Succession Among the Hittites. In Kanissuwar A Tribute to Hans G. Gterbock on His Seventy-Fifth Birthday, May 27, 1983, edited by Harry A. Hoffnerm and Gary M. Beckman. Pp. 13-31. Chicago: Oriental Institute. Bin-Nun, R. Shoshana. 1975. The Tawananna in the Hittite Kingdom. Heidelberg: Carl Winter. Review: Haas 1977. Brosch, Cyril. HAVE 2008. Nominalkomposita und Kompositionsahnliche Strukturen im Appellativen Wortschatz des Hethitischen. Ph.D. dissertation. Berlin. [Pp. 32-33: some composite kin terms.] Brosman, Paul W. 1982. Designation of Females in Hittite. Journal of Indo-European Studies 10: 65-70. Carruba, Onofrio. 1993. Hethitische kuinna- Frau, kuwansa- weiblich und anderes. Historische Sprachforschung 106: 262-271. HAVE

Carruba, Onofrio. HAVE 1994. Der Stamm fr Frau im Hethitischen. In Iranian and Indo-European Studies: Memorial Volume of Otakar Klma, edited by Petr Vavrousek. Pp. 13-25. Praha: Enigma. Eichner, Heiner. 1979. Hethitisch genussus, ginussi, ginussin. In Hethitisch und Indogermanisch. Studien zur Historische Grammatik und zur Dialektgeographischen Stellung der Indogermanischen Sprachgruppe Altkleinasiens, herausgegeben von Erich Neu und

Wolfgang Meid. Ss. 41-62. Innsbruck: Institut fr Sprachwissenschaft der Universitt Innsbruck. [P. 58, n. 54: on Hitt hassa-hanzassa.] HAVE Garrett, Andrew. 1998. Remarks on the Old Hittite Split Genitive. In Mr Curad: Studies in Honor of Calvert Watkins, edited by Craig H. Melchert and Lisa Olivier. Pp. 155-163. Innsbruck: Institut fr Sprachwissenschaft. [On Hittite possessive constructions.] Gordon, Cyrus H. HAVE 2000. Fathers Sons and Mothers Daughters: The Problem of Indo-European/Semitic Relationships. In The Asia Minor Connexion: Studies on the Pre-Greek Languages in Memory of Charles Carter, edited by Jol L. Arbeitman. Pp. 77-84. Louvain: Peeters. (Orbis: Supplementa 13.) [Hittite expressions brothers by the same father, sisters by the same mother and their Hebrew parallels. Cross-listed in AFROASIATIC] Gtze, Albrecht. HAVE 1930. ber die Hethitische Knigsfamilie. Archiv Orientln 2: 153-163. [On Hittite hassa-hanzassa as grandchild-grandparent.] Gterbock, Hans G. 1992. Ist das hethitische Wort fr Frau gefunden? Historische Sprachforschung 105: 1-3. Gterbock, Hans G. HAVE 1995. The Hittite Word for Woman Again. Historische Sprachforschung 108: 12-15. Haas, Volkert 1970. Der Kult von Nerik. Ein Beitrag zur Hethitischen Religionsgeschichte. Rom: Ppstliches Bibelinstitut. [Pp. 315-318: on matrilinearity.] Haas, Volkert. HAVE 1977. Review of The Tawananna in the Hittite Kingdom, by R. Shoshana Bin-Nun. Wiener Zeitschrift fr die Kunde des Morgenlandes 69: 150-156. [Extensively on Hittite kin terms, matrilocality and sister-marriage.] Hanar, Franz. 1939-1941. Der Kult der Grossen Mutter im kupferzeitlichen Kleinasiens. Zur Deutung der Kultstandarten des Alaca Hyks. Archiv fr Orientalforschung 13: 289-298. Hoffner, Harry A. HAVE 1968. Birth and Name-Giving in Hittite Texts. Journal of Near Eastern Studies 27 (3): 198-203. [The custom of placing a child on his fathers knees.] Justeson, John S., and Laurence D. Stephens. HAVE 1981. Nasal + Obstruent Clusters in Hittite. Journal of the American Oriental Society 101 (3): 367-370. [P. 369: Hitt hansatar family and IE *genos.] Landsberger, Benno. 1954. Assyrische Knigsliste und Dunkles Zeitalter. Journal of Cuneiform Studies 8 (3): 106-133. [Pp. 122-123: Hittite son in the IE context (pace Eric Hamp).] HAVE Macqueen, J. G. 1959. Hattian Mythology and Hittite Monarchy. Anatolian Studies 9: 171-188. [Pp. 180188: the mother-goddess and associated kin terms.]

Melchert, Craig H. 1973. Hittite haa- hanzaa- Revue Hittite et Asianique 31: 57-70. Melchert, Craig H. 1980. The Hittite Word for Son. Indogermanische Forschungen 85: 90-95.

HAVE HAVE

Melchert, H. Craig. HAVE 1986. Hittite uwa and Congeners. Indogermanische Forschungen 91: 102-115. [An alleged term for son.] Mezger, Fritz. HAVE 1939. Hittite ha-as-sa ha-an-za-as-sa. Language 15 (3): 188-189. [On the compound grandchild-grandgrandchild.] Mezger, Fritz. 1958. Heth. kaena- Verschwgerter, Verwandter. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachwissenschaft 75: 75. Mittelberger, Hermann. 1968. Review of Les Noms des Hittites, by Emmanuel Laroche. Wiener Zeitschrift fr die Kunde des Morgenlandes 62: 316-322. [Pp. 318-319: on Hittite reflexes of IE terms for son and woman, wife.] HAVE Neu, Erich. 1990. Das hethitische Wort fr Frau. Historische Sprachforschung 103: 208-217. Neumann, Gnther. HAVE 1974. Hethitisch nega- die Schwester. In Antiquitates Indogermanicae: Studien zur indogermanischen Altertumskunde und zur Sprach- und Kulturgeschichte der indogermanischen Vlker. Gedenkschrift fr Hermann Gntert zur 25. Wiederkehr seines Todestages am 23. April 1973, edited by Manfred Mayrhofer et al. Pp. 279-283. Innsbruck: Institut fr Sprachwissenschaft der Universitt Innsbruck. (Innsbrucker Beitraege zur Sprachwissenschaft 12). Neumann, Gnther. 1991. Hethitisch negna- Bruder. Historische Sprachforschung 104 (1): 63-66. HAVE

Oettinger, Norbert. 1987. Anatolische Wortbildung und Indogermanische Chronologie. In Studien zum Indogermanischen Wortschatz, herausgegeben von Wolfgang Meid. Pp. 189-192. Innsbruck: Institut fr Sprachwissenschaft der Universitt Innsbruck. [P. 190: the element *-sor woman in Hittite; 191: -lo- in att-a-lla fatherly.] Oettinger, Norbert. 1976. Die Militrischen Eide der Hethiter. Wiesbaden: Harrassowitz (Studien zu den Bogazky-Texten 22.) [P. 24: etymology of Hitt hammasa grandchild < *A(o)mso-, comp. ONorse ss, sir.] Ofitsch, Michaela. 1995. Zu den anlautenden Laryngaen im Hethitischen. Historische Sprachforschung 108: 16-29. Puhvel, Jaan. HAVE

1987. Engendrer et enfanter en Hittite. Cahiers Ferdinand de Saussure 41: 159-163. Riemschneider, K. K. 1971. Die Thronfolgeordnung im althethitischen Reich. Altorientalische Forschungen 3: 79-102. Schields, Kenneth. HAVE 1998. Hittite neka- and the Origin of Indo-European Diminutive Suffix *-ko-. Studi Micenei ed Egeo-Anatolici 40 (2): 255-261. Shields, Kenneth. HAVE 2000. The Hittite Word for Son and the Origin of the Indo-European Diminutive Suffix *-lo-. Indogermanische Forschungen 105: 137-142. Srenhagen, Dietrich. 1998. Verwandtschaftsbeziehungen und Erbrecht im althethitischen Knigshaus vor Telipinu: Ein erneuter Erklrungsversuch. Altorientalische Forschungen 25: 75-94. Berlin. Wilhelm, G. 1990. Matrilinearitt. A. Bei den Hethitern. In Reallexikon der Assyriologie. Bd. 7. Ss. 588-590. Berlin and New York: W. de Gruyter. Zucha, Ivo. 1988. The Nominal Stem Types in Hittite. Ph.D. dissertation. University of Oxford. [Pp. 29-30, 37-38, 57-58: morphological aspects of some Hittite kin terms, with IE comparisons.] KARIAN Schrr, Diether. HAVE 1996. Karisch Mutter und Vater. Sprache: Zeitschrift fr Sprachwissenschaft 38 (1): 93-98. LUWIAN Carruba, Onofrio. 1972. Il problema del genere in anatolico e in indoeuropeo. In Le Lingue dellEuropa. Atti del V Convegno Internazionale di Linguisti 1969. Pp. 175-192. Brescia: Paideia. [P. 177: damais son-in-law; father-in-law; 190: nanasri sister and hassussara queen compared with Lar uxr.] Hawkins, J. D. HAVE 1978. The Luwian Word for Daughter. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 92: 112-116. Ivanov, Vyacheslav Vs. HAVE 2002. Review of Corpus of Hieroglyphic Luwian Insriptions by John D. Hawkins. IndoEuropean Studies Bulletin 10 (1): 1-17. [P. 8: on Luw atalai brother and IE words for wife.] Melchert, H. Craig. 1988. Luvian Lexical Notes. 1. CLuw. am(ma)a/i-. Historische Sprachforschung 101 (2): 211-214. [Pp. 212-214: on Hit hassa son and Luw hamsa grandson.] HAVE

Oshiro, Terumasa. 1990. On Kinship Terms in Hieroglyphic Luwian. Orient 26: 86-93.

HAVE

Starke, Frank. HAVE 1980. Das luwische Wort fr Frau. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 94: 74-86. Starke, Frank. 1987. Die Vertretung von uridg. *dhugh2ter Tochter in den Luwischen Sprachen und ihre Stammbildung. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 100: 243-369. Starke, Frank. 1990. Untersuchung zur Syammbildung des Keilschrift-Luwischen Nomens. Wiesbaden: Otto Harrassowitz. [Pp. 347, 469: term for daughter; 229: term for son.] Yakubovich, Ilya S. HAVE 2008. Sociolinguistics of the Luvian Language. Ph.D. dissertation. University of Chicago. [Sporadically on kin terms.] LYCIAN Arkwright, Walther. 1898. ber das lykische Alphabet. Jahreshefte des sterreichischen Archologischen Institutes in Wien 1: 52-76. [P. 67: Lyc kbatra and Gk thugater daughter.] Bryce, T. R. HAVE 1978. Two Terms of Relationship in the Lycian Inscriptions. Journal of Near Eastern Studies 37 (3): 217-225. Bugge, Sophus. HAVE 1897. Lykische Studien. I. Videnskabsselskabets Skrifter. II. Historisk-filosofisk Klasse 7: 1-91. Christiania. [Pp. 76-86: kin terms.] Bugge, Sophus. 1901. Lykische Studien. II. Videnskabsselskabets Skrifter. II. Historisk-filosofisk Klasse 4: 1-123. Christiania. [Pp. 15-18, 25, 37-38, 88, 94: on kin terms.] HAVE Carruba, Onofrio. HAVE 1969. Su alcuni nomi di parentela in Licio e in Nesico. La Parola del Passato 24: 269278. [Includes a comparative table of Anatolian kin terms from Laroche 1958.] Carruba, Onofrio. 1976. Anatolico e Indoeuropeo. In Scritti in Onore di Guiliano Bonfante. Pp. 121-146. Brescia: Paideia. [P. 125: the Luwian term for daughter and its IE cognates.] Carruba, Onofrio. HAVE 1990. Alle origini del matriarcato. Instituto Lombardo, Rendicontti della Classe di Lettere 124: 239-246. op, Bojan. HAVE

1971. Indogermanica Minora. I. Remarques sur la chute des occlusives gutturales en louvite. 9. Lyc. *tbatra. Razprave. Dissertationes. Slovenska Akademija Znanosti in Umetnosti 8: 8-9. Ljubljana. [A term for daughter.] Cowley, A. E. HAVE 1902. The Lycian Language. Man 2: 67-72. [Pp. 69, 70, 71: on some Lycian kin terms and their possible IE cognates; cbatru daughter still deemed unrelated to IE terms for daughter.] Hajnal, Ivo. HAVE 1995. Der Lykische Vokalismus. Methode und Erkenntnisse der Vergleichenden Anatolischen Sprachwissenschaft, angewandte auf das Vokalsystem einer Kleincorpussprache. Leykam: Gras. [Pp. 59, 73, 111: extensive notes on some kin terms.] Hamp, Eric P. HAVE 1980. Lycian xahba. Journal of Near Eastern Studies 39 (3): 215-216. [On the term for grandson.] Hestermann, Ferdinand. HAVE 1929. Matriarchale Lykische Inschriften. In Donum Natalicium Schrijnen. Verzameling van Opstellen door Oud-Leerlingen en Bevriende Vakgenooten Opgedragen aan Mgr. Prof. Dr. Jos. Schrijnen bij Gelegenheid van zijn zestigsten verjaardag 3 mei 1929. Pp. 261-267. Nijmegen-Utrecht: Dekker & van de Vegt. Houwink ten Cate, Ph. H. J. 1961. The Luwian Population Groups of Lycia and Cilicia Aspera During the Hellenistic Period. Leiden: Brill. [Pp. 139-146: kin terms.] HAVE Imbert, J. HAVE 1894. Les termes de parent dans les inscriptions Lyciennes. Mmoires de la Socit de Linguistique de Paris 8: 449-472. Imbert, J. 1900. De quelques inscriptions Lyciennes. Mmoires de la Socit de Linguistique de Paris 11: 217-257. [Pp. 231-240: on some kin terms (kbatra, tuhes, tideimi).] Laroche, Emmanuel. HAVE 1974. Les pitaphes Lyciennes. Fouilles de Xanthos 5: 123-149. [Pp. 130-134: on some kin terms.] Lassen, Christian. 1856. Ueber die Lykischen Inschriften und die alten Sprachen Kleinasiens. Zeitschrift der Deutschen Morgenlndischen Gesellschaft 10: 329-388. [P. 344: On tideimi child and IE words for son.] Meriggi, Piero. 1928. ber einige lykische Pronominal- und Verbalformen. Indogermanische Forschungen 46: 151-182. [Pp. 176-177: on Lyc kahba translated as son-, daughter-in-law.] Meriggi, Piero. 1936. Der Indogermanismus des Lykischen. In Germanen und Indogermanen: Volkstum, Sprache, Heimat, Kultur. Festschrift fr Herman Hirt, herausgegeben von Helmut Arnitz.

Ss. 257-282. Heidelberg: Carl Winter. [P. 260: kbatra daughter, knna mother; 262: wazzis (unknown kin term); tideimi son, tuhes nephew, niece.] Neumann, Gnther. 1971. Neue Funde und Forschungen in Lykien. Jahrbuch der Akademie der Wissenschaft in Gttingen fr das Jahr 1971: 34-49. [Pp. 42-45: kin terms in Lycian with Anatolian comparisons.] HAVE Pedersen, Holger. 1898-1899a. Lykisk. Nordisk Tidskrift for Filologi 3 (7): 68-103. [Pp. 84-88, 92-100: on attested kin terms.] HAVE Pedersen, Holger. 1898-1899b. Mere om Lykisk. Nordisk Tidskrift for Filologi 3 (8): 17-30. [Pp. 28: on tideimi as cognate with Lat filius.] HAVE Pembroke, Simon. HAVE 1965. Last of the Matriarchs: a Study in the Inscriptions of Lycia. Journal of the Economic and Social History of the Orient 8: 217-247. [Pp. 237-238: on kin terms.] Schurr, Diether. 1999. Grko-lykisch piatra. Die Sprache 41 (1): 24-38. [Lycian term for daughter-inlaw.] Schurr, Diether. HAVE 2008. Lykisch thurtta- und *senaha-. Indogermanische Forschungen 113: 176-186. Shafer, Robert. 1959. System of Relationship in Lukian. Die Welt des Orients 2 (5-6): 484-501. Stoltenberg, Hans L. 1943. Die lykischen Verwandtennamen und Das Mutterrecht. Zeitschrift fr Namenforschung 19: 262-273. Szanto, Ernil. 1898. Zur lykischen Mutterrecht. In Festschrift fr Otto Benndorf zu seinem 60 Geburtstage. Ss. 259-260. Wien: A. Hlder. Zinko, Michaela. HAVE 2002. Laryngalvertretung im Lykischen. Historische Sprachforschung 115: 218-238. [On xuga grandfather and kbatra daughter.] LYDIAN Georgiev, Vladimir I. 1984. Lydiaka und Lydisch-Etruskische Gleichungen. Linguistique Balkanique 27 (1): 535. [Pp. 15-18: Kinship Terms.] HAVE Heubeck, Alfred. HAVE 1960. Kleinasiatisches. 2. Lyd. Verwandtschaftsbezeichnungen. Die Sprache 6 (2): 207210. PALAIC HAVE HAVE

Carruba, Onofrio. 1970. Das Palaische. Texte, Grammatik, Lexicon. Wiesbaden: Otto Harrassowitz. [P. 69: on ppa father.] Carruba, Onofrio. 1972. Beitrge zum Palaischen. Istanbul: Nederlands Historisch-Archaeologisch Instituut in het Nabije Oosten. [P. 20: papami my father (voc.) and papa as a baby word.] HAVE ARMENIAN GENERAL Michelson, Truman. 1924. Wallis on Armenian Kinship Terms. American Anthropologist 26 (3): 427. ANCIENT Bolognesi, Giancarlo. HAVE 1948. Sulla flessione nominale armena di hayr padre, mayr madre, elbayr fratello. Atti del Sodalizio Glottologico Milanese 1 (2): 35-40. Bolognesi, Giancarlo. 1954. Ricerche sulla fonetica Armena. Ricerche Linguistiche 3: 123-154. [P. 126: on Arm dustr and its oblique cases.] HAVE Bugge, Sophus. 1892. Beitrge zur etymologischen Erlauterung der armenischen Sprache. Schwund des idg. palatalen im armen. Anlaut. Indogermanische Forschunngen 1: 444-445. [Arm aner wifes father' and the IE forms for son-in-law.] Godel, Robert. HAVE 1982. Une loi phontique bien difficile noncer: *w > arm. w (v)/ g / zro. Revue des tudes Armniennes 16: 9-16. [On taygr and haw.] Grammont, Maurice. 1918. Notes de phontique gnrale. Mmoirs de la Socit de Linguistique de Paris 20: 213-259. [P. 251: on Arm skesur husbands mother.] Greppin, John A. C. 1973. Initial Vowel and Aspiration in Classical Armenian. Wien: MechitharistenBuchdruckerei. [Especially pp. 19-21: on dialectal vs. literary versions of the Armenian term for brother. Also passim on Arm haw grandfather and han grandmother in an IE perspective.] Greppin, John A. C. 1975. Classical Armenian Nominal Suffixes: A Historical Study. Wien: MechitaristenBuchdruckerei. [Pp. 95: on kin term affix *-iyos; 131: on Armenian terms for son and daughter.] HAVE Hagopian, Gayan. 1995. On the Etymology of a Sociocentric Kin-Term: The Classical Armenian Term Skndik. In Proceedings of the 7th Annual UCLA Indo-European Conference, Los Angeles 1995, edited by Angela della Volpe and Edgar C. Polom. Pp. 126-143. Washington, DC: Institute for the Study of Man. (Journal of Indo-European Studies Monograph 27.)

Hagopian, Gayaneh V. 2002. Life Philosophy Patterns in Conventional Metaphors. In Actes de Sixime Colloque International de Linguistique Armenienne, INALCO, Acadmie des Inscriptions et Belles-Lettres, 5-9 juillet 1999, edited by Anad Donabdian and Agns Ouzounian. Pp. 239-255. Paris: Publications Langues O. (Slovo: Revue du Ceres 26-27.) [P. 245, n. 3: transformation of age terms (e.g. child) into kin terms.] Hamp, Eric P. HAVE 1966. Three Armenian Etymologies. 1. Armenian ner wife of husbands brother. Revue des tudes Armniennes 3: 11-12. Hamp, Eric P. HAVE 1974. On *ku in Armenian. 1. un, skund, skesur. Revue des tudes Armeniennes 10: 2324. Hbschmann, Heinrich. 1877. Armeniaca. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 23: 400-407. [P. 406: on Arm hayr vs. Skrt pita father.] HAVE Hbschmann, Heinrich. HAVE 1881. Armeniaca I. Zeitschrift der Deutschen Morgenlndischen Gesellschaft 35: 168180. [Pp. 168-171: kin terms, with full declensions; 107: etymology of taygr.] Reprinted in: Kleine Schriften zum Armenischen, von Heinrich Hbschmann. Edited by Rdiger Schmidt. Pp. 99-111. Hildesheim and New York: Georg Olms, 1976. HAVE Hbschmann, Heinrich. 1882. Armeniaca. III. Zeitschrift der Deutschen Morgenlndischen Gesellschaft 36: 115134. [Pp. 119-120, 122: on several kin terms.] Hbschmann, Heinrich. 1883. Armenische Studien. I. Grundzge der Armenische Etymologie. Leipzig: Breitkopf & Hrtel. [Pp. 38: hav grandfather, 39: han grandmother, 64, 87: declension of basic kin terms.] Hubschmann, Heinrich. 1906. Armeniaca. III. Indogermanische Forschungen 19: 457-480. [Pp. 457-469: initial z-; 468: zokanc wifes mother; 466: zarm (Gen. zarmi) posterity, arm, armat root, zavak 'descendant, son'; 473-474: dustr daughter < *dustir, skesur husbands mother < *skesr.] Klidschian, Arsen. 1911. Das armenische Eherecht und die Grundzge der armenischen Familienorganisation. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Rechtswissenschaft 25: 253-377. [Pp. 253-254: some kin and affinal terms.] HAVE Kohler, Josef. HAVE 1887. Das Recht der Armenier. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Rechtswissenschaft 7: 385436. [Pp. 395-396: family law among Indo-European peoples; 419-423: inheritance among the Armenians.] Kortlandt, Frederik. HAVE 1976. Notes on Armenian Historical Phonology. I. Studia Caucasica 3: 91-100. [P. 93: on taygr husbands brother; 95: on koyr sister; 96-97: on skesur husbands mother.]

Kortlandt, Frederik. 1997. Arm. nr sister-in-law. Annual of Armenian Linguistics 18: 7-9.

HAVE

Reprinted in: Armeniaca: Comparative Notes, by Frederik Kortlandt. Pp. 120-121. Ann Arbor: Caravan Books. Knzle, Beda. HAVE 1985. Armenisch hark Eltern: Ein elliptischer Plural? Mnchener Studien zur Sprachwissenschaft 45 (2): 151-164. Lagarde, Paul de. 1877. Armenische Studien. Gttingen: Dieterich. [P. 77: etymology of Arm skesur husbands father.] HAVE Mah, Jean-Pierre. HAVE 1986-1987. Armnien haw grand-pre et oncle? Revue des tudes Armniennes 20: 55-56. Matzinger, Joachim. 1997. A Note on Armenian doustr. Annual of Armenian Linguistics 18: 11-18. HAVE

Matzinger, Joachim. 2002. Untersuchungen zum Altarmenischen Nomen: Die Flexion des Substantivs. Ph.D. dissertation. Universitt Regensburg. [Extensively on hayr, mayr, koyr and elbayr.] Matzinger, Joachim. 2005. Untersuchungen zum Altarmenischen Nomen: Die Flexion des Substantivs. Mnchen: Rll. (Mnchener Studien zur Sprachwissenschaft 22) [Pp. 127-129: on hayr, mayr, koyr and elbayr.] Mller, Friedrich. 1876. ber die Stellung des Armenianschen im Kreise der Indogermanischen Sprachen. Sitzungberichte der Phil.-Hist. Classe der Kais. Akademie der Wissenschaft 84 (November): 211-232. [Pp. 216, 222: IE ter-kin terms in Armenian.] Published separately by Wien: Karl Gerolds Sohn, 1877. [Pp. 8, 14] Olsen, Birgit A. 1999. The Noun in Biblical Armenian. Berlin and New York: Mouton de Gruyter. [Pp. 148-153: dustr daughter, ustr son, hayr father, mayr mother, elbayr brother; 189: skesur husbands mother, 190-191: ner, niri sister-in-law.] Parvulescu, Adrian. 1986. Armenian amusin spouse. Annual of Armenian Linguistics 7: 45-49. Pedersen, Holger. 1905. Zur armenischen Sprachregeschichte. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 38: 194-240. [P. 197: on Arm skesur husbands mother.]

HAVE

Pisani, Vittore. 1942. Armenische Studien. I. Zur Armenischen Etymologie. 32. ustr. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 67: 173.

Pisani, Vittore. 1942. Armenische Studien. I. Zur Armenischen Etymologie. 33. -ordi. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 67: 173-174. [Affix derived from kin term son.] Pisani, Vittore. HAVE 1951. Studi sulla fonetica dellarmeno. III. Arm k e i gruppi *sw, *tw-. Ricerche Linguistiche 2: 52-62. [On Arm koyr sister and skesur husbands father.] Polom, Edgar. 1950. Rflexes de laryngales en Armnien. Annuaire de lInstitut de Philologie et dHistoire Orientales et Slaves 10: 539-569. (Mlanges Henry Grgorie. II.) [Pp. 539540, 541: haw, han, koyr < *ke(h)ur. The latter presupposes the stage xw when h causes assourdiseement of w as illustration of Hit h as hw > Germ k.] Schmidt, Karl H. 1992. Kartvelisch und Armenisch. Historische Sprachforschung 105 (2): 287-306. [P. 298: on the possible influence of Kartvelian on Armenian metathesis, with Ossetian parallels; kin terms as examples.] Schmidt, Manfred E. HAVE 1916. Armen. aner Vater der Frau. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 47: 189. Schmitt, Rdiger. HAVE 1996. Some Remarks on Armenian nr sister-in-law, brothers wife. Annual of Armenian Linguistics 17: 21-24. Solta, Georg R. 1960. Die Stellung des Armenischen im Kreise der Indogermanischen Sprachen. Wien: Mechitaristen. [Pp. 36-62: kin terms.] HAVE Stempel, Reinhard. HAVE 1994. Final IE *-s and the Old Armenian Plural Marker -k. Annual of Armenian Linguistics 15: 1-19. [Discusses several Armenian kin terms in the IE context.] Windischmann, Friedrich. 1846. Die Grundlage des Armenischen im Arischen Sprachstamme. Mnchen. 49 P. [Pp. 19-20: on the origin of skesur mother-in-law.] HAVE Winter, Werner. HAVE 1965. Armenian Evidence. In Evidence for Laryngeals, edited by Werner Winter. Pp. 101-115. London, etc.: Mouton. [Pp. 102, 113, 114: kin terms.] Winter, Werner. HAVE 1966. Traces of Early Dialectal Diversity in Old Armenian. In Ancient Indo-European Dialects. Proceedings of the Conference on Indo-European Linguistics held at the University of California, Los Angeles, April 25-27, 1963, edited by Henrik Birnbaum and Jaan Puhvel. Pp. 201-211. Berkeley and Los Angeles: University of California Press. [Pp. 202, 204-205: original etymologies of some Armenian kin terms.] Winter, Werner. HAVE

1993. Armenian, Tocharian, and the Glottalic Theory. In 2d International Symposium on Armenian Linguistics (21-23 September 1987). Pp. 218-241. Yerevan: Armenian Academy Press. [Pp. 221, 222, 224: reflexes of IE stops in several Armenian kin terms.] MODERN Diniz, Beatriz. HAVE 1977. Os Termos do Parentesco em Armnio. So Paulo: Universidade de So Paulo, Faculdade de Filosofia, Letras e Cincias Humanas. 189 P. Mah, Jean-Pierre. HAVE 1984. Structures sociales et vocabulaire de la parent et de la collectivit en armnien contemporain. Revue des tudes Armniennes 18 (1-2): 327-345. Platz, Stephanie. HAVE 1995. We Dont Have CapitalismWe Have Kinship: The State, the Family, and the Expression of Armenian Identity. Anthropology of East Europe Review 13 (2): 30-33. Wallis, Wilson D. HAVE 1923. Some Phases of Armenian Social Life. American Anthropologist 25 (4): 582-584. [Includes a list of kin terms collected among Armenians in Fresno, California.] BALTIC GENERAL Brtulis, R. 1987. Vrda formas un nozmes savstarpjs attiecbas (Latv. mate: liet. mt). In Latvieu valodas kontaktu ptjumi. PP. 29-62. Rga: Zintne. Devoto, Giacomo. HAVE 1934-1935. Lit. OVIS, Lett. USVIS Suocero. Studi Baltici 4 : 57-62. [Baltic terms for wifes father.] Frnkel, Ernst. 1923. Zur Verstmmelung, bzw Unterdrckung funktionsschwacher oder funktionsarmer Elemente in den baltoslavischen Sprachen. Indogermanische Forschungen 41: 393-421. [P. 401-402: shortened forms of Baltic kin terms.] HAVE Frnkel, Ernst. HAVE 1934. Zur Vermischung der -o- und -u- Stmme im Baltischen. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 61: 270-276. [Pp. 271-274: vocative and shortened forms of kin terms.] Frnkel, Ernst. HAVE 1936-1937. Alcuni problemi di grammatical e di vocabolario Lituani. 2. Intorno ai nomi di parentela baltici. Studi Baltici 6: 110-116. Frnkel, Ernst. HAVE 1949. Undeutungen von Flexionformen und eventuelle Entstehung neuer Paradigmen in den indogermanischen Sprachen. 2. Lit. (j)eras Lamm, lett. jrs, preuss. eristian usw. Indogermanische Forschungen 59: 306-309. [P. 308-309: on ietere, ietala vs. vietere, vietala in Latvian and gente vs. jente husbands brothers wife in Lithuanian.] Frnkel, Ernst.

1950. Die Baltischen Sprachen. Ihre Beziehung zur Einander und zu den Indogermanischen Schwesteridiomen als Einfhrung in die Baltische Sprachwissenschaft. Heidelberg: Carl Winter. [Pp. 44-48: kin terms.] HAVE Gagliano, Maria T. A. 1992. Le isoglosse lessicali lituano-prussiane. Indogermanische Forschungen 97: 145174. [Pp. 162-163: terms for son.] HAVE Rosinas, Albertas. HAVE 2000. Dl balt *pat(is), *pat(n) pirmins reikms ir gramatinio statusu. Baltistica 35 (2): 129-140. [P. 139: English summary.] LATVIAN Beldavs, Aija V. 1977. Goddesses in a Mans World: Latvian Matricentricity in Culture and Spheres of Influence in Society. Journal of Baltic Studies 8 (2): 105-129. Blesse, Ernst. 1958. Lettische Etymologien. 1. Einige Bildungen von der Pronominalwurzel *s(w)-. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 75: 91-115. Hauzenberga-turma, Edite. HAVE 1960. Lett lgava, laudava (knstige) junge Ehefrau > Verlobte, Braut. In In Honorem Endzelini, edited by Edite Hauzenberga-turma. Chicago: ikgas baltu Filologu Kopa. Hinze, F. 1985. Zwei deutsche Lehnworter im Baltischen. Baltistica 21 (1) : 33-36. [On meita daughter.] Ivanov, Viach, Vs. HAVE 1974. Iz etimologicheskih nabliudenii nad baltiiskoi leksikoi. 1. Latysh. msa sestra i indoevropeiskie nazvaiia sestry. Zeitschrift fr Slawistik 19: 190-195. Jgers, B. 1956-1957. Baltische Etymologien. 6. Lett. mtruoties. Commentationes Balticae 4-5: 39-45. [sich mit einer unntzen Arbeit abgeben; possible connection to the term for mother.] Plakans, Andrejs. 1992. Family Dynamics in the Eastern Baltic Littoral, 1500-1800. In Les Modles Familiaux en Europe aux XVIe-XVIIIe Sicles, edited by Cezary Kuklo. Pp. 81-94. Bialystok, Poland: Podlaska. Plakans, Andrejs, and Charles Wetherell. 1988. The Kinship Domain in an East European Peasant Community: Pinkenhof, 18331850. American Historical Review 93: 359-386. Plakans, Andrejs, and Charles Wetherell. 1992. Family and Economy in an Early Nineteenth-Century Baltic Serf Estate. Continuity and Change 7: 199-223. Plakans, Andrejs, and Charles Wetherell. HAVE

2000. Patrilines, Surnames, and Family Identity: A Case Study From the Russian Baltic Provinces in the Nineteenth Century. History of the Family 5 (2): 199-214. Plakans, Andrejs, and Charles Wetherell. 2001. Choix des noms et construction de lidentit familiale. Lmancipation des serfs dans les provinces baltes au XIXe sicle. In Le Patronyme: Histoire, Anthropologie, Socit, edit par G. Brunet, P. Darlu et G. Zei. P. 95-114. Paris: CNRS. Rekena, A. S. 1977. Nazvaniia rodstva v nekotorykh iuzhnykh govorakh verkhnelatyshckogo dialekta. In Kontakty latyshskogo iazyka. S. 169-191. Riga: Zinatne. [Includes an English summary (pp. 190-191).] Rke-Dravina, Velta. 1953. Zur Konsonantenerweichung bei Diminutiven im Lettischen. Commentationes Balticae 1: 141-165. [Diminutive kin terms muks sister, dluks son, brluks brother passim.] Svabe, Arveds. 1953. Mantojuma Tiesibas [Inheritance Rights]. In Latviesu Tautas Dziesmas [Latvian Folksongs]. Vol. 2, edited by Arveds Svabe, K. Straubergs, and E. Hauzenberga-Sturma. Pp. 83-100. Copenhagen: Imanta. Terenteva, L. N. 1984. The Latvian Peasant Family. In Kinship and Marriage in the Sovier Union, edited by Tamara Dragadze. Pp. 130-168. London: Routledge. Upelnieks, Kr. 1938. Uzvardu dosana Vidzemes un Kurzemes zemniekiem [The Giving of Surnames to the Peasants of Livland and Kurland]. Riga, Latvija: Tieslietu Ministrija. Wetherell, Charles, Andrejs Plakans, and Barry Wellman. 1994. Kinship and Community in an Eastern European Peasant Estate. Journal of Interdisciplinary History 15: 639663. LITHUANIAN Bartoli, Matteo. 1933. Il carattere conservativo dei linguaggi baltici. Studi Baltici 3:1-26. [P. 9: on Lith euras husbands father in the IE perspective.] HAVE Bezzenberger, Adalbert. HAVE 1878. Ueber das litausche Wort brlis. Altpreussische Monatsschrift 15: 282-288. Buivydien, Rta. 1986. Lie. strjus. Baltistica 22 (2): 13-20. (in Lithuanian; summary in Russian) [Grandfather.] Bga, K. 1921. Prisagos -nas ir dvibalsio uo kilm. Lietuvos Mokykla 4. [P. 424: on ligonas wifes brother.] Bga, K.

1922. Kalba ir Senov. Kaunas: vietimo Ministerijos Leidinys. [Pp. 213-214: on jente husbands brothers wife; 166: svainis wifes sisters husband, laig(u)onas wifes brother; 296: uosvis wifes father, etc.] Buivydien, Rta. 1986. Del vieno giministes pavadinimo. Jaunuju filologu darbat 2: 220-225. Buivydien, Rta. 1987. Lie. ma. Baltistica 23 (1): 13-20. (in Lithuanian) [Older sister.] Buivydien, Rta. 1990. I lietuviu kalbos giminystes pavadinimu istorijos. Baltistica 26 (2): 144-161. Buivydien, Rta. 1997. Lietuviu kalbos vedybu giminystes pavadinimai. Vilnius: Mokslo ir enciklopediju leidybos institutes. [Pp. 234-245: English summary.] Review: Kabainskait 1999. Endzelin, J. 1924. Baltische Beitrge. In Streitberg Festgabe. Leipzig: Markert & Petters. [P. 42: on the ending of Lith brolis brother.] HAVE Endzelin, J. 1933. Review of Lautgesetz und Analogie von Edouard Hermann. Filologu Biedrbas Raksti 13: 178-183. [Pp. 180-181: on Lith dieveris husbands brother as contaminated by the word for God.] HAVE Frnkel, Ernst. 1940. Review of Gramatyka historyczna jzyka laciskiego. Cz I. Opracowali Jan Otrbski i Jan Safarewicz. Filologu biedrbas raksti 20: 243-247. Riga. [Pp. 246-247: on the origin of ie in Lith dieveris husbands brother from contamination.] HAVE Frnkel, Ernst. 1949. 2. Lit. (j)
ras Lamm, lett. je res, preusss. eristian. Indogermanische Forschungen 59: 306-309. [P. 309: Lith gent = jente as a new feminine of gents kinsman.] Hendriksen, Hans. HAVE 1938. Etymologien. 3. Lit. kiu, kti. Indogermanische Forschungen 56: 24-27. [On assimilations like Lith *seuras > euras husbands father.] Hermann, Eduard. 1937. Litauisch mot. Indogermanische Forschungen 55: 129-130. HAVE

Karaciejus, Jouzas. 1986. Dl lietuvi kalbos vedybins giminysts termino vesti(s) imti u mon kilms ir vartosenos. Lietuvos TSR Mokslu Akademijos Darbai, Serija A, T. 2 (95): 113-117. [On the origin and the usage of the Lithuanian conjugal kinship term vesti(s) take a wife. Summary in Russian.] Karalinas, Simas. HAVE 1999. Dviej ret odi etymologijos. 2. vav. Baltistica 34 (1): 86-88. [Dial. term for daughter, sister.]

Klingenschmitt, Gert. 2004. Lit. uovis. Baltistica Mezger, Fritz. HAVE 1965. Lit. gentinis Verwandter aksl. prvnc der Erstgeborene. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 79: 46-47. Saballauskas, A. 1966. Giministes terminal. Lietuviu Kalbos Leksikos Raida. Pp. 7-143. Vilnius. Salys, A. 1937. Msu gentivardiai. Gimtoji Kalba 5 (2): 20-24. Kaunas. HAVE

Saussure, Ferdinand de. 1896. Accentuation lituanienne. Indogermanische Forschungen 6 (Anzeiger): 157-166. [Pp. 162-165: on kin terms dukte and sunus in the IE context.] Reprinted in: Recueil des Publications Scientifiques de Ferdinand de Saussure. Pp. 526538. Genve: Socit Anonyme des ditions Sonor, 1922. HAVE Scheftelowitz, J. 1929. Die verbalen und nominalen sk
und sk-Stmme im Baltisch-Slavischen und Albanischen. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 56: 161-210. [Pp. 169-170: on Lith msza husbands sister.] HAVE Schulze, Wilhelm. 1932. Zum griechischen Dual. In Symbolae Philologicae O. A. Danielson Octogenerio Dicatae. Pp. 299-304. Uppsala: A.-B. Lundequistika. [P. 301: on Lith tevai parents.] Smoczyski, Wojciech. 1997. Il ruolo della lingua lituana per la linguistica indoeuropea. Ponto-Baltica 7: 53-82. Reprinted in: Jzyk Litewski w Perspektywie Porwnawczej, by Wojciech Smoczyski. Pp. 179-208. Krakw: Wydawnictwo Universitetu Jagelloskiego, 2001. [Pp. 194-195: on dukte and sesuo in detail.] HAVE Smoczyski, Wojciech. HAVE 2001. Komentarz laryngalistyczny do wybranych formacji litewsjkich. In Jzyk Litewski w Perspektywie Porwnawczej, by Wojciech Smoczyski. Pp. 248-252. Krakw: Wydawnictwo Universitetu Jagelloskiego. [Pp. 250: on dieveris and the laryngeal metathesis.] Sommer, Ferdinand. HAVE 1924. Der litauische Vokativ broa und Verwandtes. Indogermanische Forschungen 42: 323-326. Stang, Chr. S. 1956. Besprechung: Fraenkel, Ernst. Litauisches Etymologisches Wrterbuch. Die Welt der Slaven 1 (3): 350-354. [P. 353: on dieveris husbands brother.] HAVE Streitberg, Wilhelm. 1892. Der Genetiv Pluralis und die baltisch-slavischen Auslautgesetz. III. Zweifelhafte

Flle. 2. sesuo mot . Indogermanische Forschunngen 1: 275-276. [P. 275: on Lith terms for sister and mother.] ukaite-Buivydiene, Rta. 1987. Giminystes pavadinimai leksikograficos praktikos aspektu. Lietuviu kalbotyros klausimai 26: 189-193. OLD PRUSSIAN Benveniste, mile. 1932. Notes detymologie prussienne. Studi Baltici 2: 78-83. [P. 81: formation of words for father- and son-in-law.] Hamp, Eric P. HAVE 1992. Old Prussian brti, brote; duckti. In Colloquium Pruthenicum Primum: Papers from the 1st International Conference on Old Prussian held in Warsaw, September 30thOctober 1st, 1991. Pp. 13-14. Warszawa: Wydawnictwa Universytetu Warszawskiego. Hamp, Eric P. HAVE 1996. The Nominative Singular of r-Stems. Baltistica 31 (2): 139-140. [A reply to Maczak 1993.] Maczak, Witold. 1993. Ancien prussien brote, brti, duckti. Baltistica 28 (2): 55-63. HAVE

Schmalstieg, William R. 1974. An Old Prussian Grammar: The Phonology and Morphology of the Three Catechisms. University Park and London: Pennsylvania State University. [Pp. 40-41: the three attested kin term r-stems and declensions of son and daughter in Lithuanian.] Witczak, Krzysztof T. HAVE 2004. Old Prussian moazo mothers sister, mosuco weasel and Related Words. Baltistica 39 (1): 131-139. CELTIBERIAN Hamp, Eric P. HAVE 1996. Celtiberian Tuateres, Tuateros Daughter. Veleia: Revista de Prehistoria, Historia Antigua, Arqueologa y Filologa Clsicas 13: 271-273. CELTIC ANCIENT GENERAL Ahlqvist, Anders. 1980. Varia III. Old Irish b, ben woman. riu 31: 156-163. Baumgarten, Rolf. 1985. The Kinship Metaphors in Bechbretha and Coibnes Usci Thairidne. Peritia: Journal of the Medieval Academy of Ireland 4: 307-327. Bernardo Stempel, Patrizia de.

1991. Archaisch Irisch maccu als morphologisches Relikt. Historische Sprachforschung 104 (2): 205-223. Binchy, D. A. HAVE 1943. The Linguistic and Historical Value of the Irish Law Tracts. Proceedings of the British Academy (1943): 195-227. [Pp. 220-227: on kinship system and terms.] Blaek, Vclav. HAVE 2007. Late Brythonic *uohid0 daughter-in-law. Zeitschrift fr Celtische Philologie 55 (1): 25-28. Campanile, Enrico. HAVE 1974. Un archaismo morfologico del celtico. Incontri Linguistici 51-54. [Includes Celtic terms for son-in-law allegedly derived from the word for client, with further etymological (vrddhi) connection to IE forms for house.] Campanile, Enrico. HAVE 1976-1977. Sulla preistoria di b e ben in irlandese antico. Incontri Linguistici 3 (1): 2128. [The IE term for woman, wife in Old Irish.] Cathasaigh, Toms . 1986. The Sisters Son in Early Irish Literature. Peritia 5 (5): 128-160. Charles-Edwards, Thomas M. HAVE 1971. Some Celtic Kinship Terms. Bulletin of the Board of Celtic Studies 24 (2): 105122. Charles-Edwards, Thomas M. 1972. Kinship, Status and the Origins of the Hide. Past and Present 56: 3-33. HAVE

Charles-Edwards, Thomas M. HAVE 1974. Nei, keifn, and kefynderw. Bulletin of the Board of Celtic Studies 25: 386-388. Charles-Edwards, Thomas M. 1993. Early Irish and Welsh Kinship. Oxford: Clarendon Press and New York: Oxford University Press. Reviews: Fischer Drew 1995; Allen 1997. Clera, Carlos J. HAVE 2007. Celtiberian. E-Keltoi: Journal of Interdisciplinary Celtic Studies 6: 749-850. [P. 756: Celtiberian terms for daughter.] Crumley, Carole L. 1974. Celtic Social Structure: The Generation of Archaeologically Testable Hypotheses from Literary Evidence. Ann Arbor: University of Michigan Museum of Anthropology. [A patrilineal, patrilocal model of an early Celtic society.] Davies, Rees. 2001. Kinsmen, Neighbors and Communities in Wales and the Western British Isles, cc. 1100-1400. In Law, Laity, and Solidarities: Essays in Honour of Susan Reynolds, edited by P. Stafford, J. L. Nelson, and J. Martindale. Pp. 172-187. Manchester: Manchester University Press.

Dhonnchadha, Mrn N. 1986. Inailt Foster-Sister, Fosterling. Celtica 18: 185-191. Foy, Willy. 1896. Die indogermanischen s-Laute (s und z) im Keltischen. Indogermanische Forschungen 6: 313-339. [Pp. 322-323: OIr siur, fiur, Cymr chwaer sister in the context of IE s in anlaut and inlaut.] Hamp, Eric P. HAVE 1975. *dhugHtr in Irish. Mnchener Studien zur Sprachwissenschaft 33: 39-40. [On possible epigraphic reflections of the IE word for daughterin Old Irish.] Hamp, Eric P. HAVE 1987. Miscellanea. Welsh hogyn, hogen. Indogermanische Forschungen 100: 123. Hamp, Eric P. HAVE 1990. Varia. XLIII. Istres MATPON. tudes Celtiques 27: 181-182. [Epigraphic evidence for genitive plural of mother.] Holmer, N. 1955. Some Old Irish forms. 3. nathar, sethar, etc. riu 17: 109-111. [On the origin of the Gen. Sing. of siur sister.] Huld, Martin E. 1981. Cu Chulainn and His IE Kin. Zeitschrift fr Celtische Philologie 38: 238-241. [On OIr fiur in the meaning womans brothers daughter in the context of the Omaha hypothesis of PIE kin terminology.] Jasanoff, Jay H. 1989. Old Irish b woman. riu 40: 135-141. HAVE

Jenkins, Gwyn M. HAVE 1958. DAW : DOFION. Bulletin of the Board of Celtic Studies 17: 252-258. [The Welsh term for son-in-law and the IE name of husbands brother.] Lambert, Pierre-Yves. 1994. La Langue Gauloise: Description Linguistique, Commentaire dInscriptions Choisies. Paris: Editions Errance. [Pp. 61, 168-169: attested kin terms.] Lane, George S. HAVE 1932. Celtic Notes. 7. Irish nuachar, snuachar. Language 8 (4): 297-298. [On the term for spouse.] Lejeune, Michel. 1985. Texts gaulois et gallo-romans en cursive latine. 3. Le plomb du Larzac. tudes Celtiques 22: 95-177. [Pp. 131-134, 167-168: on kin terms, including the attestation of duxtir.] HAVE Lewis, Hubert. 1889. The Ancient Laws of Wales. London: Elliot Stock. [Includes laws of the kindred.] Leyton, Elliott H. 1972. Kinship and Class in an Ulster Vilage. Ph.D. dissertation. University of Toronto.

McCone, Kim. 1992. The Etymology of Old Irish dis Client(s). riu 43: 193-197. [Includes Celtic terms for son-in-law allegedly derived from the word for client, with further etymological connection to IE forms for house.] MacLeod, Neil. 2000. Kinship. riu 51: 1-22. [Aspects of medieval Irish kinship system.] Maille, Tomas. 1910. The Language of the Annals of Ulster. Manchester: Manchester University Press. [Pp. 49-50: on OIr aue grandson.] HAVE Meyer, Kuno. 1912. Miscellen. 6. Die Wortstellung in der altirischen Dichtung. Zeitschrift fr Celtische Philologie 8: 182-183. [P. 183: attestation of e granddaughter.] Meid, Wolfgang. 2001. Freundschaft and Liebe in keltischen Sprachen. In Donum Grammaticum: Studies in Latin and Celtic Linguistics in Honour of Hannah Rosn, edited by Lea Sawicki and Donna Shalev. Pp. 255-263. Leuven, etc.: Peeters. OBrien, M. A. 1938. OIr. amnair. tudes Celtiques 3: 364. [Old Irish term for mothers brother.] OBrien, M. A. HAVE 1956. Etymologies and Notes. 15. Der-, Dar-, Derb- in Female Names. Celtica 3: 178179. [A hypothesis of the epigraphic reflection of the IE word for daughter in Old Irish.] Patterson, Nerys W. HAVE 1985. Kinship Law or Number Symbolism: Models of Distributive Justice in Old Irish Law. In Proceedings of the Harvard Celtic Colloquium (May 3 and 4, 1985) 5: 49-86. Patterson, Nerys W. 1981. Kinship and Law in Pre-Norman Ireland. Ph.D. dissertation. Harvard University. Patterson, Nerys W. HAVE 1990. Patrilineal Kinship in Early Irish Society: The Evidence from the Irish Law Texts. Bulletin of the Board of Celtic Studies 37: 133-165. Patterson, Nerys T. 1991. Cattle-Lord and Clansmen: Kinship and Rank in Early Ireland. New York: Garland. Reviews: Stacey 1995; Bitel 1996. Pokorny, Julius. HAVE 1913. Keltisce Miszellen. 5. Altirish muimme Pflegemutter. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 45: 362-364. [On kin terms in child language, including Celtic terms for son.] Pokorny, Julius. HAVE 1956. Miscellanea Celtica. Celtica 3: 306-310. [Pp. 309-310: a kinship etymology of OIr. indaib.]

Pryce, Huw. 1993. Native Law and the Church in Medieval Wales. Oxford: Clarendon. Rees, Alwyn D. 1938. Alternate Generations in Wales. Man 38 (168): 143-144. HAVE

Rhys, John. 1877. Appendix B. Maccu, Mucqi, Maqvi, Macwy. In Lectures on Welsh Philology, by John Rhys. Pp. 415-419. London: Trbner. [On Celtic terms for son and grandson.] Rubio, F. 1999-2000. Celtibrico tuateres, galo duxtir, irlands Dero, la palabra indoeuropea para hija. Kalathos 18-19: 359-371. Schrijver, Peter. 1995. Studies in British Celtic Historical Phonology. Amsterdam and Atlanta: Rodopi. [Pp. 113: Breton term for daughter-in-law, 300-301: on Breton and OIrish terms for grandchild; 386-400: Celtic terms for nephew and sister; 447, 452: anomalies in the declension paradigm of siur sister.] HAVE Seebohm, Frederic. 1895. The Tribal System in Wales. London: Longmans, Green. [Includes such themes as kindred, fictive kinship, the role of blood ties, etc.] Seebohm, Frederic. 1911. The Tribal Custom in Anglo-Saxon Law. London: Longmans, Green. [Ancient Celtic and Germanic tribes; includes such themes as kindred, fictive kinship, degrees of kinship, the role of maternal uncle, the role of blood ties, etc.] Excerpted under title The Cymric Evidence in: Anthropology and Early Law: Selected from the Writings of Paul Vinogradoff, Frederic W. Maitland, Frederick Pollock, Maxim Kovalevsky, Rudolf Huebner and Frederic Seebohm, edited by Lawrence Krader. Pp. 7599. New York and London: Basic Books. Stokes, Whitley. 1896. Celtic Etymologies. Beitrge zur Kunde der Indogermanischen Sprachen 21: 122137. [p. 129: the Celtic term for woman, wife.] Thurneysen, Rudolf. 1961. A Grammar of Old Irish. Translated by D. A. Binchy and Osborn Bergin. Dublin: Dublin Institute for Advanced Studies. [Pp. 214-215: the declension of r-stems, i.e. kin terms.] Weisweiler, Josef. 1940. Die Stellung der Frau bei den Kelten und das Problem des keltischen Mutterrechts. Zeitschrift fr Celtische Philologie 21: 205-279. Zimmer, Stefan. HAVE 1997. Vieux-gallois gener et autres problmes propos de la minute Surexit. tudes Celtiques 33: 143-158. PICTISH Boyle, A.

1977. Matrilineal Succession in the Pictish Monarchy. Scottish Historical Review 56: 110. Gray, Kyle A. 1999. Matriliny at the Millennium: The Question of Pictish Matrilineal Succession Revisited. Pictish Arts Society Journal 14: 13-32. Ross, Alasdair. 2000. Pictish Matriliny? Northern Studies: The Journal of the Scottish Society for Northern Studies 34: 11-22. Sellar, W. D. H. 1985. Warlords, Holy Men and Matrilineal Succession (Warlords and Holy Men: Scotland, A. D. 80-1000, by Alfred P. Smyth). Innes Review 36: 29-43. Woolf, Alex. 1998. Pictish Matriliny Reconsidered. Innes Review 49: 147-167 MODERN Arensberg, Conrad M., and Solon T. Kimball. 1940. Family and Community in Ireland. Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press. Review: Grene 1941. 2d ed.: Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press, 1968. Review: Douglass 1971. Breen, Richard. HAVE 1982. Naming Practices in Western Ireland. Man 17 (4): 701-713. [Naming and kinship.] Connell, K. H. 1962. Peasant Marriage in Ireland, Its Structure and Development Since the Famine. Economic History Review 14: 502-523. Devine, Thomas M. 1994. Clanship to Crofters War: The Social Transformation of the Scottish Highlands. Manchester and New York: Manchester University Press. Review: Clarkson 1996. Forte, A. D. M. 1984. Some Aspects of the Law of Marriage in Scotland: 1500-1700. In Marriage and Property, edited by Elizabeth M. Craik. Pp. 104-118. Aberdeen: Aberdeen University Press. Fox, Robin. 1978. The Tory Islanders: A People of the Celtic Fringe. Cambridge, etc: Cambridge University Press. [Pp. 31-81: genealogy, kinship and naming; 156-185: marriage and household.] Gibbon, P., and C. Curtin. HAVE

1978. The Stem Family in Ireland. Comparative Studies in Society and History 20 (3): 429-453. Gordon, Michael. 1977. Kinship Boundaries and Kinship Knowledge in Urban Ireland. International Journal of the Sociology of the Family 7: 1-14. Izard, Michel. 1965. La terminologie de parent bretonne. LHomme 5 (3-4): 88-100. HAVE

Jubainville, H. DArbois de. HAVE 1905. La Famille Celtique: Etude de Droit Compar. Paris: Librairie mile Bouillon. Leyton, Elliott. 1974. Irish Friends and Friends: The Nexus of Friendship, Kinship, and Class in Aughnaboy. In The Compact: Selected Dimensions of Friendship, edited by Elliott Leyton. Pp. 93-104. (Newfoundland Social and Economic Papers 3). Memorial University of Newfoundland. Ludwig, Mary A. 1988. Friendship and Kinship in Irish Society: Ancient and Modern Parallels. In Proceedings of the 1st North American Congress of Celtic Studies, held at Ottawa from 26th-30th March, 1986, edited by Gordon W. MacLennan. Pp. 309-317. Ottawa: University of Ottawa. Mcknorrie, Kenneth. 1992. Incest and the Forbidden Degrees of Marriage in Scots Law. Journal of the Law Society of Scotland 37: 216-219. Morgan, Lewis H. HAVE 1860. The Welsh Indians: Degrees of Relationship in the Language of the Welsh Nation. Cambrian Journal 1860: 142-158. [Includes kin terminologies of American Indians; cross-listed in AMERICA-INDIGENOUS.] Parkes, Peter. 2006. Celtic Fosterage: Adoptive Kinship and Clientage in Northwest Europe. Comparative Studies in Society and History 48 (2): 359-395. Ross, Douglas B. 1987. Forbidden Degrees of Matrimony. Journal of the Law Society of Scotland 32 (30: 20-22. Rosser, Colin, and Christopher Harris. 1965. The Family and Social Change: A Study of Family and Kinship in a South Wales Town. London: Routledge & K. Paul; New York: Humanities Press. Review: Bari 1966. Varley, Anthony. HAVE 1983. The Stem Family in Ireland Reconsidered. Comparative Studies in Society and History 25 (2): 381-395. OVERSEAS

Ommer, Rosemary E. 1973. Scots Kinship, Migration and Early Settlement in Southwestern Newfoundland. M.A. thesis. Memorial University of Newfoundland. GERMANIC GENERAL Aron, Albert W. 1920. Traces of Matriarchy in Germanic Hero-Lore. Madison: University of Wisconsin Press. Ausenda, Giorgio. HAVE 1995. The Segmentary Lineage in Contemporary Anthropology and among the Langobards. In After Empire: Towards an Ethnology of Europes Barbarians, edited by Giorgio Ausenda. Pp. 15-45. Woodbridge: Boydell Press. Ausenda, Giorgio. HAVE 1999. Kinship and Marriage among the Visigoths. In The Visigoths: From the Migration Period to the Seventh Century: An Ethnographic Perspective, edited by Peter Heather. Pp. 129-190. Woodbridge: Boydell Press. Bell, Clair H. 1922. The Sisters Son in the Medieval German Epic. University of California Publications in Modern Philology 10 (2): 67-182. Barlau, Stephen B. 1975. Germanic Kinship. Ph.D. dissertation. University of Texas at Austin. 256 P. Barlau, Stephen B. 1976. An Outline of Germanic Kinship. Journal of Indo-European Studies 4: 97-130. Barnish, Sam J. B. 2007. The Ostrogoths from the Migration Period to the Sixth Century: An Ethnographic Perspective. Woodbridge: Boydell & Brewer. [Pp. 143-182: Germanic and Gothic kin terms.] Review: Goffart 2009. Braune, Wilhelm. 1907. Nhd. Braut in den germanischen Sprachen. Beitrge zur Geschichte der Deutschen Sprache und Literatur 37: 30-59, 559-562. [Germ. word for bride with connections to kin terms.] Brunner, Heinrich. 1882. Sippe und Wergeld nach niederdeutschen Rechten. Zeitschrift fr Rechtsgeschichte, Germanistische Ableitung 3: 1-101. Brunner, Heinrich. 1900. Kritische Bemerkungen zur Geschichte des germanischen Weibererbrechts. Zeitschrift fr Rechtsgeschichte, Germanistische Ableitung 21: 1-18. Bhler, Th.

1964. Fosterage. Schweizerisches Archiv fr Volkskunde 60: 1-17. Busse, Werner. 1979. Verwandtschaftsstrukturen im Parzival. Wolfram-Studien 5: 116-134. Cahen, Maurice. 1926. Genou , adoption et parent en Germanique. Bulletin de la Socit de Linguistique de Paris 27: 56-67. Cowgill, Warren. HAVE 1960. Gothic iddja and Old English ode. Language 36 (4): 483-501. [P. 497, n. 36: the Germanic form for husbands of two sisters.] Dargun, Lothar von. 1883. Mutterrecht und Raubehe und Ihre Reste im Germanischen Recht und Leben. Breslau: W. Koebner. 161 S. Darmes, Georges. 1978. Schwager und Swher, Hahn and Huhn. Die Vr,ddhi-Ableitung in Germanischen. Mnchen: Kitsinger. Deman, Albert. HAVE 1981. Le terme de parent germanique svecerio/socerio dans les inscriptions latines. Antiquit Classique 50: 198-208. [Cross-listed in ROMANCE.] Diepeveen, Ariane. 2003. Verwantschapstermen in de Germaanse Talen. Antwerpen: Universiteit Antwerpen. 118 P. (Antwerp Papers in Linguistics 103.) Domaszewski, A. von. 1893. Das deutsche Wort Braut in lateinischen Inschriften. Neue Heidelberger Jahrbcher 3: 193-197. Drow, K. F. 1963. The Germanic Family in the Lex Burgundionum. Medievalia et Humanistica: 5-14. Ellert, Ernest E. 1946. The Etymology and Semantic Development of Words of Family Relationship in the Germanic Languages. Ph.D. dissertation. University of North Carolina at Chapel Hill. 145 P. Ficker, Julius. 1891. Untersuchungen zur Erbenfolge der Ostgermanischen Rechte. Innsbruck: Wagner. [Against the theory of Germanic patrilinearity.] Flom, George T. 1917. Alliteration and Variation in Old Germanic Name-Giving. Modern Language Notes 32 (1): 7-17. [On the repetition of names in alternate generations.] Genzmer, Felix. 1950. Die germanische Sippe als Rechtsgebilde. Zeitschrift fr Rechtsgeschichte, Germansiche Ableitung 67: 34-49.

Grnbech, Vilhelm. 1931. Culture of the Teutons. Translated by William Worster. Vol. 1-3. Oxford: Oxford University Press. Gundermann, G. HAVE 1901. Das deutsche Wort Braut bei Rmern und Griechen. Zeitschrift fr Deutsche Wortforschung 42: 129-153. Haff, K. 1953. Der umstrittene Sippenbegriff und die Siedlungsprobleme. Zeitschrift fr Rechtsgeschichte, Germanistische Ableitung 70: 320-325. Haubrichs, Wolfgang. HAVE 2000. Die Erfindung der Enkel: Germanische und deutsche Terminologie der Verwandtschaft und der Generationen. Zeitschruft fr Literaturwissenschaft und Linguistik 120: 41-80. Heusler, Andreas. 1885. Institutionen des Deutschen Privatrechts. Leipzig: Duncker & Humblot. [Against the theory of Germanic patrilinearity.] Hildebrandt, Reiner. 1995. Summarium Heinrici. Berlin: De Gruyter. [Pp. 117-123: terms of kinship and affinity; in Old High German (11-12th century) with Latin glosses] Hffler, Otto. HAVE 1954. ber die Grenzen semasiologischer Personennamenforschung. In Festschrift fr Dietrich Kralik, herausgegeben von Ritter von Meyrswalden. Pp. 26-53. Horn, N.-O.: F. Berger. Reprinted in: Germanistische Linguistik 114 (1993): 15-44. (Special Issue: Reader zur Namenkunde II. Anthroponymie, herausgegeben von Friedhelm Debus und Wilfried Seibicke. Hildesheim, etc.: Georg Olms.) Holthausen, Ferdinand. 1952. Wortkundliches. II. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 70: 198-208. [P. 198: an etymology of Germanic terms for fathers sister.] HAVE Jasanoff, Jay H. 1994. Germanic. In Langue Indo-Europennes, edit par Franoise Bader. Pp. 251-280. Paris: CNRS. [P. 259: on the terms for daughter and father in Germanic.] HAVE Kaufmann, Friedrich. 1910. Braut und Gemahl. Zeitschrift fr Deutsche Philologie 42: 129-153. Kluge, Friedrich. HAVE 1886. Nominale Stammbildungslehre der Altgermanischen Dialecte. Halle: Max Niemeyer. [. 2, 25, 30, 31, 53, 58: kin terms.] Kluge, Friedrich. 1905-1906. Etymologien. 1. And. snura = lat. nurus. Zeitschrift fr Deutsche Wortforschung 7: 169-170. [Term for daughter-in-law.] Kluge, Friedrich. HAVE

1909. Zur deutschen Etymologie. III. Braut. Beitrge zur Geschichte der Deutschen Sprache und Literatur 34: 561-566. Kroeschell, Karl. 1960. Die Sippe im germanischen Recht. Zeitschrift fr Rechtsgeschichte, Germanistische Ableitung 77: 1-25. [Against the agnatism of Sippe.] Krogmann, W. 1931. Frutis. Glotta 19: 175-180. [Pp. 177-178: on Germ. brdi bride.] Krogmann, W. 1934. Brautlauf und Braut. Wrter und Sachen 16: 80-90. Kurylowicz, Jerzy. HAVE 1968. Die Flexion der germanischen schwachen Femininstmme. In Studien zur Sprachwissenschaft und Kulturkunde. Gedenkschrift fr Wilhelm Brandenstein (18981967), heraugegeben von Manfred Mayrhofer. Ss. 85-91. Innsbruck: Innsbrucker gesellschaft zur Pflege der Geisteswissenschaft. [Pp. 85: Lat amita, 90: Germ swaihro/swaihra.] Lehmann, Winfred P. 1968. The Proto-Germanic Words Inherited from Proto-Indo-European Which Reflect the Social and Economic Status of the Speakers. Zeitschrift fr Mundartforschung 35 (1): 125. [Pp. 13-17: kin terminology.] HAVE Leumann, Ernst. HAVE 1909. Der Ursprung der Wrter Schnur und Schwester. Zeitschrift fr Deutsche Wortforschung 11: 60-63. Meijers, Eduard M. 1925. Eine germanische Zhlung der Verwandtschaftsgrade. Tijdschrift voor Rechtsgeschiedenis/Legal History Review 6: 1-52. [In comparison with the Roman system.] Meineke, E. 2004. Familie. In Reallexikon der Germanischen Altertumskunde, herausgegeben von Heinrich Beck, Herbert Jankuhn, Heiko Steuer, Dieter Timpe und Reinhart Wenskus. Pp. 181-183. Berlin: Walter de Gruyter. Meinhard, H. H. 1975. The Patrilineal Principle in Early Teutonic Kinship. In Studies in Social Anthropology: Essays in Memory of E. E. Evans-Pritchard by His Former Oxford Colleagues, edited by J. H. M. Beattie and R. G. Lienhardt. Pp. 1-29. Oxford: Clarendon Press. Mezger, Fritz. HAVE 1942. The Formation of Old High German diorna, Old Saxon thiorna, Gothic widuwairna, and Old English niwerne. Modern Language Notes 57 (6): 432-433. [On the infulence of kin terms morphology on other words.] Mezger, Fritz. HAVE 1965. Germ. frijnd- Verwandte. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 79: 3338.

Mllenhoff, Karl, and Max Roediger. HAVE 1900. Deutsche Altertumskunde. Berlin: Weidmann. [Bd. 4, pp. 315-325: kinship and kin terms.] Mller, Ernst E. 1979. Grossvater, Enkel, Schwiegersohn. Untersuchungen zur Geschichte der Verwandtschaftsbezeichnungen im Deutschen. Heidelberg: Winter. 179 P. HAVE

Murray, Alexander C. 1976. Kinship Structure in Late Antiquity and the Early Middle Ages. Ph.D. dissertation. University of Toronto. Murray, Alexander C. 1983. Germanic Kinship Structure: Studies in Law and Society in Antiquity and the Early Middle Ages. Toronto: Pontifical Institute of Medieval Studies. Reviews: Bachrach 1985; Charles-Edwards 1986. Pappenheim, Max. 1908. ber knstliche Verwandtschaft im germanische Recht. Zeitschrift (der SavignyStiftung) fr Rechtsgeschichte, Romanistiche Abteilung 29: 304-333. Parkin, Robert. HAVE 1993. On the Definition of Prescription: The Problem of Germanic Kinship Terminologies. Social Anthropology 1: 309-325. Pfeffer, Georg. HAVE 1985. Symmetrische Prskriptiion in germanischen Verwandtschaftsterminologien. Sociologus 85 (1): 53-73. See also Pffefer 1987; Welter 1987; Parkin 1993. Pfeffer, Georg. HAVE 1987. Erwiderung auf Welters Kritische Anmerkungen Anthropos 82: 631-636. [Reply to Welter 1987.] Pfeil, Sigmund Graf von. 1973. Avunkulat. In Reallexikon der Germanische Altertumskunde. Bd. 1. Ss. 525-527. Berlin: De Gruyter. Phillpotts, Bertha S. 1913. Kindred and Clan in the Middle Ages and After: A Study in the Sociology of the Teutonic Races. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Pogatscher, Alois. HAVE 1904. Ueber den Ursprung des westgermanischen Deminutivsuffixes -inkil. Beiblatt zur Anglia 15: 238-247. [Including its use with kin terms.] Pogatscher, Alois. HAVE 1901. Das westgermanische Deminutivsuffix -inkil. Anglia 23: 310-315. [Including its use with kin terms.] Pons-Sanz, Sara M. HAVE

2005. Friends and Relatives in Need of an Explanation: Gr. anagkaos, L necessarius, and PGmc *naud-. Journal of English and Germanic Philology 104 (1): 1-11. Rietschel, S. 1919. Sippe. In Reallexikon der Germanische Altertumskunde. Bd. 4. Strassburg: K. J. Trbner. Schlesinger, Walter. 1963. Randbemerkungen zu drei Aufstzen ber Sippe, Gefolgschaft und Treue. In Alteuropa und die Moderne Gesellschaft: Festschrift fr Otto Brunner. Ss. 11-59. Gttingen. Reprinted in: Beitrge zur Deutschen Verfassungsgeschichte des Mittelalters. Bd. 2. Ss. 286-334. Gttingen. Seebold, Elmar. 1982. Der bergang von idg. -w- zu germ. -k- und -g-. Indogermanische Forschungen 87: 172-194. [Pp. 174-175: on the Germanic terms for husbands brother.] HAVE Seebold, Elmar. HAVE 1991. Was haben die Germanen unter einer Braut verstanden? In Perspectives on IndoEuropean Language, Culture and Religion: Studies in Honor of Edgar C. Polom. Vol. 2. Pp. 444-456. McLean, VI: Institute for the Study of Man. Seiffert, Leslie. 1990. The Terms of Kindred, or Kindred on Good and Bad Terms: Parzivals Vulgar Slaying of His Fathers neve Ither. Forum for Modern Language Studies 26 (2): 160-184. Stutz, Ulrich. 1890. Das Verwandtschaftsbild des Sachsenspiegels und seine Bedeutung fr die Schsische Erbfolgeordnung. Breslau: W. Koebner. [Reprinted in Aalen: Scientia-Verlag, 1973.] Sybel, Heinrich von. 1844. Entstehung des Deutschen Knigthums. Frankfurt am Main: F. Varrentrapp. 267 S. [On kinship origins of the Germanic state.] Trumper, John. 1976. Filologia Germanica. Padova: CLEUP. [Pp. 32-160: Germanic kin terminologies in the IE context; social anthropology and linguistics.] Van Helten, W. 1909. Zur Etymologie von Braut. Beitrge zur Geschichte der Deutschen Sprache und Literatur 35: 306-310. Vennemann, Theo. 2002. Key Issues in English Etymology. In Sounds, Words, Texts and Change: Selected Papers from the 11th International Conference on English Historical Linguistics, Santiago de Compostela, 7-11 September 2000, edited by Teresa Fanego, Beln MndezNaya and Elena Seoane. Pp. 227-330. Amsterdam: John Benjamins. [The hypothesis of as Semitic origin for some items of Germanic social vocabulary, including Sippe family.]

Vinogradoff, Paul. 1913. Foundations of Society (Origins of Feudalism). Cambridge Medieval History 2: 630-654. [Transition from kin-based to feudal society in Germanic history.] Welter, Volker. HAVE 1987. Kritische Anmerkungen zu Georg Pfeffers Aufsatz Symmetrische Prskriptiion in germanischen Verwandtschaftsterminologien. Anthropos 82: 267-271. [Critique of Pfeffer 1985.] See also Pffefer 1987; Parkin 1993. Wood, Francis A. HAVE 1900. Etymologies. Modern Language Notes 15 (2): 48-51. [P. 48: first identification of Germ *brudi- bride as from IE *mer-.] Wood, Francis A. 1914. Germanic Etymologies. Modern Philology 11 (3): 315-338. [Pp. 316-317: etymology of a Germanic term for son-in-law.] COMPARATIVE Bjerke, Robert. 1967. A Contrastive Study of Old German and Old Norwegian Kinship Terms. Ph.D. dissertation. University of Wisconsin Madison. Bjerke, Robert. 1969. A Contrastive Study of Old German and Old Norwegian Kinship Terms. International Journal of American Linguistics. Memoir 22. Dal, Ingerid. 1945. ber die Vokaldehnungen in engl. father und deutsch Vater. Norsk Tidsskrift for Sprogvidenskap 13: 357-362. Dupr La Tour, Flix. 1900. De la Recherche de la Paternit en Droit Compar et Principalement en Suisse, en Angleterre et en Allemagne. Paris: Arthur Rousseau. 186 P. Review: Durkheim 1902b. Ranjan, Rasa. 2002. Patriarchalic Tradition in Usage of Kinship Terms in Lithuanian and Hindi Languages. Acta Orientalia Vilnensia 3: 29-36. Reinius, J. 1903. On Transferred Apellations of Human Beings, Chiefly in English and German. Studies in Historical Sematology. Gteborgs Vetenkapsoch Vitterhets-Samhlles Handlingar. Fjrde Fljden 5-6. Vandermeeren, Sonja. 1988. Mutter- und Vaterland: Semantik von zweigliedrigen deutschen und niederlndischen Wortbildungen mit Verwandtschaftsbezeichnungen. Germanische Mitteilungen: Zeitschrift fr Deutsche Sprache, Literatur und Kultur in Wissenschaft und Praxis 27: 51-65.

WEST ENGLISH ANCIENT COLLECTIONS White, Stephen D. 2005. Re-Thinking Kinship and Feudalism in Early Medieval Europe. Aldershot: Ashgate Press. GENERAL Abbott, Wilbur C. 1904. Hrothulf. Modern Language Notes 19 (5): 122-125. [P. 124: kin terms and compounds.] Bck, Hilding. 1934. The Synonyms for Child, Boy, Girl in Old English: An EtymologicalSemasiological Investigation. Lund: H. Ohlsson. Bajema, Ingeborg M. HAVE 1994. The Mothers Brother: An Investigation into the Meaning of Old English eam. Neophilologus 78: 633-643. Bartelt, Guillermo. HAVE 1996. A Note on Old English Kinship Semantics. Journal of English Linguistics 24 (2): 116-122. Bayer, Ludwig der. 1895. Review of Ein Schauspiel in Fnf Aufzgen von Ludwig Uhland, herausgegeben von Ludwig Frnkel. Archiv fr das Studium der Neueren Sprachen und Literaturen 49 (94): 429-433. [Pp. 432: on the putative OEng oc father-in-law and its connection to Lith uosvis.] Bremmer, Rolf H. 1980. The Importance of Kinship: Uncle and Nephew in Beowulf. Amsterdamer Beitrge zur lteren Germanistik 15: 21-38. Campbell, Charles D. HAVE 1905. Names of Relationship in English: A Contribution to English Semasiology. Strassburg: Universitts-Buchdruckerei von J. H. Ed. Heitz. 139 P. Cessford, Craig. HAVE 1996. Exogamous Marriages between Anglo-Saxons and Britons in Seventh Century Northern Britain. Anglo-Saxon Studies in Archaeology and History 9: 49-52. Chadwick, H. Munro. 1912. The Heroic Age. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. [Supports the theory of Anglo-Saxon cognatism.] Charles-Edwards, Thomas D. HAVE 1997. Anglo-Saxon Kinship Revisited. In The Anglo-Saxons from the Migration Period to the Eighth Century: An Ethnographic Perspective, edited by John Hines. Pp. 171-210.

Woodbridge, Suffolk, UK; Rochester, NY: Boydell Press; San Marino, R.S.M.: Center for Interdisciplinary Research on Social Stress. Cronan, Dennis. HAVE 2004. Poetic Words, Conservatism and the Dating of Old English Poetry. Anglo-Saxon England 33: 23-50. [Pp. 4, 14-18, 26-27: OEng suhterga brothers son.] Drout, Michael D. C. 1997. Imitating Fathers: Tradition, Inheritance and the Reproduction of Culture in Anglo-Saxon England. Ph.D. dissertation. Loyola University, Chicago. Ehrismann, G. HAVE 1890. Ags. twgen, bgen und einige germanische Verwandschaftsbegriffe. Germania 35: 168-169. [Dual kin terms.] Fischer, Andreas. HAVE 2002. Notes on Kinship Terminology in the History of English. In Of Dyuersitie and Chaunge of Langage: Essays Presented to Manfred Grlach on the Occasion of his 65th Birthday, edited by Katja Lenz and Ruth Mhlig. Pp. 115-128. Heidelberg: Carl Winter. Glosecki, Stephen O. 1996. The Kin Bonds of Camelot. Medieval Perspectives 11: 46-47. Helmig, Thomas. 1992. Anglo-Saxon Kin-Class Structure. Mankind 33 (2): 155-162. HAVE

Hodgkin, R. H. 1935. A History of the Anglo-Saxons. London: Oxford University Press. [Supports the theory of Anglo-Saxon cognatism.] Kemble, John M. 1849. The Saxons in England, a History of the English Commonwealth Till the Period of the Norman Conquest. London: Longmans. [Supports the theory of Anglo-Saxon patrilinearity.] Klaeber, Fr. 1922. Beowulf and The Fight at Finnsburg. Boston: D. C. Heath. [P. 84: on OEng and OHG dyadic kin terms.] Lancaster, Lorraine. HAVE 1957. Kinship in Anglo-Saxon Society. British Journal of Sociology 9 (3): 230-250; (4): 359-377. Logarbo, Mona L. 1986. The Body and Soul as Kinsmen: An Explanation of the Theology og the AngloSaxon Body-Soul Theme in Terms of an Underlying Anglo-Saxon Spirituality of Kinship. Ph.D. dissertation. Fordham University, New York, NY: Department of English. Loyn, H. R. 1974. Kinship in Anglo-Saxon England. Anglo-Saxon England 3: 197-209. Lynch, Joseph H. HAVE 1985. Hugh I of Clunys Sponsorship of Henry IV: Its Context and Consequences. Speculum 60 (4): 800-826. [Includes discussions of fictive kinship.]

Lynch, Joseph H. 1998. Christianizing Kinship: Ritual Sponsorship in Anglo-Saxon England. Ithaca, N.Y.: Cornell University Press. Maitland, Frederic W. 1895. History of English Law before the Time of Edward I. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. [A proof of the cognatic nature of ancient Anglo-Saxon society.] Pp. 237-281, 293-306, 486-526 reprinted under title Inheritance and Descent and Corporation and Person in: Anthropology and Early Law: Selected from the Writings of Paul Vinogradoff, Frederic W. Maitland, Frederick Pollock, Maxim Kovalevsky, Rudolf Huebner and Frederic Seebohm, edited by Lawrence Krader. Pp. 173-229, 300-336. New York and London: Basic Books. Maitland, Frederic W. 1924. Domesday Book and Beyond. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. [P. 349: the cognatic nature of ancient Germanic society.] Mezger, Fritz. 1931. Ae. faesl, n. Nachkommenschaft und ae. cnsl Nachkommenschaft, Gesellschaft, Familie, Vaterland. Archiv fr das Studium der Neueren Sprachen und Literaturen 160: 91-92. Mezger, Fritz. 1932. Ae. forecynren, n. Nachkommenschaft maegcynren, n. Familie, Linie cynren, n. Art, Familie, Verwandtschaft, Generation, Nachkommenschaft. Archiv fr das Studium der Neueren Sprachen und Literaturen 161: 228-229. Pfeffer, Georg. 1987. The Vocabulary of Anglo-Saxon Kinship. LHomme 27 (3): 113-128. HAVE

Roberts, Jane, and Christian Kay. 1995. A Thesaurus of Old English. Vols. 1-2. London: Kings College London, Centre of Late Antique and Medieval Studies. [Pp. 39-44: Family, Household.] Roeder, Fritz. 1899. Die Famille bei den Anglesachsen. Halle: Max Niemeyer. Review: Durkheim 1901c. Sellers, William E. 1956a. The Folklore of Kinship in the British Traditional Ballads. Ph.D. dissertation. Boston University Graduate School. Sellers, William E. 1956b. Kinship in the British Ballads. Southern Folklore Quarterly 20(4): 199-215. Spolsky, Ellen. 1977. Old English Kinship Terms and Beowulf. Neuphilologische Mitteilungen 78: 233238. Storch, Theodor.

1886. Angelschsische Nominalcomposita. Strassburg: K. J. Trbner. [Pp. 6-7: kinship composites.] HAVE Thomas, Roger. 1997. Land, Kinship Relations and the Rise of Enclosed Settlement in First Millenium B.C. Britain. Oxford Journal of Archaeology 16 (2): 211-218. Zupitza, Julius. 1895. Review of A Concise Anglo-Saxon Dictionary for the Use of Students, by John R. Clark Hall, 1894. Archiv fr der Neueren Sprachen und Litteraturen 49 (94): 430-434. [Pp. 431-432: IE terms terms for step-parents, including controversial OEng oc.] HAVE MEDIEVAL and EARLY MODERN Bowdon, Lynne. 2004. Redefining Kinship: Exploring Boundaries of Relatedness in Late Medieval New Romney. Journal of Family History 29 (4): 407-420. Cressy, David. 1986. Kinship and Kin Interaction in Early Modern England. Past and Present 113: 3869. Dingle, Joan. 1997. Kinship and Mobility in Early Modern England: Case Studies from Nottinghamshre. M. A. thesis. University of Calgary. Homans, George C. HAVE 1937. Partible Inheritance of Villagers Holdings. Economic History Review 8 (1): 48-56. Homans, George C. 1941. English Villagers of the Thirteenth Century. Cambridge: Harvard University Press. [Ch. 2: Families.] Reviews: Stephenson 1941; Powicke 1942; Wilkinson 1943; Postan 1945. Houston, R. A. 1983. Marriage Formation and Domestic Industry: Occupational Endogamy in Kilmarnock, Ayrshire, 1697-1764. Journal of Family Hsitory 8: 215-229. Ingram, Martin. 1988. Church Courts, Sex and Marriage in England, 1570-1640. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. James, Mervyn. 1974. Family, Lineage, and Civil Society: A Study of Society, Politics ad Mentality in the Durham Region 1500-1640. Oxford: Clarendon Press. Reviews: McFarlane 1974; Hitchcock 1976; Howell 1976; Storey 1976. Levine, David. 1984. Production, Reproduction and the Proletarian Family in England, 1500-1851. In Proletarianization and Family History, edited by David Levine. Pp. 87-127.Orlando, FL: Academic Press.

McCracken, Grant. 1983. The Exchange of Children in Tudor England: An Anthropological Phenomenon in Historical Context. Journal of Family History 8 (4): 303-313. McCracken, Grant. 1988. Culture and Consumption: New Approaches to the Symbolic Character of Consumer Goods and Activities. Bloomington and Indianapolis: Indiana University Press. [Pp. 12-14: changes in English family in response to consumption; 44-53: family heirlooms as curatorial consumption.] McCullough, John, Kathleen Heath, and Jessica Fields. 2006. Culling the Cousins: Kingship, Kinship, and Competition in Mid-Millennial England. History of the Family 11 (1): 59-66. MacFarlane. Alan. 1970. The Family Life of Ralph Josselin, A Seventeenth-Century Clergyman: An Essay in Historical Anthropology. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Reviews: Allison 1971; Woolrych 1971; Dobyns 1972; Vann 1972; Waters 1972. MacFarlane, Alan. 2002. The Making of the Modern World: Visions from the West and East. London: Palgrave. [Includes an account of kinship and property in England following Bloch and Maitland.] Morrow, Richard B. 1978. Family Limitation in Pre-Industrial England: A Reappraisal. Economic History Review 31 (3): 419-428 Nitze, W. A. 1912. The Sisters Son and the Conte del Graal. Modern Philology 9: 291-323. Smith, Richard M. 1979. Kin and Neighbors in a Thirteenth-Century Suffolk Community. Journal of Family History 4: 219-256. Smith, Richard M. 1984. Some Issues Concerning Families and Their Property in Rural England 1250-1800. In Land, Kinship and Life-Cycle, edited by Richard M. Smith. Pp. 1-86. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Spring, Eileen. 1993. Law, Land, and Family: Aristocratic Inheritance in England, 1300 to 1800. Chapel Hill and London: University of North Carolina Press. Reviews: Trumbach 1994; Warneke 1994; Adamson 1995; Bonfield 1995; Erickson A. 1995; McGovern 1995; Mirow 1995; Mitchell L. 1995; Pollock 1995; Warneke 1995; Beckett 1996; Crawford 1996; Hackney 1996; Murphy W. 1996; Dolan 1998. Stone, Lawrence. 1977. Family, Sex, and Marriage in England 1500-1800. New York: Harper & Row. Reviews: Monter 1978; Engerman 1979; McDonald M. 1979; Slack 1979; Vann 1979.

Sweetinburgh, Sheila. HAVE 2006. Strategies of Inheritance among Kentish Fishing Communities in the Later Middle Ages. History of the Family 11 (2): 93-105. Voltmer, Bruno. 1911. Die Mitterlenglische Terminologie der Ritterlichen Verwandtschafts- und Standesverhltnisse nach den Hfischen Epen und Romanzen des 13. und 14. Jahrhunderts. Pinneberg: Druck von A. Beig. Wareham, Andrew. 2001. The Transformation of Kinship and the Family in Late Anglo-Saxon England. Early Medieval Europe 10 (3): 375-399. White, Stephen D. 1989. Kinship and Lordship in Early Medieval England: The Story of Sigeberht, Cynewulf, and Cyneheard. Viator 20: 1-18. Berkeley and Los Angeles. Reprinted in: Re-Thinking Kinship and Feudalism in Early Medieval Europe, by Stephen D.White. Pp. 1-18. Aldershot: Ashgate Press, 2005. White, Stephen D. 1996. Maitland on Family and Kinship. In The History of English Law: Centenary Essays on Pollock and Maitland, edited by John Hudson. Pp. 91-113. Oxford and New York: Oxford University Press. [Cross-listed in PERSONALIA.] Reprinted in: Re-Thinking Kinship and Feudalism in Early Medieval Europe, by Stephen D.White. Pp. 91-113. Aldershot: Ashgate Press, 2005. White, Stephen D., and Richard T. Vann. 1983. The Invention of English Individualism: Alan Macfarlane and the Modernization of Pre-Modern Europe. Social History 8: 345-363. [Critique of Macfarlanes underplay of kinship.] Reprinted in: Re-Thinking Kinship and Feudalism in Early Medieval Europe, by Stephen D.White. Pp. 345-363. Aldershot: Ashgate Press, 2005. Wrigley, E. A. HAVE 1966. Family Limitation in Pre-Industrial England. Economic History Review 19 (1): 82109. MODERN COLLECTIONS Wohl, Anthony S. (ed.) 1978. The Victorian Family: Structure and Stresses. New York: St. Martins Press. Reviews: Creighton 1979; Peterson 1979; Thompson P. 1979. GENERAL Allan, Graham. 1996. Kinship and Friendship in Modern Britain. Oxford: Oxford University Press. Anderson, Nancy F.

1982. The Marriage with a Deceased Wifes Sister Bill Controversy: Incest Anxiety and the Defense of Family Purity in Victorian England. Journal of British Studies 21 (2): 6786. Anderson, Nancy F. 1986. Cousin Marriage in Victorian England. Journal of Family History 11 (3): 285-301. Anderson, Michael. 1971. Family Structure in Nineteenth Century Lancashire. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Reviews: MacFarlane 1972a; Hammond 1973; Hareven 1973; Katz M. 1973; Shorthouse 1973. Arthur, Jay. 1990. Whats Your Family. English Today 6: 33-36. Baumann, Gerd. 1995. Managing a Polyethnic Milieu: Kinship and Interaction in a London Suburb. Journal of the Royal Anthropological Institute 1 (4): 725-741. Beysel, Karl. 1927. Die Namen der Blutverwandtschaft im Englischen. Giessener Beitrge zur Erforschung der Sprache und Kultur Englands und Nordamerikas 3: 89-152. Blackstone, William. 1750. An Essay on Collateral Consanguinity. London: W. Owen. Bott, Elizabeth. 1955. Urban Families: Conjugal Roles and Social Networks. Human Relations 8: 345384. Reprinted in: Man in Adaptation: The Institutional Framework, edited by Jehudi A. Cohen. Pp. 76-103. Chicago and New York: Aldine, 1971. Brown, L. Neville. HAVE 1961. English Family Law Since the Royal Commission. University of Toronto Law Journal 14 (1): 52-66. Davidoff, Leonore. HAVE 2005. Kinship as a Categorical Concept: A Case Study of Nineteenth Century English Siblings. Journal of Social History 39 (2): 411-428. Drummond, Lee. 1978. The Transatlantic Nanny: Notes on a Comparative Semiotics of the Family in English-Speaking Societies. American Ethnologist 5 (1): 30-43. Drummond, Lee. 1979. Letter. American Ethnologist 6 (1): 216. [Response to Kronenfeld 1979.] Drummond, Lee. 1980. Reply to Vatuk: On the Trans-Pacific nanny. American Ethnologist 7 (1): 196197. [See Vatuk 1980.]

Edwards, Jeanette. 2000. Born and Bred: Idioms of Kinship and New Reproductive Technologies in England. Oxford: Oxford University Press. Edwards, Jeanette. 2008. Creativity in English Baptist Understandings of Assisted and Assisting Conception. In Creativity and Cultural Improvisation, edited by Elizabeth Hallam and Tim Ingold. Oxford: Berg. Edwards, Jeanette, and Marilyn Strathern. 2000. Including Our Own. In Cultures of Relatedness: New Approaches to the Study of Kinship, edited by Janet Carsten. Pp. 149-166. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Finch, Janet. 1989a. Kinship and Friendship. In British Social Attitudes: Cross-National Data, edited by in L. Brook and R. Jowell. Aldershot: Gower. Finch, Janet. 1989b. Social Policy, Social Engineering and the Family in the 1990s. In The Goals of Social Policy, edited by M. Bulmer, J. Lewis and D. Piachaud London: Unwin Hyman. Finch, Janet. 1989c. What Does Marriage Mean to Women? In Does Marriage Matter? Three Perspectives, edited by R. Chester. London: London Marriage Research. Finch, Janet. 1996a. Responsibilities and the Quality of Relationships in Families. In In Pursuit of the Quality of Life, edited by A. Offer. Pp. 119-139. Oxford University Press. Finch, Janet. 1996b. Inheritance and Financial Transfer in Families. In The New Generational Contract, edited by A. Walker. Pp. 120-134. London: UCL Press. Finch, Janet. 1996c. Family Responsibilities and Rights. In Citizenship Today: The Contemporary Relevance of T. H. Marshall, edited by M. Bulmer and A. M. Rees. Pp. 193-208. London: UCL Press. Finch, Janet. 1996d. Generations, Inheritance and Policy Relevant Research. In The Politics of the Family, edited by H. Jones and J. Miller. Pp. 211-221. Aldershot: Avebury. Finch, Janet. 1996e. Women, "the" Family and Families. In Women, Power and Resistance, edited by T. Cosslett, A. Easton and P. Summerfield. Pp. 13-22. Milton Keynes: Open University Press. Finch, Janet. 1997. Individuality and Adaptability in English Kinship. In Family and Kinship in Europe, edited by M. Gullestad and M. Segalen. Pp. 129-145. London: Pinter. Finch, Janet. 2004a. Family Policy and Civil Registration: An Analysis of the White Paper 'Civil Registration: Vital Change'. Journal of Social Policy 33 (2): 249-266.

Finch, Janet. 2004b. Inheritance and Intergenerational Relationships in English Families. In Families in Ageing Societies: A Multi-Disciplinary Approach, edited by S. Harper. Pp. 164-175. Oxford: Oxford University Press. Finch, Janet. 2006. Kinship as Family in Contemporary Britain. in Kinship Matters, edited by F. Ebetehaj, B. Lindley and M. Richards. Pp. 293-306. Oxford: Hart. Finch, Janet, and L. Hayes. 1996. Gender, Inheritance and Women as Testators. In Gender Relations in Public and Private, edited by L. Morris and E. S. Lyon. Pp. 121-140. London: Macmillan. Finch, Janet, and J. Mason. 1990. Divorce, Remarriage and Family Obligations. Sociological Review 28 (2): 219-246. Finch, Janet, and J. Mason. 1990. Filial Obligations and Kin Support for Elderly People. Ageing and Society 10: 151175. Finch, Janet, and J. Mason. 1990. Gender, Employment and Responsibilities to Kin. Work, Employment and Society 4 (3): 349-367. Finch, Janet, and J. Mason. 1991. Obligations of Kinship in Contemporary Britain: Is There Normative Consensus? British Journal of Sociology 42 (3): 345-367. Finch, Janet, and J. Mason. 1993. Death, Inheritance and the Life Course. In The Sociology of Death, edited by D. Clark. Pp. 50-68. Oxford, Blackwell. Finch, Janet, and J. Mason. 1994a. Family Responsibilities and Inheritance in Great Britain. In Families, Politics and the Law, edited by M. MacLean and J. Kurczewski. Pp. 97-119. Oxford: Clarendon Press. Finch, Janet, and J. Mason. 1994b. Inheritance, Houses and the Concept of the Home. Sociology 28 (2): 417-432. Finch, Janet, and D. Morgan. 1991. Marriage in the 1980s: A New Sense of Realism? In Marriage, Domestic Life and Social Change, edited by D. Clark. London: Routledge. Finch, Janet, and P. Summerfield. 1991. Social Reconstruction and the Emergence of Companionate Marriage, 1945-59. In Marriage, Domestic Life and Social Change, edited by D. Clark. London: Routledge. Finch, Janet, and L. Wallis. 1994. Inheritance, Care Bargains and Elderly People's Relationships with their Children. In Community Care: New Agendas and Challenges from the UK and Overseas, edited by D. Challis and B. Davies. Pp. 110-120. Aldershot: Gower.

Firth, Raymond W. 1961. Family and Kin Ties in Britain and Their Social Implications. Introduction. British Journal of Sociology 12: 305-309. Firth, Raymond W., and Judith Djamour. 1956. Kinship in South Borough. In Two Studies of Kinship in London, edited by Raymond W. Firth. Pp. 33-66. London: University of London/Athlone Press. Firth, Raymond, Jane Hubert, and Anthony Forge. 1969. Families and Their Relatives: Kinship in a Middle-Class Sector of London: An Anthropological Study. London: Routledge & K. Paul; New York: Humanities Press. Reviews: Barnes 1970; Karnooh 1974a. Glauser, Beat. 1985. Boys and Girls, Sons and Daughters: The Evidence of the Survey of English Dialects. English World-Wide: A Journal of Varieties of English 6 (1): 37-57. Goody, Jack. 1969. On Nannas and Nannies. In Comparative Studies in Kinship, by Jack Goody. Pp. 240-252. Stanford CA: Stanford University Press. Grassby, Richard. 2001. Kinship and Capitalism: Marriage, Family, and Business in the English Speaking World, 1580-1720. New York: Cambridge University Press. Review: Schmidt 2003. Hammick, James T. 1887. The Marriage Law of England. London: Shaw & Sons. Hill, Reuben. 1970. Family Development in Three Generations: A Longitudinal Study of Changing Patterns of Planning and Achievement. Cambridge: Schenkman. Kay, Paul. HAVE 1974. On the Form of Dictionary Entries: English Kinship Semantics. In Towards Tomottows Linguistics, edited by Roger W. Shuy and Charles-James N. Bailey. Pp. 120138. Washington, DC: Georgetown University Press. [Includes a Seneca Iroquois analysis.] Kay, Paul. 1975. Constants and Variables in English Kinship Semantics. Language Behavior Research Laboratory Working Papers 45. Berkeley. Kay, Paul. 1977. Constants and Variable of English Kinship Semantics. In Studies in Language Variation, edited by R. W. Fasold and R. W. Shuy. Washington, DC: Georgetown University Press. Kenny, C. S. 1878. The History of the Law of Primogeniture in England and the Effect Upon Landed Property. Cambridge: Hall.

Lambek, J. 1986. A Production Grammar for English Kinship Terminology. Theoretical Linguistics 13 (1-2): 19-36. Levine, David. 1977. Family Formation in an Age of Nascent Capitalism. New York: Academic Press. Reviews: Gillis 1978; Creighton 1978; Laslett B. 1979; Shammas 1979. Lisle-Williams, M. 1984. Merchant Banking Dynasties in the English Class Structure: Ownership, Solidarity and Kinship in the City of London, 1850-1960. British Journal of Sociology 35 (3): 333362. Lord, E. 2002. Given Names and Inheritance. In Naming, Society and Regional Identity: Papers Presented at a Symposium Held at the Department of English Local History, University of Leicester, edited by David Postles. Oxford: Leopards Head Press. Mufwene, Salikoko S. 1983. Investigating What the Words Father and Mother Mean. Language and Communication 3 (3): 245-269. Scott Smith, D. 1984. Child Naming Practices as Cultural and Family Indicators. Local Population Studies 32: 17-27. [18th century England and colonial North America.] Shaw, L. A. 1954. Impression of Family Life in a London Suburb. Sociological Review 3 (2): 175195. Simpson, Bob. 1994. Bringing the Unclear Family into Focus: Divorce and Re-Marriage in Contemporary Britain. Man 29 (4): 831-851. Simpson, Bob. 2006. Scrambling Parenthood: English Kinship and the Prohibited Degrees of Affinity. Anthropology Today 22 (3): 3-6. Strathern, Marilyn. 1981. Kinship at the Core: An Anthropology of Elmdon, a Village in North-West Essex in the Nineteen-Sixties. Cambridge and New York: Cambridge University Press. Review: Frankel 1982; Wright 1982; Yanagisako 1983. Strathern, Marilyn. 1982. The Place of Kinship: Kin, Class and Village Status in Elmdon, Essex. In Belonging, Identity and Social Organization, edited by A. P. Cohen. Pp. 72-100. Manchester: Manchester University Press. Strathern, Marilyn. 1992. After Nature: English Kinship in the Late Twentieth Century. Cambridge and New York: Cambridge University Press.

Reviews: Dolgin 1993; Rose 1994. Symes, David, and John Appleton. 1986. Family Goals and Survival Strategies: The Role of Kinship in an English Upland Farming Community. Sociologia Ruralis 26 (3-4): 345-363. Taylor, Archer. 1929. The Semantics of Child. Modern Language Notes 44 (5): 309-314. Taylor, John R. 1996. Possessives in English: An Exploration in Cognitive Grammar. Oxford: Clarendon Press. [Sporadically on the possession of kin terms in English; 199-201: on the possession of kin terms and the use of modifiers/specifiers in Italian in conjunction with Lyonss theory.] Turner John N., and Hildegard Davis-Ferid. 1983. Englisches Familienrecht. Frankfurt am Main: Verlag fr Standesamtswesen. 154 P. Vatuk, Sylvia. 1980. More on Guyanese Creole nanny. American Ethnologist 7 (1): 196. See Drummond 1978, 1980. Williams, William M. 1963. A West Country Village: Ashworthy: Family, Kinship, and Land. London: Routledge & Paul. Review: Owen 1964. Willmott, Peter. 1991. Parent et urbanisation dans lhistoire anglaise. Genses 4 (1): 128-144. HAVE

Wolfram, Sybil. 1961. Le marriage entre allis dans lAngleterre contemporaine. LHomme 1: 47-71. Wolfram, Sybil. 1987. In-Laws and Outlaws: Kinship and Marriage in England. Beckenham, Kent: Croom Helm. Reviews: Carruthers 1988; Smith, R. 1988. Young, Michael. 1954. Kinship and Family in East London. Man 54 (210): 137-139. Young, Michael, and Peter Willmott. 1957. Family and Kinship in East London. London: Routledge & Kegan Paul. Review: Banton 1958. FRISIAN Bammesberger, Alfred. HAVE

1968. Altfriesisch swger. Indogermanische Forschungen 73 (1-2): 133-135. Lendinara, Patrizia. HAVE 1990. The Survival of Indo-European Words in Old Frisian. In Aspects of Old Frisian Phonology, edited by Rolf H. Bremmer, Geart van der Meer and Oebele Vries. Pp. 285311. Amsterdam and Atlanta: Rodopi; Groningen: SSFYRUG. [Pp. 297-300: Family and State.] Meijers, Eduard M. 1946. Het Friese en het Drentse erfrecht en huwelijksgoederenrecht. Akademiedagen 2: 37-71. Amsterdam. Van Helten, W. L. 1906. Zum altfriesischen Vokalismus. III. Zu altfries. (a) und (e) aus germ. nicht in schwachtoniger Silbe stehendem ai (aus idg. ai, i, oi). Indogermanische Forschungen 19: 185-198. [P. 192: on tker husbands brother and thum brother-in-law.] Walde. Alois. 1901. Zur Entwicklung von germ. ai im Friesischen. Indogermanische Forschungen 12: 372-386. [Pp. 375-376: in kin terms such as tker husbands brother and thum brother-in-law.] LOW SAXON-LOW FRANCONIAN LOW FRANCONIAN DUTCH Barnard, Alan. HAVE 1980a. Convergent Structures in Nama and Dutch-Afrikaans Kinship Terminologies. VOC: Journal for Overseas Studies 1 (1): 25-34. [Cross-listed in AFRICA/KHOISAN.] Gerritzen, Doreen, Gerrit Bloothooft, and Frans van Poppel en Jan Verduin. 1999. Naming for Kin and the Development of Modern Family Structures: An Analysis of a Rural Region in the Netherlands in the Nineteenth and Early Twentieth Centuries. The History of the Family: An International Quarterly 4: 261-295. Kalmijn, Matthijs, Paul M. de Graaf, and Anne-Rigt Poortman. 2004. Interactions Between Cultural and Economic Determinants of Divorce in the Netherlands. Journal of Marriage and the Family 66: 75-89. Kalmijn, Matthijs, Paul M. de Graaf, and Jacques P. G. Janssen. HAVE 2005. Intermarriage and the Risk of Divorce in the Netherlands: The Effects of Differences in Religion and Nationality, 1974-94. Population Studies 59 (1): 71-85. Kooy, Gerrit A. 1973. Brak, porodica i srodstvo u nizozemskom selu u sociolokoj perspektivi. Sociologija Sela 11 (2-4): 240-246. Zagreb. (Special Issue: Brak, Porodica i Srodstvo u Selu) [A Dutch village.] Paping, Richard. 2004. Family Strategies, Wage Labour and the Family Life Cycle in the Groningen Country Side, c. 1850-1910. In Where the Twain Meet Again: New Results of the Dutch Russian Project on Regional Development, 1780-1917, edited by P. Kooij and Richard Paping. Groningen: Nederlands Agronomisch Historisch Instituut. Tavernier-Vereecken, G.

1954. De etymologie van wijf. Revue Belge de Pilologie et d'Hstoire 32 (1): 97-101. Winkel, L.A. te. 1865. Vader, moeder, broeder, zuster, dochter en zoon. De Taalgids: Tijdschrift tot Uitbreiding van de Kennis der Nederlandsche Taal 7: 274-278. [Dutch kin terms with IE comparisons.] VLAAMS (FLEMISH) Van de Putte, Bart, Koen Matthijs, and Robert Vlietinck. 2008. Mortality in the Family of Origin and Its Effect on Marriage Partner Selection in a Flemish Village 18th-20th Centuries. In Kinship and Demographic Behavior in the Past, edited by Tommy Bengtsson, and Geraldine P. Mineau. Pp. 37-72. Dordrecht and London: Springer. GERMAN GENERAL Anonymous (Hartmann, H.) HAVE 1891. Die deutschen Verwandtschaftsnamen. Zeitschrift fr Deutsche Kulturgeschichte 2: 56-66. Bergmann, Rolf 2000. Onkel and Tante. Word History, Vocabulary History, and Historical Lexicography. Germanistische Mitteilungen 52: 115-124. Beth, M. 1936-1937. Stiefeltern. In Handwrterbuch des Deutschen Aberglaubens, edited by Hans Baechtold-Staeubli. T. 8. Ss. 448-480. Berlin and Leipzig: Walter de Gruyter. Deecke, Wilhelm. 1870. Die Deutschen Verwandtschaftsnamen. Eine Sprachwissenschaftliche Untersuchung Nebst Vergleichenden Anmerkungen. Weimar: H. Bhlau. 223 P. Reprint: Wiesbaden: M. Sndig, 1970. Demade, J. 2006. Parent, noblesse et chec de la gense de ltat. Le cas Allemand. Annales: Histoire, Sciences Sociales 61 (3): 609-629. Hamp, Eric P. HAVE 1983. Three Pseudo-Problems. 3. On the Medial Syllable of Daughter. Indogermansiche Forschungen 88: 94-95. [Reaction towards Peeters 1979.] Jones, William J. 1990. German Kinship Terms, 750-1500: Documentation and Analysis. Berlin and New York: Walter de Gruyter. Review: West J. 1991. Jones, William J. 2005. Change in Lexical Fields: A Case Study of Kinship Terms in German. In Lexikologie: Ein Internationales Handbuch zur Natur und Struktur von Wrtern und

Wortschtzen = Lexicology: An International Handbook on the Nature and Structure of Words and Vocabularies, edited by D. Alan Cruse, Franz Hundsnurscher, Michael Job, and Peter R. Lutzeier. Vol. 2. Pp. 1353-1363. Berlin and New York: Walter de Gruyter. Kauffmann, F. 1910. Braut und Gemahl. Zeitschrift fr Deutsche Philologie 42: 129-153. Kruijsen, Joep, and Nils lhammar. HAVE 1986. 469: Son-in-Law and 470: Daughter-in-Law. In Aspects of Language: Studies in Honour of Mario Alinei. Papers presented to Mario Alinei by his friends and colleagues of the Atlas Linguarum Europae on the occasion of his 60th birthday. Vol. 1. Pp. 316-339. Amsterdam: Rodopi. Kuhn, Hans. HAVE 1947. Philologisches zur Adoption bei den Germanen. Zeitschrift fr Rechtsgeschichte, Germanistische Abteilung 65: 1-14. Kummer, Bernhard. 1931. Gevatter. In Handwrterbuch des Deutschen Aberglaubens. T. 3. Berlin. Lamprecht, Karl. 1889. Zur Socialgeschichte der Deutschen Urzeit. Tbingen: H. Laupp. 12 P. [Includes 1. Gaugemeinde, Sippe und Familie der Urzeit; Sippe und 2. Familie nach den frnkischen Volksrechten.] Maurer, Friedrich, and Heinz Rupp. 1974. Deutsche Wortgeschichte. Bd. 1-2. Berlin: Walter de Gruyter [Bd. 1. Pp. 9-17: kin terms in an IE perspective.] Peeters, Christian. HAVE 1979. Notes on Indo-European and Germanic Etymologies. Daughter in Germanic and Indo-European. Indogermanische Forschungen 84: 206-207. [See Hamp 1983, for reaction.] Ruiprez, Germn. HAVE 1984. Die Strukturelle Umsichtung der Verwandtschaftsbezeichnungen im Deutschen: Ein Beitrag zur Historichen Lexikologie, Diachronen Semantik und Ethnolinguistik. Marburg: N. G. Elwert. 219 P. Schoof, W. 1900. Die deutschen Verwandtschaftsnamen. Zeitschrift fr Hochdeutsche Mundarten 1: 193-298. Schrader, Otto. 1904. Die Schwiegermutter und der Hagestolz. Eine Studie aus der Geschichte Unserer Familie. Braunschweig: G. Westermann. 119 P. Review: Meringer 1905. Spiess, Karl-Heinz. 1993. Familie und Verwandtschaft im Deutschen Hochadel des Sptmittelalters. 13. Bis Anfang des 16. Jahrhunderts. Stuttgart: Steiner.

Spiess, Karl-Heinz. 2007. Lordship, Kinship, and Inheritance among the German High Nobility in the Middle Ages and Early Modern Period. In Kinship in Europe: Approaches to Long-Term Development (1300-1900), edited by David W. Sabean, Simon Teuscher and Jon Mathieu. Pp. 57-75. New York and Oxford: Berghahn Books. Wackernagel, W. D. 1971. Adoption. In Handwrterbuch zur Deutschen Rechtsgeschichte. T. 1. Pp. 56-58. Berlin: E. Schmidt. ANCIENT Austin, William M. HAVE 1946. A Corollary to the Germanic Verschrfung. Language 22 (2): 109-111. [P. 109: on the Germanic reflexes of *daiwer husbands brother.] Bugge, Sophus. 1888. Etymologische Studien ueber Germanische Lautverschiebung. Beitrge zur Geschichte der Deutschen Sprache und Literatur 13: 167-187. [Pp. 175-176: on OHG basa fathers sister as a Kosename.] HAVE Grimm, Jacob. 1841. Uota ano ato. Zeitschrift fr Deutsches Altertum 1: 21-26.||| HAVE

Huebner, Rudolf. 1918. A History of German Private Law. Translated by F. S. Philbrick. Boston: Little, Brown. Excerpted under title Germanic Law of the Family and Marriage and Man, Right, and Association in: Anthropology and Early Law: Selected from the Writings of Paul Vinogradoff, Frederic W. Maitland, Frederick Pollock, Maxim Kovalevsky, Rudolf Huebner and Frederic Seebohm, edited by Lawrence Krader. Pp. 237-299. New York and London: Basic Books, 1966. Lamprecht, Karl. 1889. Die Socialgeschichte der deutschen Urzeit. In Festgabe fr Georg Hanssen zum 31, mai 1889. Ss. 61-72. Tubingen: H. Laupp. [On family and clan.] Mahlknecht, B. 1975. Alte Verwandtschaftsbezeichnungen. Der Schlern 49: 307-308. Stroh, Friedrich. 1974. Indogermanische Ursprnge. In Deutsche Wortgeschichte, von Friedrich Maurer and Heinz Rupp. Ss. 3-34. New York. [Pp. 9-17: kinship terms.] Meynial, Edmond. 1896-1897. Le mariage aprs les invasions. Nouvelle Revue Historique de Droit Franais et tranger 4, 6 (1896), 2 (1897). Review: Durkheim 1898-1899. Mezger, Fritz. HAVE 1960. Oheim und Neffe. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 76: 296-302. [Old High German terms for mothers brother and sisters son.]

Much, R. 1923. Oheim. Zeitschrift fr Deutsches Altertum und Deutsche Literatur 69: 46-48. Noreen, Adolf. 1894. Abriss der Urgermanischen Lautlehre. Strassburg: Karl J. Trbner. [Pp. 26, 167, 177: notes on some OHG kin terms.] HAVE Osthoff, H. HAVE 1888. Etymologica I. Oheim. Beitrge zur Geschichte der Deutschen Sprache und Literatur 13: 447-457. [OHG term for mothers brother.] Schulze, Wilhelm. 1907. Ahd. suagur. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 40: 400-418. [OHG term for brother-in-law.] Reprinted in Kleine Schriften von Wilhelm Schulze. S. 60-75. Gttingen: Vandenhoeck & Ruprecht, 1933. Szemernyi, Oswald. HAVE 1952. The Etymology of German adel. Word 8: 42-50. [Mostly on IE social terminology, but of general relevance to kinship.] MEDIEVAL sdahl Holmberg, Mrtha. 1984. Zur Bennenung von Ehefrauen und anderen Frauen im Mittelniederdeutschen. In Wortes Anst, Verbi Gratia: Donum Natalicium Gilbert A.R. de Smet, herausgegeben von Heinrich L. Cox, V. F. Vanacker, and Edward Verhofstadt. Pp. 29-36. Leuven: Acco. Bischoff, Karl. 1984. Wif, vrouwe und Ihresgleichen im Mittelalterlichen Elbostflischen: Eine Wortgeschichtliche Studie. Wiesbaden: Franz Steiner. Drew, Katherine F. 1963. The Germanic Family of the Leges Burgundionum. Medievalia et Humanistica 15: 5-14. Erben, Johannes. 1972. Zu den Verwandtschaftsbezeichnungen der Luthersprache: Die sprachliche Erfassung der Vorfahren. In Zeiten und Formen in Sprache und Dichtung: Festschrift fur Fritz Tschirch zum 70. Geburtstag, herausgegeben von Karl-Heinz Schirmer und Bernhard Sowinski. Pp. 376-383. Kln and Wien: Bohlau. Hlawitschka, Eduard. 1976a. Adoption in mittelalterlichen Knigshaus. In Beitrge zur Wirtschafts- und Sozialgeschichte des Mittelalters. Festschrift fr H. Helbig, herausgegeben von K. Schulz. Ss. 1-32. Kln-Wien: Bhlau. Reprinted in: Stirps Regia: Forschungen zu Knigtum und Fhrungsschichten im Frheren Mittelalter, von Eduard Hlawitschka. Ss. 11-42. Frankfurt am Main, etc.: Peter Lang, 1988. Hlawitschka, Eduard.

1976b. Die verwandtschaftliche Verbindungen zwischen dem hochburgundischen und dem niederburgundischen Knigshaus. Zugleich ein Beitrag zur geschichte Burgunds in der 1. Hlfte des 10. Jahrhunderts. In Grundwissenschaften und Geschichte. Festschrift fr P. Acht. Ss. 28-57. Kallmnz: Michael Lassleben. Reprinted in: Stirps Regia: Forschungen zu Knigtum und Fhrungsschichten im Frheren Mittelalter, von Eduard Hlawitschka. Ss. 269-298. Frankfurt am Main, etc.: Peter Lang, 1988. Kasten, Brigitte. 2001. Stepmothers in Frankish Legal Life. In Law, Laity, and Solidarities: Essays in Honour of Susan Reynolds, edited by P. Stafford, J. L. Nelson, and J. Martindale. Pp. 4767. Manchester: Manchester University Press. Leyser, K. J. 1970. Maternal Kin in Early Medieval Germany: A Reply. Past and Present 49: 126-134. MaNamara, Jo-Ann, and Suzanne F. Wemple. 1976. Marriage and Divorce in the Frankish Kingdom. In Women in Medieval Society, edited by Susan M. Stuard. Pp. 95-124. Philadelphia: University of Pennsylvania Press. Morsel, Joseph. 1998. Geschlecht als Reprsentation. Beobachtungen zur Verwandtschaftskonstruktion im frnkischen Adel des spten Mittelalters. In Reprsentation der Gruppen. Texte Bilder Objekte, herausgegeben von Otto G. Oexle und Andrea von Hlsen-Esch. Ss. 259-325. Gttingen: Vandehoeck & Ruprecht. Nolte, Cordula. 2000. Gendering Princely Dynasties: Some Notes on Family Structure, Social Networks and Communication at the Courts of the Margraves of Brandenburg-Ansbach Around 1500. Gender and History 12: 704-721. Nolte, Cordula. 2005. Familie, Hof und Herrschaft. Das Verwandtschaftliche Beziehungs- und Kommunikationsnetz der Reichsfrsten am Beispiel der Markgrafen von BrandenburgAnsbach (1440-1530). Ostfildern. Schieffer, Rudolf. 1990. Vter und Shne im Karolingerhaus. In Beitrge zur Geschichte des Regnum Francorum. Referate beim Wissenschftlichen Colloquium zum 75. Geburtstag von Eugen Ewig am 28. Mai 1988, herausgegeben von Rudolf Schieffer. Ss. 149-164. Sigmaringen. Schmid, Karl. 1957. Zur Problematik von Familie, Sippe und Geschlecht, Haus und Dynastie beim mittelalterlichen Adel. Vorfragen zum Thema Adel und Herrschaft im Mittelalter. Zeitschrift fr Geschichte des Oberrheins 105: 1-62. Zimmermann, August. 1903. Zu mhd. enenkel Enkel. Indogermanische Forschungen 15 (3-4): 339. HAVE

MODERN GENERAL Barth, Dieter. 1975. Das Familienblatt Ein Phnomen der Unterhaltungspresse des 19. Jahrhunderts. Archiv fr Geschichte des Buchwesens 15: 121-316. [The genre of celebratory familial writing.] Bartholmes, Herbert. 1970. Bruder, Brger, Freund, Genosse und Andere Wrter der Sozialistischen Terminologie. Wortgeschichtliche Beitrge. Wuppertal-Barmen: P. Hammer. Berkner, Lutz K. 1972. The Stem Family and the Developmental Cycle of a Peasant Household: An Eighteenth-Century Austrian Example. American Historical Review 77: 398-418. Berkner, Lutz K. 1976. Inheritance, Land Tenure and Peasant Family Structure: A German Regional Comparison. In Family and Inheritance: Rural Society in Western Europe, 1200-1800, edited by Jack Goody, Joan Trisk and E. P. Thompson. Pp. 71-95. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Beuys, Barbara 1984. Familienleben in Deutschland. Neue Bilder aus der Deutschen Vergangenheit. Hamburg: Rowolt. Borneman, John. 1992. Belonging in the Two Berlins: Kin, State, Nation. Cambridge and New York: Cambridge University Press. Review: Koshar 1995. Cole, John W., and Eric R. Wolf. 1974. The Hidden Frontier: Ecology and Ethnicity in an Alpine Valley. New York and London: Academic Press. [Pp. 233-262: Kith and Kin. Includes kin terminology (pp. 240-241).] HAVE Reviews: Friedl 1975; Bailey 1976. Debus, Friedhelm. HAVE 1958. Die Deutschen Bezeichnungen fr die Heiratsverwandtschaft. Deutsche Wortforschung in Europischen Bezugen. Vol. 1, herausgegeben von Ludwig E. Schmitt. Pp. 1-116. Giessen: Wilhelm Schmitz. Diewald, Martin. 1998. Persnliche Bindung und gesellschaftliche Vernderungen. Zum Wandel von Familien- und verwandtschaftsbeziehungen in Ostdeutschland nach der Wende. In Verwandtschaft. Sozialwissenschaftliche Beitrge zu einem Vernachlssigen Thema, edited by Michael Wagner and Yvonne Schtze. Ss. 183-202. Stuttgart: Ferdinand Enke. Duhamelle, Christophe.

2007. The Making of Stability: Kinship, Church, and Power among the Rhenish Imperial Knighthood, Seventeenth and Eighteenth Centuries. In Kinship in Europe: Approaches to Long-Term Development (1300-1900), edited by David W. Sabean, Simon Teuscher and Jon Mathieu. Pp. 125-144. New York and Oxford: Berghahn Books. Edmonson, Munro S. 1958. German Kinship Terms: Rejoinder. American Anthropologist 60 (4): 755-756. See Naroll 1958; Edmonson 1957 in THEORY. Erben, Johannes. 1985. Grossvater und Enkel: Zur Bezeichnungsgeschichte der Vorfahren und Kindeskinder im Deutschen. In Sprachwissenschaftliche Forschungen: Festschrift fur Johann Knobloch zum 65. Geburtstag am 5. Januar 1984 dargebracht von Freunden und Kollegen, herausgegeben von Hermann M. Olberg und Gernot Schmidt. Pp. 91-100. Innsbruck: Innsbrucker Gesellschaft zur Pflege der Geisteswissenschaft. Escher, Arnold. 1900. Der Einfluss des Geschlechtsunterschiedes der Descendenten im Schweizerischen Erbrecht. Zurich: Fried. Review: Durkheim 1901b. Fenner, Burkhard. 1984. Verwandtenbeziehungen in einem Dorf des Rheinischen Braunkohlengebietes. Berlin: D. Reimer. Review: Ganzer 1986. Francovich Onesti, Nicoletta. 1979-1980. I nomi di parentela nei dialetti delle isole linguistiche alemanne del piemonte e della Valle dAosta. Studi Germanici 17-18 (47-52): 5-34. Gloning, Karl. 1980. Paraphasien bei Verwandtschaftsbezeichnungen. In Paraphasie: Untersuchungen zum Problem Lexikalischer Fehlleistungen, herausgegeben von Karl Gloning und Wolfgang U. Dressler. Pp. 61-100. Munich: Fink. Goldbeck, I. 1955. Die lieben Verwandten: Verwandtschaftsbezeichnungen in bertragener Bedeutung. Muttersprache 65: 134-143. Grunow, Oskar. 1966. Die Beziechnungen einiger Verwandtschaftsgrade. Ihre Etymologie und Ihre Wortgeographie im sterreichisch-Bairischen Sprachraum. Ph.D. dissertation. University of Vienna. Helmig, Thomas. 1983. German Kin Classification. Anthropology 7 (1): 17-30. HAVE

Helmig, Thomas. 1984a. Zur kulturellen Kategorisierung im Bereich der Verwandtschaft im Gebiet der deutschen Schweiz. Zeitschrift fr Dialektologie und Linguistik 51 (3): 332-349.

Helmig, Thomas. 1984b. Eine stiefmtterliche Behandlung der Stiefmutter. Zur semantischen Struktur von Stiefmutter" und ihrer Nutzbarmachung im Mrchen. Rheinisch-Westflischen Zeitschrift fr Volkskunde 29: 205-210. Hess, Rolf-Dieter. 1968. Familien- und Erbrecht im Wrttembergischen Landrecht von 1555 under Besonderer Berucksichtigung des lteren Wrttembergischen Rechts. Stuttgart: Kohlhammer. Hurwich, Judith J. HAVE 1993. Inheritance Practices in Early Modern Germany. Journal of Interdisciplinary History 23 (4): 699-718. Jones, William J. 1990. German Kinship Terms, 750-1500. Berlin: de Gruyter. Khera, S. 1972. Kin Ties and Social Interaction in an Austrian Peasant Village with Divided Land Inheritance. Behavioral Science Notes 7 (4): 349-366. Kirschweng, Johann. 1934. Sippe und Ahnen die deutschen Verwandtschaftsnamen im Lichte der Sprache. Heimatbltter 11 (24). Kocka, Jrgen. 1979. Familie, Unternehmer und Kapitalismus: An Beispielen aus der frhen deutschen Industrialisierung. Zeitschrift fr Unternehmergeschichte 24: 99-135. Krogmann, Willy. 1958-1959. Nhd. Weib. Indogermanische Forschungen 64: 136-145. Lamouse, Annette. 1969. Family Roles of Women: A German Example. Journal of Marriage and the Family 13: 145-152. Lupri, Eugen. 1969. Contemporary Authority Patterns in the West German Family: A Study on CrossNational Validation. Journal of Marriage and the Family 31: 134-144. Merten, Stephan. 1990. Zweitspracherwerb und kulturelles Lernen. Wirkendes Wort: Deutsche Sprache und Literatur in Forschung unf Lehre 40 (2): 268-284. [Vietnamese kin terms and forms of address compared to German; Cross-listed in AUSTROASIATIC.] Merten, Stephan. HAVE 1994. Die sprachliche und gesellschaftliche Interpretation von Welt: Farben und Verwandtschaftsbezeichnungen. Sociologus 44 (2): 149-165. [Vietnamese compared to German; Cross-listed in THEORY and AUSTROASIATIC.]

Mitzka, Walther, and Ludwig E. Schmitt. 1957. Deutscher Wortatlas. Giessen: Wilhelm Schmitz. [Pp. 1-9: index, with kin and affinal terms.] HAVE Naroll, Raoul. 1958. German Kinship Terms. American Anthropologist 60 (4): 750-755. HAVE

Nbling, Damaris. 2006. Historische Sprachwissenschaft des Deutschen: Eine Einfhrung in die Prinzipien des Sprachwandels. Berlin: Gunter Narr. [Pp. 125-130: kin terminology.] Opet, Otto. HAVE 1899. Das Verwandtschaftsrecht des Brgerlichen Gesetzbuchs fr das Deutsche Reich. Berlin: Franz Vahlen. 440 P. Pajares, Diana M. 1973. Reglas generativas para la formacion de nombres de parentesco en el idioma aleman. Lenguaje y Ciencias 13: 46-52. Plakans, Andrejs. 1986. Genealogies as Sources for Kinship Studies in the Eighteenth and Nineteenth Centuries: A German Example. In Generations and Change: Genealogical Perspectives in Social History, by Ralph Crandall and Robert M. Taylor. Pp. 125140. Macon, GA: Mercer University Press. Reif, Heinz. 1982. Vterliche Gewalt und kindliche Narrheit. Familienkonflikte im katholischen Adel Westfalens vor der franzzischen Revolution. In Die Familie in der Geschichte, herausgegeben von Heinz Reif. Ss. 82-113. Gttingen. Ruiperez, German. 1984. Die Strukturelle Umschichtung der Verwandtschaftsbezeichnungen im Deutschen: Ein Beitrag zur Historischen Lexikologie, Diachronen Semantik und Ethnolinguistik. Marburg: N. G. Elwert. 219 P. Sabean, David W. 1984. Young Bees in an Empty Hive: Relations between Brothers-in-Law in a South German Village Around 1800. In Interest and Emotion: Essays on the Study of Family and Kinship, edited by Hans Medick and David W. Sabean. Pp. 171-186. Cambridge and New York: Cambridge University Press; Paris: ditions de la Maison des Sciences de lHomme. Sabean, David W. 1990. Kinship in Neckarhausen, 1700-1870. Cambridge, U.K., and New York: Cambridge University Press. Review: Plakans 1989. Sabean, David W. 1990. Property, Production, and Family in Neckarhausen, 1700-1870. Cambridge and New York: Cambridge University Press.

Review: Hagen 1992; Koepping 1999. Sabean, David W. 2002. Kinship and Prohibited Marriages in Baroque Germany: Divergent Histories among Jewish and Christian Populations. Leo Baeck Institute Yearbook 47: 91-103. [Cross-listed in EURASIA.] Sommerfeldt, K.-E. 1981. Was ein Bruderalles sein kann: Verwandtschaftsbezeichnungen und ihre Bedeutung. Sprachpflege: Zeitschrift fur Gutes Deutsch 30 (3): 33-36. Sternkopf, Jochen. 1995. Zur Prsenz des Wortfeldes Verwandschaftsbezeichnungen in Phraseologismen der deutschen Gegenwartssprache. Linguistica Pragensia 1: 25-36. Trempelmann, Gisela. 1988. Brderlich-Schwesterlichkeit: Zu den Verwandtschaftsbezeichnungen Bruder und Schwester in bertragener Bedeutung. Sprachpflege: Zeitschrift fr Gutes Deutsch 37 (12): 173-176. Vandermeeren, Sonja. 1988. Mutter- und Vaterland: Semantik von zweigliedrigen deutschen und niederlndischen Wortbildungen mit Verwandtschaftsbezeichnunge. Germanistische Mitteilungen: Zeitschrift fur Deutsche Sprache, Literatur und Kultur in Wissenschaft und Praxis 27: 51-65. Vandermeeren, Sonja. 1998. Semantik deutscher Substantivkomposita mit Verwandtschaftsbezeichnungen. Deutsche Sprache: Zeitschrift fr Theorie, Praxis, Dokumentation 26 (3): 240-255. Vandermeeren, Sonja. 1999. Semantische Analyse deutscher Substantivkomposita: Drei Untersuchungsmethoden im Vergleich. Leuvense Bijdragen 88 (1-2): 69-94. [Compound nouns with kin terms.] Weidlein, Johannes. HAVE 1963. Die Verwandtschaftsnamen in den donauschwaebischen Mundarten. Zeitschrift fr Mundartforschung 30 (1): 58-65. Weisberger, Leo. 1953. Vom Weltbild der Deutschen Sprache. T. 1-2. Dsseldorf: Pdagogischer Verlag Schwann. [Vol. 1, pp. 59-68: semantic structures of German and Latin kin terminologies, with comparisons with Chinese; vol. 2, p. 61: the semantic content of German Onkel uncle.] Wilkening, E. A., and Eugen Lupri. 1965. Decision-Making in German and American Families: A Cross-Cultural Comparison. Sociologia Ruralis 4: 366-385. [Cross-listed in AMERICA.] Zwick, Tamara M. 2004. The Correspondence Between Public and Private: Women, Kinship and Brgertum in Early Nineteenth Century Hamburg. Ph.D. dissertation. University of California, Los Angeles.

SWISS GERMAN Hammer, R., C. Burton-Jeangros, J. Kellerhals. 2001. Le lien de parent dans les jeunes gnrations suisses: Lignes, structure et fonctions. Population 56 (4): 515-537. Mathieu, Jon. 2007. Kin Marriages: Trends and Interpretations from the Swiss Example. In Kinship in Europe: Approaches to Long-Term Development (1300-1900), edited by David W. Sabean, Simon Teuscher and Jon Mathieu. Pp. 211-230. New York and Oxford: Berghahn Books. Netting, Robert M. 1979. Household Dynamics in a Nineteenth-Century Swiss Village. Journal of Family History 4: 39-58. Teuscher, Simon. 1998. Bekannte Klienten Verwandte. Soziabilitt und Politik in der Stadt Bern um 1500. Kln, Weimar und Wien: Bhlau. Teuscher, Simon. 2003. Parent, politique et comptabilit: Chroniques familiales du Sud de lAllemagne et de la Suisse autour de 1500. Annales: Histoire, Sciences Sociales 58: 847-858. Teuscher, Simon. 2007. Politics of Kinship in the City of Bern in the End of the Middle Ages. In Kinship in Europe: Approaches to Long-Term Development (1300-1900), edited by David W. Sabean, Simon Teuscher and Jon Mathieu. Pp. 76-90. New York and Oxford: Berghahn Books. GOTHIC Berneker, Erich. 1898. Etymologisches. 2. Got. manna Mensch, magus Knabe, Knecht. Indogermanische Forschungen 9: 360-361. HAVE

Brandt, H. C. G. HAVE 1880. On Recent Investigations of Grimms Law. American Journal of Philology 1 (2): 146-160. [P. 152: accent vs. frequency of use as explanation of -d- in Goth fadar and modar.] Braune, Wilhelm. 2004. Gotische Grammatik, mit Lesestcken und Wrterverzeichnis. Tbingen: Max Nimeyer. Delbrck, Berthold. 1870. ber das gotische dahtar. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 19: 241247. Dekker, Kees, and Cornelis Dekker.

1999. The Origins of Old Germanic Studies in the Low Countries. Leiden: Brill. [Pp. 300-301: on Francis Juniuss (1590-1677) and Dutch philologist and lawyer Jan van Vleets (1622-1666) interpretation of Gothic terms for father and mother in the Germanic context.] Ebbinghaus, Ernst A. 1972. Gotica IV. General Linguistics 12 (1): 32-34. [Includes a discussion of fadrein lineage, family.] Reprinted in: Gotica: Kleine Schriften zur Gothischen Philologie von Ernst A. Ebbinghaus, herausgegeben von Piergiuseppe Scardigli und Wolfgang Meid. Ss. 14-16. Innsbruck: Institut fr Sprachen und Literaturen. Ebbinghaus, Ernst A. 1974. Gotica IX. General Linguistics 14 (2): 97-101. [On atta vs. fadar.] HAVE

Reprinted in: Gotica: Kleine Schriften zur Gothischen Philologie von Ernst A. Ebbinghaus, herausgegeben von Piergiuseppe Scardigli und Wolfgang Meid. Ss. 30-34. Innsbruck: Institut fur Sprachen und Literaturen. Hamp, Eric P. HAVE 1990. The Germanic r-Stem Nominative Singular. Historische Sprachforschung 103: 102-103. [On the short vowel in Goth brar brother.] Jucquois, Guy. HAVE 1971. Got. aba, abrs, etc., et la question des etymologies croises. Leuvense Bijdragen 60 (3): 199-203. [On the Gothic word for man, husband.] Meillet, Antoine. 1908-1909. propos de quelques etymologies. Mmoires de la Socit de Linguistique de Paris 15: 336-340. [P. 340: on consonantal gemination in Goth atta father.] HAVE Mezger, Fritz. HAVE 1952. Ahd. jungdi, lit. vilktis, got. nijis. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 70: 117-119. [The morphology of a Gothic word for kinsman and other IE kin terms.] Mezger, Fritz. 1938. Got. abrs stark, heftig, biabrjan sich entsetzen, aba m. Gatte. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 65: 122-123. Mezger, Fritz. 1960. German. aia- Eid, Eideshelfereid : got. aiei Mutter. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 76: 85-86. HAVE

Molinari, Maria V. 1975. Considerazioni sul gotico di Crimea. Incontri Linguistici 2: 97-118. [Pp. 102, 107: schuos as schnos; 113-114: schuuester as *swester, with s > sh before u.] Otrbski, Jan. HAVE 1950. Miscellanes onomastiques. 5. Lintreprtation du nom des Goths. Lingua Posnaniensis 2: 79-98. [On Goth magus boy and its kin term cognates in ONorse and Celtic.] Scardigli, Piergiuseppe.

1964. Lengua e Storia dei Goti. G. S. Firenze: Sansoni. [Pp. 82-88: on kin terms.] HAVE Sen, Subhadra K. HAVE 1972. A Note on Gothic ATTA. Bulletin of the Department of English, Calcutta University 8 (1): 35-36. Sen, Subhadra K. HAVE 1992. Gothic atta and fadar: A Semantic Analysis. In Rekonstruktion und Relative Chronologie: Akten der VIII. Fachtagung der Indogermanischen Gesellschaft, Leiden, 31. August 4. September 1987, herausgegeben von Robert Beekes, Alexander Lubotsky und Jos Weitenberg. Ss. 255-259. Innsbruck: Institut fr Sprachwissenschaft der Universitt Innsbruck. Shields, Kenneth. HAVE 1990. Sound Change, Child Language, and Gothic ATTA. Mankind Quarterly 30 (4): 329-335. Solari, Roberto. 1978. Note sulla posizione del Gotico: I nomi di parentela. Instituto Lombardo, Rendicontti della Classe di Lettere 112: 345-359. HAVE

Stiles, Patrick V. HAVE 1988. Gothic Nominative Singular brar Brother and the Reflexes of the IndoEuropean Long Vowels in the Final Syllables of Germanic Polysyllables. Transactions of the Philological Society 86 (2): 115-143. Vinogradoff, Paul. 1925. Custom and Right. Oslo: Instituttet fr Sammenlignende Kulturforskning. Excerpted under title Custom and Law in: Anthropology and Early Law: Selected from the Writings of Paul Vinogradoff, Frederic W. Maitland, Frederick Pollock, Maxim Kovalevsky, Rudolf Huebner and Frederic Seebohm, edited by Lawrence Krader. Pp. 1930. New York and London: Basic Books. [Pp. 28-29: on Julius von Fickers use of customary records for the reconstruction of Gothic kinship system.] Wiedemann, Oskar. HAVE 1902. Got. brs und andere idg. Verwandtschaftsnamen. Beitrge zur Kunde der Indogermanischen Sprachen 27: 205-226. Yoon, Hyejoon. 2005. A Study of the Terms for father in Gothic. Language Research 41 (4): 931-948. Seoul. OLD NORSE Dommasnes, Liv H. 1991. Women, Kinship, and the Basis of Power in the Norwegian Viking Age. In Social Approaches to Viking Studies, edited by Ross Samson. Pp. 65-74. Glasgow: Cruithne Press. Gordon, E. V. 1927. An Introduction to Old Norse. Oxford: Oxford University Press. [P. 267: kin terms as r-stems.]

Gutenbrunner, Siegfried. 1942. Der Bchertitel Edda. Beitrge zur Geschichte der Deutschen Sprache und Literatur 66: 276-277. [Edda from edda great-grandmother.] Hagen, Sivert N. 1904. On the Origin of the Term Edda. Modern Language Notes 19 (5): 127-134. [The name of the epic as derived from edda great-grandmother.] Krause, Wolfgang. 1926. Die Frau in der Sprache der altislndischen Familiengeschichten. Gttingen: Dandenhoed & Ruprecht. (Ergnzungshefte zur Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 4.) Liberman, Anatoly. 1996. Ten Scandinavian and North English Etymologies. 1. OI Edda. Alvssml 6: 63-71. [On various etymologies of Edda, including the one that connects it to edda greatgrandmother.] HAVE Maurer, Konrad von. 1874. Island. Von Seiner Ersten Entdeckung bis zum Untergange des Freistaats [ca. 8001264]. Mnchen: C. Kaiser. [Pp. 325-329: law and kinship system.] Maurer, Konrad von. HAVE 1877. Die Berechtnung der Verwandtschaft nach altnorwegischem Rechte. Sitzungberichte der Philosophisch-Philologischen und Historischen Classe der Kninglich Bayerische Akademie der Wissenschaft (November 3, 1877): 235-253. Maurer, Konrad von. 1908a. Vorlesungen ber Altnordische Rechtsgeschichte. Bd. 2. ber Altnordische Kirchenverfassung und Eherecht. Leipzig: A. Deichert. Maurer, Konrad von. 1908b. Vorlesungen ber Altnordische Rechtsgeschichte. Bd. 3. Verwandtschafts- und Erbrecht samt Pfandrecht nach Altnordischem Recht. Leipzig: A. Deichert. Meulengracht Srensen, Preben. 1993. Saga and Society: An Introduction to Old Norse Literature. Odense: Odense University Press. [Pp. 17-47: Social Structure, on family, marriage and kinship.] Neckel, Gustav. 1908. Aisl edda Urgrossmutter: Ein Beitrag zur Geschichte von urgerm. ai. Beitrge zur Geschichte der Deutschen Sprache und Literatur 49: 314-320. Sawyer, Birgit, and Peter Sawyer. 1993. Medieval Scandinavia: From Conversion to Reformation, Circa 800-1500. Minneapolis: University of Minnesota Press. [Pp. 166-187: Family and Inheritance.] Vinogradoff, Paul. HAVE 1900. Geschlecht und Verwandtschaft im altnorwegischen Rechte. Zeitschrift fr Socialund Wirtschaftsgeschichte 7: 1-43. Vestergaard, Torben A. 1988. The System of Kinship in Early Norwegian Law. Medieval Scandinavia 12: 160163.

Vestergaard, Torben A. 1991. Marriage Exchange and Social Structure in Old Norse Mythology. In Social Approaches to Viking Studies, edited by Ross Samson. Pp. 21-34. Glasgow: Cruithne Press. EAST SCANDINAVIAN DANISH Anderson, Robert T., and Gallatin Anderson. 1958. The Timing Mechanism in Culture Lag Reduction: Changing Kinship in a Danish Community. Krober Anthropological Society Papers 19: 97-101. Gelting, Michael H. 1999. Marriage, Peace and the Canonical Incest Prohibitions: Making Sense of an Absurdity. In Nordic Perspectives on Medieval Canon Law, edited by Mia Korpiola. Pp. 93-124. Saarijrvi: Matthias Calonius Society. Gelting, Michael H. 2005. Pope Alexander III and Danish Laws of Inheritance. In How Nordic are the Nordic Medieval Laws?, edited by Ditlev Tamm and Helle Vogt. Pp. 86-115. Kbenhavn: University of Copenhagen Press. Review: Jacobsen 2001. Pedersen, Inger M. HAVE 1979. Danish Law Relating to Non-Marital Relationship. International and Comparative Law Quarterly 28 (1): 117-127. Rytter, Mikkel. HAVE 2010. The Family of Denmark and the Aliens: Kinship Images in Danish Integration Politics. Ethnos 75 (3): 301-322. SWEDISH Bengtsson, Tommy, and Gran Brostrm. HAVE 2008. Inheritance, Environment, and Mortality in Older Ages, Southern Sweden, 18131894. In Kinship and Demographic Behavior in the Past, edited by Tommy Bengtsson, and Geraldine P. Mineau. Pp. 185-201. Dordrecht and London: Springer. Bergman, Gsta. 1956. Syssling och tremnning. Arkiv fr Nordisk Filologi 71: 205-217. [On the Swedish terms for the children of first cousins.] Boholm, sa. 1983. Swedish Kinship: An Exploration into Cultural Processes of Belonging and Continuity. Gteborg: Acta Universitatis Gothoburgensis. 252 P. Review: Lundsgaarde 1986. Bradley, D. HAVE 1990. Marriage, Family, Property and Inheritance in Swedish Law. International and Comparative Law Quarterly 39 (2): 370-395.

Dahlstedt, Karl-Hampus. 1963. Trois termes exprimant la parent: tude ethno-smantique des relations sudolaponnes. Orbis 12: 241-249. [Cross-listed in URALIC.] Egerbladh, Inez, and Alan Bittles. HAVE 2008. The Influence of Consanguineous Marriage on Reproductive Behavior and Early Mortality in Northern Coastal Sweden, 1780-1899. In Kinship and Demographic Behavior in the Past, edited by Tommy Bengtsson, and Geraldine P. Mineau. Pp. 205224. Dordrecht and London: Springer. Moen, P. 1989. Working Parents: Transformation of Gender Roles and Public Policies in Sweden. Madison, WI: University of Wisconsin Press. Moen, P., and K. B. Forest. 1990. Working Parents, Workplace Supports, and Well-Being: The Swedish Experience. Social Psychology Quarterly 53: 117-131. Ostergren, Robert C. 1982. Kinship Networks and Migration: A Nineteenth-Century Swedish Example. Social Science History 6 (3): 293-320. Winberg, Christer, 1985. Grenverket: Studier Rrande Jord, Slktskapssystem och Stndsprivilegier. Stockholm: Nordiska bokhandeln i distribution. 255 P. Whrer, Karl. 1957. Zum altschwedischen Eherecht. Zeitschrift fr Rechtsgeschichte, Germanistische Abteilung 74: 231-233. WEST SCANDINAVIAN FAROESE Blehr, Otto. HAVE 1963. Action Groups in a Society with Bilateral Kinship: A Case Study from the Faroe Islands. Ethnology 2 (3): 269-275. Stolz, Thomas, and Sabine Gorsemann. HAVE 2001. Pronominal Possession in Faroese and the Parameters of Alienability/Inalienability. Studies in Language 25 (3): 557-599. [Includes discussion of kinship possession.] Wylie, Jonathan. 1974. Im a Stranger Too: A Study of the Familiar Society of the Faroe Islands, with special reference to the kinship, economy and demography of a small fishing village, and including brief accounts of the history of the Faroes, the literature concerning them, and the famous grindadrp, and other matters of interest. Ph.D. dissertation. Harvard University. Wylie, Jonathan. HAVE 1982. The Sense of Time, the Social Construction of Reality, and the Foundations of Nationhood in Dominica and the Faroe Islands. Comparative Studies in Society and History 24 (3): 438-466. [P. 453, n. 20: general outline of the Faroese kinship system.]

ICELANDIC ANCIENT Barlau, Stephen B. HAVE 1981. Old Icelandic Kinship Terminology: An Anomaly. Ethnology 20 (3): 191-202. MEDIEVAL Arnrsdttir, Agnes S. 1999. Two Models of Marriage: Canon Law and Icelandic Marriage Practice in the Late Middle Ages. In Nordic Perspectives on Medieval Canon Law, edited by Mia Korpiola. Pp. 79-92. Saarijrvi: Matthias Calonius Society. Hastrup, Kirsten. 1981. Kinship in Medieval Iceland. Folk 23: 331-344. Hastrup, Kirsten. 1985. Culture and History in Medieval Iceland: An Anthropological Analysis of Structure and Change. Oxford: Clarendon Press. [Pp. 44-58: Kinship in Medieval Iceland.] MODERN Curl, Sherry L. 1990. The Household in Hsavk, Iceland. Honors Thesis. University of Maine. 80 P. [Kinship and law.] Merrill, Robert T. HAVE 1964. Notes on Icelandic Kinship Terminology. American Anthropologist 66 (4, pt. 1): 867-872. Miller, William I. 1990. Bloodtaking and Peacemaking: Feud, Law, and Society in Saga Iceland. Chicago: University of Chicago Press. [P. 139-178: The Bonds of Kinship.] Pinson, Anna. HAVE 1979. Kinship and Economy in Modern Iceland: A Study in Social Continuity. Ethnology 18 (2): 183-198. [Includes kin terminology.] Rich, George W. 1976. Changing Icelandic Kinship. Ethnology 15 (1): 1-19. Rich, George W. 1980. Kinship and Friendship in Iceland. Ethnology 19 (4): 475-493 Rich, George W. 1989. Problems and Prospects in the Study of Icelandic Kinship. In The Anthropology of Iceland, edited by E. Paul Durrenberger and Gisli Plsson. Pp. 53-79. Iowa City: University of Iowa Press. Turner, V. 1971. An Anthropological Approach to the Icelandic Saga. In The Translation of Culture: Essays to Edward E. Evans-Pritchard, edited by T. O. Beidelman. Pp. 349-374. London. HAVE

GREEK COLLECTIONS OF ESSAYS Avezz, Elisa, and Oddone Longo. (eds.) 1991. Koinon Aima: Antropologia e Lessico della Parentela Greca. Bari: Adriatica. Bresson, Alain, Marie-Paule Masson, Stavros Perentidis et Jrme Wilgaux. (eds.) 2006. Parent et Socit dans le Monde Grec: De lAntiquit lge Moderne: Colloque International, Volos (Grce), 19-20-21 juin 2003. Bordeaux: Ausonius; Paris: Boccard. ANCIENT Ahrens, H. L. 1868. Das alkmanische Partheneion des Papyrus. Philologus 27: 241-285. [Pp. 264-266: terms for sister and wife in Homer and Hesychius.] HAVE Alaux, J. 1995. Le Lige et le Filet. Filiation et Lien Familial dans la Tragdie Athnienne du ve Sicle av. JC. Paris: Belin. Andrewes, A. 1961a. Philochorus on Phratries. Journal of Hellenic Studies 81: 1-15. Andrewes, A. 1961b. Phratries in Homer. Hermes 89: 129-140. Autran, Charles. 1938. et . Revue des tudes Indo-Europennes 1: 330-343. HAVE

Avezz, Elisa. 1983-1984. Il lessico della parentela in Platone. Atti dellIstituto Veneto di Scienze 142: 305-335 Avezz, Elisa. 1991. Antropologia e lessico della parentela greca. In Koinon Aima: Antropologia e Lessico della Parentela Greca, edited by Elisa Avezz and Oddone Longo. Pp. 25-40. Bari: Adriatica. Bartholomae, Christian. 1885. . Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 27: 206-207. HAVE

Becker, Howard. 1950. In Defense of Morgans Grecian Gens: Ancient Kinship and Stratification. Southwestern Journal of Anthropology 6: 309-339. Beekes, Robert S. P. 1976. Some Greek aRa-Forms. II. . III. . Mnchener Studien zur Sprachwissenschaft 34: 13-17. [Terms for husbands sister and wife.] Beidelman, T. O. 1989. Agonistic Exchange: Homeric Reciprocity and the Heritage of Simmel and Mauss. Cultural Anthropology 4 (3): 227-259. HAVE

See also Turner 1989. Bettini, Maurizio. HAVE 1988. . Rivista di Filologia e di Istruzione Classica 116 (2): 154-166. [On Gk older brother.] Blok, E. 1980. Failure to Thrive: The Theme of Parents and Children in the Aeneid and Its Iliadic Models. Ramus 9: 128-149. Boedeker, Deborah. 2008. Family Matters: Domestic Religion in Classical Greece. In Household and Family Religion in Antiquity, edited by John P. Bodel, and Saul M. Olyan. Pp. 229-247. Malden, MA; Oxford: Blackwell. Faraone, Christopher A. 2008. Household Religion in Ancient Greece. In Household and Family Religion in Antiquity, edited by John P. Bodel, and Saul M. Olyan. Pp. 210-228. Malden, MA; Oxford: Blackwell. Bogino, L. 1994. Note sul matrimonio a Sparta. Sileno: Rivista di Studi Classici e Cristiani 17: 221233. Bonnard, J.-P. 2001. Phdre sans incest: Apropos de la thorie de linceste du deuxime type et de ses applications en histoire grecque. Revue Historique 304: 77-107. Borgeaud, Ph. 1994-1995. La mre des dieux et Bachofen en Grce ancienne. Mtis 9-10: 293-297. [Cross-listed in PERSONALIA.] Bourriot, F. 1976. Recherches sur la Nature du Genos. Etude dHistoire Sociale Athnienne Priodes Archaque et Classique. Lille: Universit Lille. Review: Fisher 1979. Bral, Michel. 1889. tymologies. . Mmoires de la Socit de Linguistique de Paris 6: 345346. [One of the words for brother.] Bremmer, Jan. 1983. The Importance of the Maternal Uncle and Grandfather in Archaic and Classical Greece and Early Byzantium. Zeitschrift fr Papyrologie und Epigraphik 50 : 173-186. Bremmer, Jan. 1999. Fosterage, Kinship and the Circulation of Children in Ancient Greece. Dialogos: Hellenic Studies Review 6: 1-20. Bresson, Alain.

1984. Graphes et rseaux de parent en Grce ancienne. In Informatique et Prosopographie. Pp. 261-277. Paris: ditions de CNRS. Bresson, Alain. 1990. Le cercle des oikeioi Sparte. In Mlanges P. Lvque: Anthropologie et Socit, edit par Marie-Madeleine Mactoux. Pp. 53-59. Paris : Presses Universit FrancheComt. [Marriage rules in Sparta.] Brugmann, Karl. HAVE 1906-1907. Die der Odyssee. Indogermansiche Forschungen 20 : 218225. [On the relation of a Homeric phrase to IE names of grandson.] Calhoun, George M. 1935. Zeus the Father in Homer. Transactions of the American Philological Association 66: 1-17. Carroll, Michael P. HAVE 1978. Lvi-Strauss on the Oedipus Myth: A Reconsideration. American Anthropologist 80 (4): 805-814. [On both the devaluation and affirmation of patrilineal ties in the Theban Saga as a reflection of transition from patrilineal clans to polis-type of social organization in ancient Greece; cross-listed in PERSONALIA.] Chantraine, Pierre. HAVE 1942-1945. A propos de Grec . Bulletin de la Socit de Linguistique de Paris 42 (1-2): 50-56. [A term for stranger in the context of terms for kinship and affinity.] Chantraine, Pierre. HAVE 1946-1947. Les noms du mari et de la femme, du pre et de la mere en grec. Revue des tudes Grecques 59-60: 219-250. Chantraine, Pierre. HAVE 1960. Note sur lemploi homrique de . Bulletin de la Socit de Linguistique de Paris 55 (1): 27-31. [Apropos Lejeunes (1960) etymology of Greek kasignetos.] Cohn-Haft, Louis. 1995. Divorce in Classical Athens. Journal of Hellenic Studies 115: 1-14. Cox, Cheryl A. 1988a. Sibling Relationships in Classical Athens: Brother-Sister Ties. Journal of Family History 13: 377-395. Cox, Cheryl A. HAVE 1988b. Sisters, Daughters and the Deme of Marriage: A Note. Journal of Hellenic Studies 108: 185-188. Cox, Cheryl A. 1998. Household Interests: Property, Marriage Strategies and Family Dynamics in Ancient Athens. Princeton: Princeton University Press. Cuesta Pastor, Jos M. 1996. Gr. comadreja y la glosa . Emerita: Revista de Linguistica y Filologia Clasica 64 (2): 325-331. [An etymology of the Greek word for sister-in-law.]

Curty, Olivier. 1995. Les Parents Lgendaires entre Cits Grecques: Catalogue Raisonne des Inscriptions Contenant le Terme SUGGENEIA et Analyse Critique. Genve: Droz. Review: Hall, J. 1997. Curty, Olivier. 1999. La parent legendaire a lpoque hellnistique. Kernos 12: 167-194. Danka, Ignacy R. 2003. New Solutions in Greek Etymology. 4. Gk. dial. (m. pl.) Brothers-in-Law (Whose Wives are Sisters). Studia Indogermanica Lodziensia 5: 144. Dareste, Rodolphe. 1902. Nouvelles tudes dHistoire du Droit. Paris: L. Larose. [Pp. 60: family and marriage in Athens.] Darmon, Jean-Pierre, and Gerald Honigsblum. HAVE 1991a. Kinship Structures in Greek Heroic Dynasties: The House of Atreus and the House of Labdacus. In Greek and Egyptian Mythologies, edited by Yves Bonnefoy. Translated by Wendy Doniger. Pp. 103-105. Chicago and London: University of Chicago Press. Darmon, Jean-Pierre, and Gerald Honigsblum. HAVE 1991b. The Power of Marriage in Greece. In Greek and Egyptian Mythologies, edited by Yves Bonnefoy. Translated by Wendy Doniger. Pp. 95-103. Chicago and London: University of Chicago Press. Dickey, Eleanor. 1996. Greek Forms of Address, from Herodotus to Lucian. Oxford: Clarendon Press. [Includes kin terms and theoretical observations on vocative and referential forms of speech.] Review: Bain 1998. Dickey, Eleanor. HAVE 2004. Literal and Extended Use of Kinship Terms in Documentary Papyri. Mnemosyne, Ser. IV, 57 (2): 131-171. Donlan, Walter. HAVE 1985. The Social Groups of Dark Age Greece. Classical Philology 80 (4): 293-308. Donlan, Walter. 2007. Kin-Groups in the Homeric Epics. Classical World 101 (1): 29-39. HAVE

Elvers, Karl-Ludwig. 1997. Attisches Recht. In Der Neue Pauly Enzyklopdie der Antike, herausgegeben von Hubert Cancik und Helmuth Schneider. Bd. 2. Ss. 258-260. Stuttgart und Weimar: J. B. Metzler. [P. 260-261: Individual and the Family.] Elwyn, Susan F.

1991. The Use of Kinship Terminology in Hellenistic Diplomatic Documents: An Epigraphical Study. Ph.D. dissertation. University of Pennsylvania. 398 P. Erdmann, Walter. 1934. Die Ehe im Alten Griechenland. Mnchen: C. H. Beck. Finley, Moses I. HAVE 1955. Marriage, Sale and Gift in the Homeric World. Revue Internationale des Droits de lAntiquit, 3me srie, 2: 167-194. Flower, Michael A. HAVE 1985. IG II 2 .2344 and the Size of Phratries in Classical Athens. Classical Quarterly 35 (1): 232-235. Fortunatov, F. 1900. Die indogermanischen Liquiden im Altindischen. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 36: 1-37. [P. 37: on the zero-grade of Gk wife.] HAVE Fox, Robin. 1987-1988. The Virgin and the Godfather: Kinship Law versus State Law in Greek Tragedy and After. Journal of the Steward Anthropological Society 17 (1-2): 141-192. Reprinted in: Reproduction and Succession: Studies in Anthropology, Law, and Society, by Robin Fox. Pp. 141-190. New Brunswick and London: Transaction Publishers, 1993. Gates, Henry P. 1971a. Kinship Terminology in Homeric Greek. Ph.D. dissertation. Princeton University. Gates, Henry P. HAVE 1971b. The Kinship Terminology of Homeric Greek. Baltimore: Published at the Waverly Press by Indiana University, Bloomington. (Indiana University Publications in Anthropology and Linguistics, Memoir 27). 82 P. Reviews: Ciantelli 1972; Heubeck 1975. Gernet, Louis. 1937. Notes de lexicologie juridique. 2. . In Mlanges mile Boisacq. T. 1. Pp. 393396. Bruxelles: Universit Libre de Bruxelles. [A Greek (Homeric) word for wife.] Gernet, Louis. 1954. Mariages de tyrans. In Anthropologie de la Grce Antique. Pp. 344-359. Paris: Maspero. [An application of Lvi-Strausss theory of marriage to ancient Greece.] Gernet, Louis. 1983. Forme et struttura della parentela nella Grecia antica. Annali dellIstituto Orientale di Napoli (Archeologia) 5: 109-210. Glotz, Gustave. HAVE 1904. La Solidarit de la Famille dans le Droit Criminel en Grce. Paris: A. Fontemoing. Reprint: New York, Arno Press, 1973. Golden, Mark. 1985a. Donatus and Athenian Phratries. Classical Quarterly 35 (1): 9-13. HAVE

Golden, Mark. 1985b. PAIS, child and slave. Antiquit Classique 44: 91-104. Gonda, Jan. 1962. Gk. ADELPHOS. Mnemosyne 15: 390-392. [Greek term for brother.]

HAVE

Groelj, Milan. HAVE 1956. Notes dtymologie grecque. 31. . Razprave. Dissertationes. Slovenska Akademija Znanosti in Umetnosti 2: 42. Ljubljana. [A term for grandfather, progenitor.] Harrison, A. R. W. 1968. The Law of Athens. Vol. 1. The Family and Property. Oxford: Clarendon Press. Review: Ste. Croix 1970. Harland, Philip A. HAVE 2005. Familial Dimensions of Group Identity: Brothers () in Associations of the Greek East. Journal of Biblical Literature 124: 491-513. Harris, Edward M. 1996. A Note on Adoption and Deme Registration. Tyche 11: 123-127. Reprinted in: Democracy and the Rule of Law in Classical Athens: Essays on Law, Society, and Politics, by Edward M. Harris. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 2010. Harrison, A. R. W. 1968. The Law of Athens. Vol. 1. The Family and Property. New York: Oxford University Press. Review: Oates 1971. Hirvonen, Kaarle. 1968. Matriarchal Survivals and Certain Trends in Homers Female Characters. Suomalainen Tiedeakatemia. Review: Hainsworth 1970. Hejnic, Josef. 1955. U. Pispevek k eseni problemu organizace nejstarsi ecke spolecnosti. Listy Filologick 3/78 (2): 162-170. [summaries in Russian and English, p. 170.] Hicks, E. L. 1890. Ceramus (Keramos) and Its Inscriptions. Journal of Hellenic Studies 11: 109-128. [Pp. 124-125: Gk kmbos interpreted as gambroon.] Huld, Martin E. 1988. Homeric H
P. American Journal of Philology 109 (3): 424-430. HAVE

Humphreys, Sally C. 1986. Kinship Patterns in the Athenian Courts. Greek, Roman and Byzantine Studies 27: 57-91. Humphreys, Sally C. 1994. Le mariage entre parents dans lAthnes classique. In pouser au Plus Proche: Inceste, Prohibitions et Stratgies Matrimoniales autour de la Mditerranne, edited by Pierre Bonte. Pp. 31-58. Paris: ditions de lcole des Hautes tudes en Sciences Sociales. Humphreys, Sally C. 2004. Anthropology and the Greeks. London: Routledge. [Pp. 193-208 : Kinship in Greek Society, c. 800-300 BC.] Hunter, Virginia J. 1993. Agnatic Kinship in Athenian Law and Athenian Family Practice: Its Implications for Women. In Law, Politics and Society in the Ancient Mediterranean World, edited by B. Halpern and D. W. Hobson. Pp. 100-121. Sheffield: Sheffield Academic. Johnson, Patricia J. 1997. Womans Third Face: A Psychosocial Reconsideration of Sophocles Antigone. Arethusa 30: 369-398. Isager, Signe. 1981-1982. The Marriage Pattern in Classical Athens: Men and Women in Isaiois. Classica et Mediaevalia 33: 81-96. Juret, A. 1938. La dclinaison de chez Homre. In Mlanges mile Boisacq. T. 2. Pp. 11-14. Bruxelles: Universit Libre de Bruxelles. [Greek word for son. Includes etymological observations.] Kernyi, Carl. 1972. Zeus und Hera: Urbild des Vaters, des Gatten und der Frau. Leiden: Brill. Translated into English as Zeus and Hera: Archetypal Image of Father, Husband and Wife. London: Routledge & Kegan Paul, 1976. Review: Adkins 1978. Kretschmer, Paul. 1888. Ueber den dialekt der attischen Vaseninschriften. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 29: 381-483. [Pp. 470-471: on the inscription HYIHS son.] HAVE Kretschmer, Paul. 1896. Enleitung in die Geschichte der Griechischen Sprache. Gttingen: Vandenhoeck & Ruprecht. [Pp. 334-357: baby words, including kin terms.] Kretschmer, Paul. 1910. Die griechische Benennung des Bruders. Glotta 2: 201-213. HAVE

Kretschmer, Paul. 1912. Griechisches. 5. Zu den lakonischen Knabenagoninschriften. Glotta 3: 269-272. [Pp. 270-272: on the form kasen as possibly related to kasis, kasioi.]

Kunstler, Barton. 1987. Family Dynamics and Female Power in Ancient Sparta. In Rescuing Creusa: New Methodological Approaches to Women in Antiquity, edited by Marilyn Skinner. Lubbock, TX: Texas University Press. Lacey, Walter K. 1968. The Family in Classical Greece: Aspects of Greek and Roamn Life. Ithaca: Cornell University Press. Review: Harrison 1969. Lambert, S. D. 1993. The Phratries of Attica. Ann Arbor: University of Michigan Press. Reviews: Develin 1995; Osborne 1995. Lambert, S. D. 1999. The Attic Genos. Classical Quarterly 49 (2): 484-489. HAVE

Lagerlotz, Gustav. HAVE 1858. 2. K und Sippe. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 7: 237-240. Leduc, C. 1998. Ladoption dans la cit des Athniens, VIe sicle-IVe sicle av. J.-C. Pallas 48: 175-202. Leduc, C. 2003. Ego et ses trois surs (germaine, utrine, consanguine). In Athnes et Sparte VIe 8.-IVe 8 av. J.-C. Histoire, Espaces et Marges de lAntiquit. I. Hommages Monique Clavel-Lvque. Pp. 249-291. Besanon: Presses Universitaires Franc-Comtoises. Lejeune, Michel. HAVE 1960. Hittite KATI, grec KASI. Bulletin de la Socit de Linguistique de Paris 55 (1): 20-26. [An etymology of Greek kasignetos.] Lepri, Luisa. 1959. Sui Rapporti di Parentela in Diritto Attico. Saggi Terminologici. Milano: A. Giuffr. 103 P. Lindsay, H. 1998a. Adoption in Greek Law and Society: Some Comparison with the Roman World. Newcastle Law Review 3 (2): 91-110. Littmann, Robert J. 1979. Kinship in Athens. Ancient Society 10: 5-31. Littman, Robert J. 1990. Kinship and Politics in Athens, 600-400 B.C. New York: P. Lang. Review: Tuplin 1992.

Locker, Ernst. 1933. Die Bildung der griechischen Kurz- und Ksenamen. Glotta 21: 136-152. [P. 151: on kin terms and baby-words.] Longo, Oddone. 1991. Classificatorio e descrittivo nella terminologia pindarica della parentela. In Koinon Aima: Antropologia e Lessico della Parentela Greca, edited by Elisa Avezz and Oddone Longo. Pp. 109-126. Bari: Adriatica. Louw, Johannes P., and Eugene A. Nida. (eds.) 1988. Greek-English Lexicon of the New Testament Based on Semantic Domains. Vol. 1. Introduction and Domains. New York: United Bible Societies. [Pp. 111-120: Kinship Terms.] Lyons, Deborah. 2003. Dangerous Gifts: Ideologies of Marriage and Exchange in Ancient Greece. Classical Antiquity 22 (1): 93-134. McLennan, John F. 1866. Kinship in Ancient Greece. Fortnightly Review 4: 569-588, 682-691. Meister, Richard. HAVE 1892. , , , . Beitrge zur Kunde der Indogermanischen Sprachen 18: 324-327. [On the Greek word for sisters husbands and its Germanic parallels.] Meringer, R. 1904. Wrter und Sachen. Indogermanische Forschungen 16: 101-196. [P. 171: on Gk wife and IE terms for sister.] HAVE Meyer, Gustav. 1874a. Die dvandva-Zusammensetzung im griechischen und lateinischen. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 22: 1-31. [P. 23: on pappo-patrs.] HAVE Meyer, Gustav. 1874b. Die Nominalsuffix -io im griechischen. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 22: 481-501. [P. 495: on patrios and matrios.] Miller, Molly. 1953. Greek Kinship Terminology. Journal of Hellenic Studies 73: 46-52. Modrzejewski, J. 1981. La structure juridique du marriage grec. In Scritti in Onore di Orsolina Montevecchi. Pp. 231-268. Bologne: CLUEB. Moore, Jeanie G. 2003. Riddled Romance: Kingship and Kinship in Pericles. Rocky Mountain Review of Language and Literature 57 (10: 33-48. Morani, Moreno. 1995. Brother, Home, Village. On the Etymology of frater in Greek. Aevum 69 (1): 3-6.

HAVE HAVE

Moretti, Luigi. 1958. Review of Theodor Wiegand. Didyma. T. 2: Die Inschriften von Albert Rehm. Rivista di Filologia 36: 199-206. [P. 205: on epigraphic Gk kombion grandson.] Morris, Ian. 1990. The Gortyn Code and Greek Kinship. Greek, Roman and Byzantine Studies 31: 233-254. Moss, Claude. 1990. Stratgies matrimoniales et fonctionnement de la vie politique Athnes (Ve-IVe sicles). In Parent et Stratgies Familiales dans lAntiquit Romaine, edited by Jean Andreau and Hinnerk Bruhns. Pp. 545-554. Roma: Ecole Franaise de Rome. Norea, Carlos E. HAVE 1998. Divorce in Classical Athenian Society: Law, Practice and Power. Past Imperfect 7: 3-34. OCallaghan, Jos. 1971. El vocativo singular de en el griego biblico. Biblica 52: 217-225. ORoark, D. 1999. Parenthood in Late Antiquity: The Evidence of Chrysostom. Greek, Roman and Byzantine Studies 40: 53-81. Patlagean, Evelyne. 1966. Une representation byzantine de la parent et ses origins occidentales. LHomme 6 (4): 59-81. Patterson, Cynthia. 1998. The Family in Greek History. Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press. Patterson, Lee E. 2003. The Use of Kinship Myth in Greek Interstate Relations. Ph.D. dissertation. University of Missouri Columbia. 300 P. Perdicoyianni-Palologou, Hlne. HAVE 2002. The Vocabulary of Kinship in Euripides. Rivista di Cultura Classica e Medioevale 44 (2): 253-268. Roma. Perentidis, Stavros. 2006. Sur la polyandrie, la parent et la dfinition du mariage Sparte. In Parent et Societ dans le Monde Grec de lAntiquit lge Moderne. Colloque International (Volos 19-20-21 juin 2003), dit par Alain Bresson, Marie-Paule Masson, Stavros Perentidis et Jrme Wilgaux. Pp. 131-152. Bordeaux: Ausonius; Paris: Boccard. Peretti, Aurelio. 1956. La teoria della generazione patrilinea in Eschilo. Parola del Pasato 49: 241-262. Piasere, Leonardo. HAVE 2008. La terminologia di parentela a degli uomini giusti. I Quaderni del Ramo dOro 1: 13-23. Pirart, M.

1983. Phratries et kmai dArgos. Bulletin de Correspondance Hellnique 107: 269275. Pisani, Vittore. 1961. Hom. kasgntos, kypr. kas, und Verwandtes. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 77: 246-251. Pitsakis, Constantin G. 1992. Le droit matrimonial dans les canons du concile in Trullo. Annuarium Historiae Conciliorum 24: 158-185. Pomeroy, Sarah B. 1996. Families in Classical and Hellenistic Greece: Representations and Realities. New York: Clarendon Press. Review: Golden 1999. Ridgeway, William. 1931. The Early Age of Greece. Vol. 1-2. Edited by A. S. F. Gow and D. S. Robertson. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. [Vol. 2, pp. 1-354: Kinship and Marriage.] Robert, Jeanne, and Louis Robert. 1948. Inscriptions grecques de Lydie. VII. Inscriptions de Julia Gordos et du Nord-Est de la Lydie. Hellenica 6: 89-104. [Pp. 96-98: the identification of kmbos, kombion as grandson.] HAVE Robert, Jeanne, and Louis Robert. 1960. Cyrnaque. Bulletin pigraphique, no. 437: 207. [Attestation of amnammos grandson.] Robert, Louis. 1959. Review of Didyma. 2. Teil. Die Inschriften, von Theodor Wiegand. Berlin, 1958. Gnomon 31: 657-674. [P. 667: Gk , grandson.] HAVE Robert, Louis. 1963. Noms Indignes dans lAsie-Mineure Grco-Romaine. Pt. 1. Paris: A. Maisonneuve. [Pp. 326-329: on epigraphic Gk kambion, kambos grandson.]

HAVE

Robert, Louis. 1965. DAphrodsias a la Lycaonie. Hellenica 13: 1-331. [Pp. 32-35, 322-323, 255: kin terms.] Rose, H. J., and Andrew Lang 1911. Mother-Right in Early Greece. Folklore 22 (4): 493-494. Rouse, W. H. D. HAVE 1899. Etymology of . Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 35: 462. [Against Zimmermanns (1897) connection with IE *atta father.] Roussel, D. 1976. Tribu et Cit: tudes sur les Groupes Sociaux dans les Cits Grecques aux poques Archaque et Classique. Paris: Les Belles Lettres. Review: Fisher 1981.

Rubinstein, Lene. 1993. Adoption in Fourth Century Athens. Copenhagen: University of Copenhagen, Museum Tusculanum Press. Rudhardt, Jean. 1990. De la maternit chez les desses grecques. Revue dHistoire des Religions 207: 967-988. Ruijgh, C. J. HAVE 1992. Chronologie relative: Le grec. Sur les traitments prhistoriques des sonantes In Rekonstruktion und Relative Chronologie: Akten der VIII. Fachtagung der Indogermanischen Gesellschaft, Leiden, 31. August 4. September 1987, herausgegeben von Robert Beekes, Alexander Lubotsky und Jos Weitenberg. Ss. 75-100. Innsbruck: Institut fr Sprachwissenschaft der Universitt Innsbruck. [P. 79: Gk uis son as *swiws, by Edgerton-Schindlers law.] Saussure, Ferdinand de. 1879. Mmoire sur le Systme Primitif des Voyelles dans les Langues Indo-Europennes. Leipzig. Reprinted by Hildesheim: Georg Olms, 1968. [Pp. 218-219, n. 2: on Gk (Hes.) eores, eor, euresbhi from *swesr as well as negatively on oar < *swesr.]; Recueil des Publications Scientifiques de Ferdinand de Saussure. Pp. 1-268. Genve : Socit Anonyme des ditions Sonor, 1922. [P. 204-205. n. 2: same.] HAVE Schmeja, Hans. 1963. Die Verwandtschaftsnamen auf -s und die Nomina auf -ns, -n im Griechischen. Indogermanische Forschungen 68: 22-41. Schweizer-Sidler, H. 1863. Review of Grundzge der Griechischen Etymologie, von G. Curtius. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 12 (Anzeigen): 299-313. [Pp. 306-307: etymologies of thugater daughter and gambros son-in-law.] Seebohm, Hugh E. HAVE 1895. On the Structure of Greek Tribal Society. London: Macmillan. [Degrees of kinship, marriage, adoption, avunculate, succession.] Sissa, Giulia. 1986. La famile dans la cit grecque (Ve-IVe sicle av. J.-C.). In Histoire de la Famille. I. Mondes Lointains, Mondes Anciens. Pp. 163-194. Paris: Armand Colin. Sissa, Giulia. 1990. Epigamia: Se marier entre proches Athnes. In Parent et Stratgies Familiales dans lAntiquit Romaine, edited by Jean Andreau and Hinnerk Bruhns. Pp. 199-223. Roma: Ecole Franaise de Rome. Sissa, Giulia. 1994. Mariages de raison en Grce ancienne. In pouser au Plus Proche: Inceste, Prohibitions et Stratgies Matrimoniales autour de la Mditerranne, edited by Pierre Bonte. Pp. 419-438. Paris: ditions de lcole des Hautes tudes en Sciences Sociales. Slater, P.

1968. The Glory of Hera: Greek Mythology and the Greek Family. Boston: Beacon. Stanton, G. R. 1988. T, and Related Words in Koine Greek. In Proceedings of the 18th International Congress of Papyrology, Athens, Greece, 25-31 May 1986. Pp. 463-480. Athens: Greek Papyrological Society. Stokes, Whitley. 1884. tymologies grecques. Mmoires de la Socit de Linguistique de Paris 5: 419421. [P. 419: etymology of Gk affine.] Szemernyi, Oswald. 1971. Review of Dictionnaire tymologique de la Langue Grecque Histoire des Mots, by Pierre Chantraine. Gnomon 43 (7): 641-675. [Pp. 665, 666: notes on some kin terms.] HAVE Szemernyi, Oswald. 1974. The Origins of the Greek Lexicon: Ex Oriente Lux. Journal of Hellenic Studies 94: 144-157. [P. 145: on as containing the word for son.] HAVE Szemernyi, Oswald. 1977. Das griechische Verwandtschaftsnamensystem vor dem Hintergrund des indogermanischen Systems. Hermes 105 (4): 385-405. Thiel, J. H. 1931. Zum vorgriechischen Mutterrecht. Klio 24: 383-385. Tenuta, Elisa A. 1991. Koinon Aima: Antropologia e Lessico della Parentela Greca. Bari: Adriatica. Thomas, Carol C. 1973. Matriarchy in Early Greece: The Bronze and Dark Ages. Arethusa 6: 173-197. Thompson, E. S. 1889. The Joint Undivided Family in Athens. Classical Review 3 (8): 371. Thompson, Wesley E. 1967. The Marriage of First Cousins in Athenian Society. Phoenix 21: 273-282. Thompson, Wesley E. 1970. Some Attic Kinship Terms. Glotta 48: 75-81. Thompson, Wesley E. 1971. Attic Kinship Terminology. Journal of Hellenic Studies 91: 110-113. HAVE HAVE HAVE

Thompson, Wesley E. 1972. Athenian Marriage Pattern: Remarriage. California Studies in Classical Antiquity 5: 211-225. Thomson, George. 1941. Aeschylus and Athens: A Study in the Social Origins of Drama. London: Lawrence & Wishart. [Pp. 23-36: classificatory kinship system.] Thomson, George.

1949. Studies in Ancient Greek Society: The Prehistoric Aegean. London: Lawrence & Wishart. [Pp. 33-57: Totemism; 58-87: The Nomenclature of Kinship; 149-296: Matriarchy.] Review: Gornung 1950. Turner, Terence. 1969. Oedipus: Time and Structure in Narrative Form. In Forms of Symbolic Action: Proceedings of the 1869 Annual Spring Meeting of the American Ethnological Society, edited by Robert F. Spencer. Pp. 26-68. Seattle and London: American Ethnological Society. [On kinship and myth, with a critique of Lvi-Strauss.] Turner, Terence. 1989. Agnostic Exchange: Homeric Reciprocity and the Heritage of Simmel and Mauss: A Commentary. Cultural Anthropology 4 (3): 260-264. See also Beidelman 1989. Van Windekens, Albert J. 1966. , nom grec dune desse genne. Die Sprache 12 (1): 94-97. HAVE

Van Windekens, Albert J. HAVE 1984. Note sur le nom de la divinit chtonienne grecque . Anthropos 79: 239-240. [Possible relative of the Greek word for husbands brother.] Vartigian, Harry. 1978. Attic Greek Kinship Terminology. Ph.D. dissertation. University of Iowa. HAVE

Vrihac, Anne-Marie, and Claude Vial. 1998. Le Marriage Grec du VIe Sicle lpoque dAuguste. Athnes: cole Franaise dAthnes. Vernant, Jean-Pierre. 1974. Mythe et Socit en Grce. Paris: Librairie Franois Maspro. Wackernagel, Jacob. 1895. Miscellen zur griechischen Grammatik. 23. Das Reflexivum. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 38: 2-21. [P. 3-17: on kasigntos.] HAVE Weise, Elizabeth A. 1965. Terms of Address in the Iliad: An Interpretative Study of Their Relevance to Their Contexts. Ph.D. dissertation. Columbia University. Wentzel, Astrid. 1930. Studien ber die Adoption Griechenland. Hermes 65: 167-176. Whitehead, David. 1986. The Demes of Attica, 508/7-ca. 250 B.C.: A Political and Social Study. Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press. Reviews: Ostwald 1987; Shipley 1987; Ober 1988.

Wilgaux, Jrme. HAVE 2000a. Entre inceste et change. Rflexions sur le modle matrimonial athnien. LHomme 154-155: 659-676. (Special issue: Question de Parent.) Wilgaux, Jrme. 2000b. Le Mariage dans un Degr Rapproch: Anthropologie Historique du Mariage Athnien des Demi-Germains lpoque Classique. Ph.D. dissertation. Universit de Bordeaux 3. Will, . 1995. Syngeneia, oikeiots, philia. Revue de Philologie, de Littrature et dHistoire Anciennes 69 (2): 299-325. Willetts, R. F. 1972. A Note on Plato Lg. 773b. Journal of Hellenic Studies 92: 184-185. Wolff, Hans J. 1944. Marriage Law and Family Organization in Ancient Athens. Traditio 2: 43-95. Zimmermann, August. HAVE 1897. Etymologien. 2. , , . Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 34: 584-585. [Connection with IE *atta father.] MEDIEVAL Pitsakis, Constantin G. 1998. Ladoption dans le droit byzantine. Mdivales 35: 19-32. Pitsakis, Constantin G. 2000. Lgislation et stratgies matrimoniales. Parent et empchements de mariage dans le droit byzantin. LHomme 154-155: 677-696. (Special issue: Question de Parent.) Rapp, Claudia. 1990. Ritual Brotherhood in Byzantium. Traditio 52: 285-326. Schminck, Andreas. 1976. Der Traktat Peri Gamon des Johannes Pediasimos. Fontes Minores I: 126-174. Frankfurt-am-Main. [On marriage prohibitions, including prohibitions on marriages between in-laws.] Schminck, Andreas. 1979. Vier eherechtliche Entscheidungen aus dem 11. Jahrhundert. Fontes Minores III: 221-279. Frankfurt-am-Main. Schminck, Andreas. 1991. Zur Entwicklung des Eherechts in der Komnenenepoche. In To Vyzntio kat ton 12o aina. Byzantium in the 12th Century: Canon Law, State and Society, edited by Nicolas Oikonomides. Pp. 555-587. Athens: Society of Byzantine and Post-Byzantine Studies. MODERN COLLECTIONS of ESSAYS Loizos, Peter, and Evthymios Papataxiarchis. (eds.)

1991. Contested Identities: Gender and Kinship in Modern Greece. Princeton, N.J. : Princeton University Press. Reviews: Sutton 1992; Seremetakis 1993; Couroucli 1994. GENERAL Andromedas, John. HAVE 1957. Greek Kinship Terms in Everyday Use. American Anthropologist 59 (6): 10861088. Argenti, Philip P., and H. J. Rose. 1949. The Folklore of Chios. Vol. 1-2. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. [Vol. 1, pp. 258-350: Birth, Marriage, Death, with interesting notes on ritual kinship and naming after relatives.] HAVE Aschenbrenner, Stanley E. HAVE 1975. Folk Model vs. Actual Practice: Distribution of Spiritual Kin in a Greek Village. Anthropological Quarterly 48 (2): 65-86. Danforth, Loring M. 1982. The Death Rituals of Rural Greece. Princeton: Princeton University Press. [Includes naming after grandparents and kin relations apropos death.] Daskalopoulos Capetanakis, Sophie. 1979. Parent et Organisation Sociale Elymbos de Karpathos. Ph.D. dissertation. cole des Hautes tudes en Sciences Sociales. 247 P. Du Boulay, Juliet. 1984. The Blood: Symbolic Relationships between Descent, Marriage, Incest Prohibitions and Spiritual Kinship in Greece. Man 19: 533-556. Friedl, Ernestine. HAVE 1959. The Role of Kinship in the Transmission of National Culture to Rural Villages in Mainland Greece. American Anthropologist 61 (1): 30-38. Friedl, Ernestine. 1976. Kinship, Class and Selective Migration. In Mediterranean Family Structures, edited by J. G. Peristiany. Pp. 363-388. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Grigoriou, Panagiotis. 2000. Parents et affins de combat. Reflexions sur les correspondants de guerre 19181923. LHomme 154-155: 481-488. (Special issue: Question de Parent.) Xanthakou, Margarita. 1993. Faute dpouses on Mange des Surs. Ralits du Clibat et Fantasmatique de lInceste dans le Magne (Grce). Paris: Editions de lcole des Hautes tudes en Sciences Sociales. Review: Zonabend 1997. Herzfeld, Michael. HAVE 1980. Social Tension and Inheritance by Lot in Three Greek Villages. Anthropological Quarterly 53 (2): 91-100.

Herzfeld, Michael. HAVE 1983. Interpreting Kinship Terminology: The Problem of Patriliny in Rural Greece Anthropological Quarterly 56 (4): 157-166. Herzfeld, Michael. 1985. The Poetics of Manhood: Contest and Identity in a Cretan Mountain Village. Princeton: Princeton University Press. [Kinship, patriliny, some deviations in kin term use from Standard Greek, e.g. kouniadhos brother-in-law, cross-cousin.] Reviews: Boulay 1986; Gilsenan 1987; Weiss 1987. Just, Richard. 2000. A Greek Island Cosmos: Kinship and Community in Meganisi. Oxford: Oxford University Press. Review: LaTosky 2000. Karachristos, Ioannis. 2004. Kin Terminology and the Study of Kinship: A Case Study on the Greek Island of Syros (17501820). History of the Family 9 (3): 299-315. Loewe, Richard. 1906. Altgermanische Elemente der Balkansprachen. I. Griechisch. A Vermittlung durch das Latein. 5. Mgr. brtis. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 39: 276-280. Papataxiarchis, A. 1988. Kinship, Friendship and Gender Relations in Two East Aegean Village Communities (Lesbos, Greece). Ph.D dissertation. London School of Economics. Papataxiarchis, A. 1991a. Male Mobility and Matrifocality in the Aegean Basin. In Les Amis et les Autres : Mlanges en lHonneur de J. Peristiany, dit par Stthis Damiankos. Pp. 219-239. Athnes: EKKE. Papataxiarchis, A. 1993. La valeur du mnage: Classes sociales, stratgies matrimoniales et lois ecclsiastiques Lesbos au XIXe sicle. In Espaces et Familles dans lEurope du Sud lge Modern: Adaptations et Resistances, dit par Stuart J. Woolf. Pp. 109-142. Paris: Editions de la Maison des Sciences de lHomme. Perentidis, Stavros. 2002. Pratiques de Mariage et Nuances de Continuit dans le Monde Grec: Quatre tudes dAnthropologie Historique et Juridique. Montpellier: Presses Universitaires de la Mditerrane. Saulnier, Franoise. 1980. Anoya, un Village de Montagne Cretois. Pans: P. H. Stahl. Tavuschis, Nicholas. 1971. Naming Patterns and Kinship among Greeks. Ethnos 1-4: 152-162. Toundassaki, Irene.

1995. Parent, Mariage et Succession dans le Village de Vourkoti. Ph.D. dissertation. Paris: cole des Hautes tudes en Sciences Sociales. Vernier, Bernard. 1984. Putting Kin and Kinship to Good Use: The Circulation of Goods, Labour, and Names on Karpathos (Greece). In Interest and Emotion: Essays on the Study of Family and Kinship, edited by Hans Medick and David W. Sabean. Pp. 28-76. Cambridge and New York: Cambridge University Press; Paris: ditions de la Maison des Sciences de lHomme. Vernier, Bernard. 1987. Filiation, transmission des biens, rgles de rsidence et pouvoir domestique dans les les de la mer ge. In Femmes et Patrimoine dans les Socits Rurales de lEurope Mditerranenne, dit par Georges Ravis-Giordani. Pp. 365-400. Paris: Centre National de la Recherche Scientifique. Vernier, Bernard. 1991. La Gense Sociale des Sentiments. Ans et Cadets dans lle Grecque de Karpathos. Paris: Editions de lEcole des Hautes tudes en Sciences Sociales. 312 P. Review: Godelier 1994. Vernier, Bernard. 2001. Le systme de parent sifniote dans le groupe de transformation gen. In (1 : 25 - 28 1998 : ). Proceedings of the 1st International Sifnean Symposium (25-28 June 1998). Vol. 2. Pp. 349-360. Athnes: Athna Hetaireia Sifnaikn Meletn. Xanthakou, Margarita. 1985. Le voyage du frre mort ou le mariage qui tue. tudes Rurales 97-98: 153-189. Xanthakou, Margarita. 1993. Faute dpouses on Mange des Surs. Ralits du Clibat et Fantasmatique de lInceste dans le Magne (Grce). Paris: cole des Hautes tudes en Sciences Sociales. Xanthakou, Margarita. 1999. Des incestes en Grce: Cas despce ou faits polmiques. LHomme 149: 135-144. Zatz, E. F. 1983. Kinship, Property and Interpersonal Relations in an Urban Milieu: the Case of Exarchia, Athens. Ph.D. dissertation. London Scool of Economics. SARAKATSANI (KARAKACHAN) Bonina, Zhenia. HAVE 1981. Svremennoto karakachansko semejstvo. Blgarska etnografia 3-4: 39-49. [Contemporary Karakachan family. P. 49: Summary in English.] Campbell, J. K. 1963. The Kindred in a Greek Mountain Community. In Mediterranean Countrymen, edited by J. Pitt-Rivers. Pp. 73-96. Paris: Mouton. Campbell, J. K.

1964. Honour, Family, and Patronage: A Study of Institutions and Moral Values in a Greek Mountain Community. Oxford: Clarendon Press. Reviews: Arnott 1965; Hatch 1965; Mouzelis 1965; Pitt-Rivers 1965. Campbell, J. K. 1970. The Kindred in a Greek Mountain Community. In Mediterramean Countrymen: Essays in the Social Anthropology of the Mediterranean, edited by Julian A. Pitt-Rivers. Pp. 73-96. Paris: Mouton. Reprinted in: Readings in Kinship in Urban Society, edited by C. C. Harris. Pp. 39-70. Oxford, etc.: Pergamon Press. Kavadias, Georges. 1965. Pasteurs-Nomades Mediterranens: Les Saracatsans de Grce. Paris: GauthierVillars. Reviews: Ettlinger 1966; Pchoux 1968. Layton, Robert. 1997. An Introduction to Theory in Anthropology. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. [Cross-listed in TEXTBOOKS. Pp. 40-45: Sarakatsani kinship.] ILLYRIAN Katii, Radoslav. 1976. Ancient Languages of the Balkans. The Hague and Paris: Mouton. [Pp. 150, 171: attested kin terms.] HAVE Krahe, Otto. HAVE 1937. Die Illyrier in ihrer sprachliechen Beziehungen zu Italikern und Griechen. Welt als Geschichte 3: 284-299. [Pp. 294: on Hes. bra brother; 295-296: on Deipaturos.] Krahe, Hans. 1955. Die Sprache der Illyrier. T. 1. Die Quellen. Wiesbaden: Otto Harrassowitz. [Pp. 44, 54: attested kin terms.] HAVE INDO-ARYAN GENERAL Bartholomae, Christian. 1896. Beitrge zur altindischen Grammatik. Aus Anlass von J. Wackernagels Aind. Grammatik. I. Lautlehre. Zeitschrift der Deutschen Morgenlndischen Gesellschaft 50: 674-735. [P. 693: contracted terms for daughter in Pali and Prakrit and their relation to full forms in Sanskrit.] HAVE Bartholomae, Christian. 1897. Die neunte Prsensklasse der Inder. Indogermanische Forschungen 7: 50-81. {Pp. 51-55: on Indo-Aryan terms for daughter.] HAVE Fritz, Matthias. 2000. Die indoiranische Bezeichnungen fr heiraten. Rekonstruktion auf der Basis indirekter Evidenz. In Indoarisch, Iranisch und die Indogermanistik. Arbeitstagung der

Indogermanischen Gesellschaft vom 2. bis 5. Oktober 1997 in Erlangen, herausgegeben von Bernhard Forssman und Robert Plath. Ss. 111-118. Wiesbaden: Reichert. Kobayashi, Masato. 2004. Historical Phonology of Old Indo-Aryan Consonants. Tokyo: Research Institute for Languages and Cultures of Asia and Africa. [Pp. 130-132: on Indo-Aryan terms for daughter in the context of laryngeal theory and Vedic metre.] Kuiper, F. B. J. 1942. Notes on Vedic Noun Inflexion. Mededeelingen der Koninklijke Nederlandsche Akademie van Wetenschappen, Afd. Letterkunde 5 (4): 1-96. [Pp. 20-24: on terms for father and daughter in a laryngeal perspective; also sporadically on various kin terms in the context of different IE declensions.] HAVE Kuiper, F. B. J. 1947. Traces of Laryngeals in Vedic Sanskrit. In India Antiqua: A Volume of Oriental Studies Presented by His Freinds and Pupils to Jean Philippe Vogel. Pp. 198-212. Leiden: Brill. [On terms for father and daughter.] HAVE Kuiper, F. B. J. 1976. Old East Iranian Dialects. Indo-Iranian Journal 18 (3-4): 241-253. [Pp. 242-244: on the term for daughter in Sanskrit, Avestan and East Iranian dialects.] HAVE Madan, Triloki N. 1973. Marriage and Kinship in India: Two Recent Studies. Contributions to Indian Sociology 7: 135. [Introduction to two reviews by Das, Hypergamy, and by Madan, Kinship and Urbanization.] Polom, Edgar. HAVE 1972. Reflexes of Laryngeals in Indo-Iranian with Special Reference to the Problem of the Voiceless Aspirates. In Saga og Sprk: Studies in Language and Literature, edited by John M. Weinstock. Pp. 233-251. Austin, TX: Pemberton Press. [P. 235: on the terms for daughter.] Pramanick, Swapan K. 1982. Kinship Terminology in Hindu Society: An Analysis of G. S. Ghuryes Theory. Annual Journal of the Department of Sociology of Calcutta University 1:18-27. Saksema, Baburam. 1926. The Names of Relatives in Modern Indo-Aryan Languages. Proceedings and Transactions of the All-India Oriental Conference 4 (2): 475-514. Schulze, Wilhelm. 1916. Alt- und Neuindisches. Sitzungsberichte der Preussischen Akademie der Wissenschaften 1 (January-June): 2-16. [Modern Indo-Aryan kin terms.] Reprinted in: Kleine Schriften, von Wilhelm Schulze. Pp. 224-238. Gttingen: Vandenhoeck & Ruprecht, 1966. Tedesco, P. 1947. Sanskrit adah illud. Language 23 (2): 118-124. [Pp. 122-124: Pali dhita daughter, vowel assimilation and the transposition of h.] HAVE

HAVE HAVE

Trost, Paul. 1938. Ai. aw. str Weib. Indogermanische Forschungen 56: 197-198.

HAVE

Turner, R. L. HAVE 1924. Indo-Aryan Etymological Notes. 2. Pali ghara. Bulletin of the School of Oriental Studies, University of London 3 (2): 401-404. [P. 402: Pali dhita daughter in the IndoAryan and Indo-European contexts.] Wackernagel, Jakob. 1896. Altindische Grammatik. I. Lautlehre. Gttingen: Vandenhoeck & Ruprecht. [Pp. 115, 118, 163: contracted terms for daughter in Pali and Prakrit and their relation to full forms in Sanskrit.] Wijeratne, P. B. F. HAVE 1945. Phonology of the Sinhalese Inscriptions Up to the End of the Tenth Century A. D. Bulletin of the School of Oriental and African Studies, University of London 11 (3): 580594. [P. 589: a Sinhalese inscription from II century B.C. showing the form jhita daughter.] Wijeratne, P. B. F. HAVE 1952. Phonology of the Sinhalese Inscriptions. (Continued.) Bulletin of the School of Oriental and African Studies, University of London 14 (2): 263-298. [P. 274: anomalies in the forms for daughter in Indian languages.] ANCIENT Bernhft, Franz. 1886. Altindische Familienorganisation. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Rechtswissenschaft 9: 1-45. Bhargava, Mira, and Joachim Lambek. 1992. A Production Grammar for Sanskrit Kinship Terminology. Theoretical Linguistics 18 (1): 45-60. Burrow, Thomas. 1949. Schwa in Sanskrit. Transactions of the Philological Society (1949): 22-61. [Pp. 38-39, 50-51: suffixes in pitr and duhitr.] HAVE Burrow, Thomas. HAVE 1952. Some Remarks on the Formation of Nouns in Sanskrit. Annals of the Bhandarkar Oriental Research Institute 32: 19-33. [P. The morphology of the Indic word for sisterin the light of Hittite evidence.] Burrow, Thomas. 1955. The Sanskrit Language. London: Faber & Faber. [Pp. 88: Skrt duhit daughter and the suffix -itar; 140-141, 243-244: aspects of kin terms, r-stems.] HAVE Burrow, T. 1979. The Problem of Shwa in Sanskrit. Oxford: Clarendon Press. [Terms for father and daughter as central examples.] Review: Lubotsky 1981. Debrunner, A.

1936. Die Herkunft des ai. Typus paitrya-. Indogermanische Forschungen 54: 206-209. [Concerning the Indic term for fathers brother.] Eichner-Khn, Ingrid. HAVE 1976. Vier altindische Wrter. 3. Ai. yt; 4. Ai. giri-, griech. . Mnchener Studien zur Sprachwissenschaft 34: 25-37. [Skrt terms for husbands brothers wife and husbands sister.] Elbourne, Paul. 1999. Plain Voiceless Stop Plus Laryngeal in Indo-European. Historische Sprachforschung 112 (2): 2-28. [Pp. 4-5: Skrt pita and duhita in the light of the laryngeal theory; critique of Schmidt 1973.] Emeneau, Murray B. HAVE 1939. Was There Cross-Cousin Marriage among the kyas. Journal of the American Oriental Society 59: 220-226. Emeneau, Murray B., and B. A. van Nooten. HAVE 1991. The Young Wife and Her Husbands Brother: Rgveda 10.40.2 and 10.85.44. Journal of the American Oriental Society 111 (3): 481-494. Gerow, E. 1985. A Note on pitrvy(?). Indo-Iranian Journal 28 (4): 291-293. Gippert, Jost. 1997. Laryngeals and the Vedic Metre. In Sound Law and Analogy: Papers in Honor of Robert S. P. Beekes on the Occasion of His 60th Birthday, edited by Alexander Lubotsky. Pp. 63-80. Amsterdam and Atlanta, GA: Rodopi. [On the metric reflection of a laryngeal in duhit
, etc.] Gonda, J. 1950. Sanskrit bhagini- soeur. Acta Orientalia 21 (1): 23-25. HAVE

Grassmann, Hermann. 1863. Ueber die Aspiraten und ihr gleichzeitiges Vorhandensein im An- und Auslaute der Wurzeln. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 12 (2): 81-138. [Attestation of lexicographic druhas son, druh daughter.] Hmeen-Anttila, Virpi. 1998. For Ever Thou Shalt Love and She Be Fair: Kalidsas Vision of the Ideal Marriage. In Changing Patterns of Family and Kinship in South Asia. Proceedings of an International Symposium on the Occasion of the 50th Anniversary of Indias Independence held at the University of Helsinki 6 May 1998, edited by Asko Parpola, and Sirpa Tenhunen. Pp. 11-30. Helsinki: Finnish Oriental Society. Held, Gerrit J. 1935. The Mahabharata: An Ethnological Study. London: K. Paul, Trench, Trubner. 348 P. [Alleged evidence of cross-cousin marriage.] Herold, Erich. 1955. Group-Marriage in Vedic Society. Archiv Orientln 23: 63-76. Hocart, Arthur M. 1923. Buddha and Devadatta. Indian Antiquary 52: 262-272. [Cross-cousin marriage.]

Kretschmer, Paul. HAVE 1930. Altindisch amba. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 57: 251-255. [An Indian term for mother.] Karve, Irawati. 1940. Kinship Terminology and Kinship Usages in Rigveda and Atharvaveda. Annals of the Bhandarkar Oriental Research Institute 22: 69-96, 109-144, 213-234. Poona City. Kulkarni, E. D. 1944. Vocatives in the Critical Edition of the Mahbhrata. Bulletin of the Deccan College Research Institute 6 (1-2): 1-36. [Pp. 1-3: kin terms.] Karve, Irawati. 1942. Kinship Terms and Family Organization as Found in the Critical Edition of the Mahbhrata. Deccan College Research Institute 5: 61-148. Kohler, Josef. 1882. Rechtshistorische und rechtsvergleichende Forschungen. III. Indisches Ehe- und Familienrecht. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Rechtswissenschaft 3: 342-442. Kohler, Josef. 1886. Geschlechtliche Promiscuitt in den indischen Rechtsbchern. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Rechtswissenschaft 6: 404 Manessy-Guitton, Jacqueline. HAVE 1970. Recherches sur la formation de Skr. duhitr. In Actes de Xe Congrs International des Linguistes, Bucarest, 28 aot 2 septembre 1967. Pp. 659-665. Bucarest: ditions de lAkadmie de la Rpublique Socialiste de Roumanie. Martinet, Andr. 1956. Review of T. Burrow. The Sanskrit Language. Word 12 (2): 304-312. [Pp. 305307: on pitar and duhitar.] HAVE Mayrhofer, Manfred. HAVE 1950. Beitrge zur altindischen Etymologie. 5. Ai. str
-/Mind. itth Weib. Archivum Linguisticum 2 (1): 44-45. Mayrhofer, Manfred. 1954. Zu ai. str
Weib. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 72 (1-2): 118120. Mayrhofer, Manfred. HAVE 1994a. Einige Beobachtungen zur altindoiranischen Laut- und Wortbildungsgeschichte: Aus der Arbeit am etymologischen Wrterbuch des Altindoarischen. Quaderni dellIstituto di Glottologia 6: 197-203. [P. 201: on the terms for daughter in Indo-Aryan.] Mayrhofer, Manfred. HAVE 1994b. Lindo-iranien. In Langue Indo-Europennes, edit par Franoise Bader. Pp. 100120. Paris: CNRS. [P. 119: on the terms for daughter-in-law and father in Indo-Aryan.] Mller, Max. 2002. The Ideas of Infinity and Law (from Lectures on the Origin and Growth of Religion (1878)). In The Essential Max Mller: On Language, Mythology, and Religion,

edited by Jon R. Stone. Pp. 167-192. New York: Palgrave. [P. 233: on the appellation father in Rigveda.] Oliphant, S. G. 1912. The Vedic Dual. Journal of the American Oriental Society 32: 33-57. [Includes dual forms of kin terms.] Pisani, Vittore. HAVE 1952. Sanskrit str
. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 70: 241-243. [On the term for wife.] Pischel, Richard. 1973. Grammatik der Prakrit-Sprachen. Hildesheim and New York: Georg Olms. [P. 61, 65, 273-274, 392: diminutive forms of the words for daughter, mother, and sister.] HAVE Richter, Oswald. 1898. Die unechten Nominalkomposita des Altindischen und Altiranischen. Indogermanische Forschungen 9: 1-62. [Pp. 47-52: compound kin terms.] HAVE

Roy, Kumkum. 1991-1992. Changing Kinship Relations in Later Vedic Society. Indian Historical Review 18 (1, 1991-2, 1992): 1-17. New Delhi. Sen Gupta, Nares C. 1924. Early History of Sonship in India. Man 24 (32): 40-43; (42): 53-56. HAVE

Sen Gupta, Nares C. 1938. Putrika-Putra, or the Appointed Daughters Son in Ancient Law. Journal of the Royal Asiatic Society of Bengal (Letters) 4. Sen Gupta, Nares C. 1953. Evolution of Ancient Indian Law. London and Calcutta: Probsthain & Eastern Law. [Kinship, adoption, marriage.] Shastri, S. R. 1962. Rgvaidika kala mem parivarika sambandha. Family Relationships in the Rigvedic Age. Meratha: Lila Kamala Prakasana. 442 P. [In Hindi.] Shendge, Malati J. 1997. The Language of the Harappans: From Akkadian to Sanskrit. New Delhi: Abhinav. [Pp. 254-256: kin terms.] Shukla, Shaligram. HAVE 1971. Kinship System in Paninis Astadhyahi. In Languages and Linguistics Working Papers 2, edited by Richard J. O'Brien. Pp. 77-93. Washington, D.C.: Georgetown University Press. Trautmann, Thomas R. 1974. Cross-Cousin Marriage in Ancient North India? In Kinship and History in South Asia, edited by Thomas R. Trautmann. Pp. 61-103. Ann Arbor: Center for South and Southeast Asian Studies, University of Michigan. (Michigan Papers on South and Southeast Asia 7.) Turner, R. L. HAVE

1960. Indo-Arica IV: Sanskrit vura-. Bulletin of the School of Oriental and African Studies, University of London 23 (1): 106-108. Wagle, Narendra K. 1974. Kinship Groups in Jtakas. In Kinship and History in South Asia, edited by Thomas R. Trautmann. Pp. 105-167. Ann Arbor: Center for South and Southeast Asian Studies, University of Michigan. (Michigan Papers on South and Southeast Asia 7.) MEDIEVAL Links, Joan I. 1980. Marriage, Family and Kinship in Medieval Northern India, with special reference to the Kathasaritsagara, the seventh chapter of the Rajatarangini, and Medhatithis Bhasya on the Manusmrti. Ph.D. dissertation. University of Toronto. MODERN COLLECTIONS Glushkova, Irina, and Rajendra Vora. (eds.) 1999. Home, Family and Kinship in Maharashtra. New Delhi: Oxford University Press. GENERAL Ahmad, Aziz 1977. Muslim Kinship Terminology in Urdu. Journal of the Economic and Social History of the Orient 20 (3): 344-350. Leiden. Basu, D. N. 1974. A Sociolinguistic Study of Indo-Aryan Kinship Terms. Indian Journal of Linguistics 1 (2): 102-114. Beck, Brenda E. F. 1978. The Logical Appropriation of Kinship as a Political Metaphor: An Indian Epic at the Civilizational and Regional Levels. Anthropologica 20 (1-2): 47-64. Beidelman, T. O. 1961. The Jajmani System: A Comment on Bennett and Despres Article. American Anthropologist 63 (3): 564-566. [See Bennett & Despres 1960 in THEORY, and Bennett & Despres 1961 and Gould 1963 in INDO-EUROPEAN.] Bennett, J. W., and L. A. Despres. 1961. Rejoinder to Beidelman. American Anthropologist 63 (3): 566-570. [See Bennett & Despres 1960 in THEORY, Beidelman 1961 and Gould 1963 in INDO-EUROPEAN.] Bharati, A. 1963. Kinship Term Avoidance and Substitution in North Indian Middle Cass Milieux. Sociologus 13 (2): 112-120. Bouez, Serge. HAVE 1985. Le Prix de la puret isogamie et hypergamie chez les brahmanes Rarhi du Bengale. LHomme 25 (96): 23-48. Chambard, Jean-Luc.

1961. Mariages secondaires et foires aux femmes en Inde centrale. LHomme 1 (2): 5188. Datta, A. K. 1970. Dharam Kinship in South-West Bengal. Anthropos 65 (1-2): 178. Dumont, Louis. 1956. La vocabulaire de parent dans lInde du Nord. Institut Franais dAnthropologie, Comptes-Rendus, February. Dumont, Louis. 1962. Le vocabulaire de parent dans lInde du Nord. LHomme 2 (2): 5-48. HAVE

Dumont, Louis. 1963. Le mariage secondaire dans lInde du Nord. In Actes de Congrs International des Sciences Anthropologiques et Ethnologiques. Paris, 1960. T. 2. Pp. 53-55. Paris: Muse de lHomme. Dumont, Louis. HAVE 1975. Terminology and Prestation Revisited. Contributions to Indian Sociology 9 (2): 197-215. [Reaction to Vatuk 1969.] Eames, Edwin. 1966. Hindu Cousin Marriages. American Anthropologist 68 (3): 757-758. Fox, Richard G. 1971. Kin, Clan, Raja, and Rule: State-Hinterland Relations in Preindustrial India. Berkeley: University of California Press. Reviews: Macfarlane 1972b; Schwartzberg 1972; Sharma P. 1972; Washbrook 1972; Galey 1973; Barnett M. 1974. Freed, Stanley A. 1963. Fictive Kinship in a North Indian Village. Ethnology (1): 86-103. Fruzetti, Lina, and Aks str. 1976b. Is There a Structure to North Indian Kinship Terminology? Contributions to Indian Sociology 10 (1): 63-96. [Includes a critique of formal semantic methods for the introduction of genealogical artificiality.] Fruzetti, Lina, and Aks str. 1998. Hierarchy Revisited. In Changing Patterns of Family and Kinship in South Asia. Proceedings of an International Symposium on the Occasion of the 50th Anniversary of Indias Independence held at the University of Helsinki 6 May 1998, edited by Asko Parpola, and Sirpa Tenhunen. Pp. 39-50. Helsinki: Finnish Oriental Society. Gould, Harold A. 1959. Family and Kinship in a North Indian Village. Ph.D. dissertation. University of Washington. 288 P. Gould, Harold A. HAVE 1961. A Further Note on Village Exogamy in North India. Southwestern Journal of Anthropology 17 (3): 297-300.

Gould, Harold A. 1963. A Comment on the Bennett and Despres-Beidelman Controversy. American Anthropologist 65 (3, pt. 1): 663-666. Gould, Harold A. 1968. Time-Dimension and Structural Change in an Indian Kinship System: A Problem of Conceptual Refinement. In Structure and Change in Indian Society, edited by Milton Singer and Bernard S. Cohn. Pp. 413-422. Chicago: Aldine. Grierson, George A. 1896. On the Phonology of the Modern Indo-Aryan Vernaculars. Zeitschrift der Deutschen Morgenlndischen Gesellschaft 50: 1-42. [Pp. 9: contracted terms for daughter.] HAVE Handelman, Don. 1998. Husband and Wife and the Game of Dice: iva and Prvat Fall Apart. In Changing Patterns of Family and Kinship in South Asia. Proceedings of an International Symposium on the Occasion of the 50th Anniversary of Indias Independence held at the University of Helsinki 6 May 1998, edited by Asko Parpola, and Sirpa Tenhunen. Pp. 110. Helsinki: Finnish Oriental Society. Khare, Ravindra S. 1975. Embedded Affinity and Consanguineal Ethos: Two Properties of the Northern Kinship System. Contributions to Indian Sociology 9 (2): 245-262. Khare, Ravindra S. 1982. From kanya to mata: Aspects of the Cultural Language of Kinship in Northern India. In Concepts of Person: Kinship, Caste, and Marriage in India, edited by Akos Ostor, Lina Fruzzetti and Steve Barnett. Pp. 143-171. Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press. Khare, Ravindra S. 1983. Normative Culture and Kinship: Essays on Hindu Categories, Processes, and Perspectives. New Delhi: Vikas. 175 P. Lambert, Helen. 2000. Sentiment and Substance in North Indian Forms of Relatedness. In Cultures of Relatedness: New Approaches to the Study of Kinship, edited by Janet Carsten. Pp. 7389. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Mesthrie, Rajend. 1990. The Linguistic Reflex of Social Change: Caste and Kinship Terms among People of Indian Descent in Natal, South Africa. Anthropological Linguistics 32 (3-4): 335-353. Morgenstierne, Georg. HAVE 1950. Svs and bhagin in Modern Indo-Aryan. Acta Orientalia 21 (1): 27-32. [Two competing terms for sister.] Reprinted in: Irano-Dardica, by Georg Morgenstierne. Pp. 224-230. Wiesbaden: Ludwig Reichert, 1973. Orenstein, Henry.

1970. Death and Kinship in Hinduism: Structural and Functional Interpretations. American Anthropologist 72 (6): 1357-1377. Pillai, M. Shanmugam. 1965. Caste Isoglosses in Kinship Terms. Anthropological Linguistics 7 (3): 59-66. Saksena, Baburam. HAVE 1926. The Names of Relatives in Modern Indo-Aryan Languages. Proceedings and Transactions of the All-India Oriental Conference 4 (2): 475-514. Scheffler, Harold W. 1980. Kin Classification and Social Structure in North India. Contributions to Indian Sociology 14 (2): 131-168. Skoda, Uwe. 2004. Wahlverwandtschaften. Zur Verbindung von Politik und Verwandtschaft im indischen Wahlkampf. Sdasien Informationen 6: 1-22. Strmpell, Christian. 2000. Kinship in Western Uttar Pradesh: A Re-Interpretation of Sylvia Vatuks Model of North Indian Kinship. Journal of Social Sciences 4 (4): 295-304. Trautmann, Thomas R. 1973. Consanguineous Marriage in Pali Literature. Journal of the American Oriental Society 93: 158-180. Vatuk, Sylvia. HAVE 1969. Reference, Address and Fictive Kinship in Urban North India. Ethnology 8 Vatuk, Sylvia. 1972. Kinship and Urbanization: White Collar Migrants in North India. Berkeley: University of California Press. Reviews: Madan 1973; Parry 1973; Lffler 1974; Goldstein 1975; Leaf 1975; Eichinger Ferro-Luzzi 1976. Vatuk, Sylvia. 1975. Gifts and Affines in North India. Contributions to Indian Sociology 9 (2): 155-196. Vatuk, Sylvia. 1982. Forms of Address in the North Indian Family: An Exploration of the Cultural Meaning of Kin Terms. In Concepts of Person: Kinship, Caste, and Marriage in India, edited by kos str, Lina Fruzzetti, and Steve Barnett. Pp. 56-98. Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press. Wadley, Susan S. 1976. Brothers, Husbands and Sometimes Sons: Kinsmen in North Indian Ritual. Eastern Anthropologist 29 (2): 149-170. REGIONAL Stern, Henri. 1973. Le pouvoir dans lInde traditionnelle: Territoire, caste et parent. Approche thorique et tude rgionale (Rajasthan). LHomme 13 (1-2): 50-70.

Trivedi, H. R. HAVE 1954. Some Aspects of Kinship Terminology among the Mers of Saurashtra. Journal of the Maharaja Sayajirao University of Baroda 3 (1): 157-168. [Gujarati, Hindi, Marwari languages.] Review: Mencher 1962. SPECIFIC INDO-ARYAN COMPARATIVE Arora, Harbir K., and Karumuri V. Subbarao. 2004. Syntactic Change and Converegence: The Case of Non-Nominative Subjects in Dakkhini and Konkani. In Nonnominative Subjects, edited by Peri Bhaskararao and K. V. Subbarao. Pp. 25-45. John Benjamins. [Pp. 37-38: kinship possession.] Keiser, R. Lincoln. HAVE 1971. Social Structure and Social Control in Two Afghan Mountain Societies. Ph.D. dissertation, University of Rochester. [Dardic-speaking Sum/Pashayi and Nuristanispeaking Kom/Kamviri.] CENTRAL ZONE BHIL BHILI Bose, Delip K. 1988. Bhil Marriage: Rules and Irregularities. In Marriage in India: Tribes, Muslims, and Anglo-Indians, edited by B. B. Goswami, J. Sarkar, and D. Danda. Pp. 283-289. Calcutta: Anthropological Survey of India. Dasgupta, Samira. 1988. Bride-Price and Social Problems: A Case of the Bhil. In Marriage in India: Tribes, Muslims, and Anglo-Indians, edited by B. B. Goswami, J. Sarkar, and D. Danda. Pp. 279282. Calcutta: Anthropological Survey of India. Doshi, J. K. 1969. Social Structure and Cultural Change in a Bhil Village. Delhi: New Heights. Konrad, Paul. 1939. Zur Ethnographie der Bhils. Anthropos 34: 23-117. [Pp. 59-68: family and marriage.] Koppers, Wilhelm. 1948. Die Bhil in Zentralindien. Horn-Wien: Ferdinand Berger. [Pp. 109-141: kinship, clanship, marriage, exogamy.] Reviews: Eberhard 1949; Spencer D. 1949; Capell 1950. Naik, Thakorlal B. 1957. Kinship Terms in the Bhils of Malwa. Bulletin of the Tribal Research Institute 1(1): 4-7.

Naik, Thakorlal B. 1970. The Bhils: A Study. Delhi: Bharatiya Adimjati Sevak Sangh. [Pp. 58-61: kin terminology.] Sengupta, Sadhan. 1988. Some Salient Features of Bhil Marriage in a Southern Rajasthan Village. In Marriage in India: Tribes, Muslims, and Anglo-Indians, edited by B. B. Goswami, J. Sarkar, and D. Danda. Pp. 225-234. Calcutta: Anthropological Survey of India. Shah, P. G. 1959. Naikas Naikdas: A Gujarat Tribe. Bombay: Gujarat Research Society. [Dialect of Bhili; Pp. 50-51: kin terminology.] HAVE Shashi, S. S. 1994. Social Structure and Marriage among the Bhils. In Encyclopedia of Indian Tribes. Vol. 10. Tribal Cultures, Customs and Affinities: A Cross-Regional Anthology, edited by S. S. Shashi. Pp. 30-49. New Delhi: Anmol. Singh, Bageshwar. 1988. The Marriage among the Bhil of Pratapgarh. In Marriage in India: Tribes, Muslims, and Anglo-Indians, edited by B. B. Goswami, J. Sarkar, and D. Danda. Pp. 221224. Calcutta: Anthropological Survey of India. BHILALI (BHILALA) Haekel, Josef. HAVE 1963. Some Aspects of the Social Life of the Bhilala in Central India. Ethnology 2 (2): 190-206. Sinha, R. K. 1995. The Bhilala of Malwa. Calcutta: Anthropological Survey of India. [Pp. 67-69: kin terminology.] HAVE DHODIA Sarkar, Amitabha. 1988. Changing pattern of Marriage Practices among the Dhodia. In Marriage in India: Tribes, Muslims, and Anglo-Indians, edited by B. B. Goswami, J. Sarkar, and D. Danda. Pp. 261-264. Calcutta: Anthropological Survey of India. RAJPUT GARASIA (GRASIA, DUNGRI) Dave, P. C. 1960. The Grasias, also called Dungri Grasias (A Scheduled Tribe in Bombay and Rajastan States). Delhi: Bharatiya Adimjati Sevar. [Pp. 24-25: kin terminology. Incomplete.] HAVE Kundu, Nityananda. 1988. Garasia Mode of Acquiring a Mate. In Marriage in India: Tribes, Muslims, and Anglo-Indians, edited by B. B. Goswami, J. Sarkar, and D. Danda. Pp. 177-182. Calcutta: Anthropological Survey of India. GUJARATI GUJARATI

Karve, Irawati. HAVE 1943-1944. Kinship Terminology and Kinship Usages in Gujart and Kathiwd. Deccan College Research Institute 4: 208-226. Michaelson, Maureen. 1983. Caste, Kinship and Marriage: A Study of Two Gujarati Trading Castes in England. Ph.D. dissertation. London: School of Oriental and African Studies. Pocock, David F. 1972. Kanbi and Patidar: A Study of the Patidar Community of Gujarat. Oxford: Clarendon Press. [Pp. 94-125: The Language and Behaviour of Kin and Affines; 126152: Marriage Circles; 164-171: The Terminology of Kinship.] Reviews: Das 1973; Hayley 1975. Shah, A. M. 1977. Lineage Structure and Change in a Gujarat Village. In Dimensions of Social Change in India, edited by M. N. Srinivas, S. Seshaiah and V. S. Parthasarthy. Bombay: Allied Publishing House. Shashi, S. S. 1994. The Gujjar Nomads of Northern Highlands: A Sociological Study. In Encyclopedia of Indian Tribes. Vol. 6. Himachal Pradesh and Northern Highlands, edited by S. S. Shashi. Pp. 12-74. New Delhi: Anmol. [Pp. 23-36: kinship and family.] Steed, Gitel P. 1970. Caste and Kinship in Rural Gujarat: The Social Use of Space. Ph.D. dissertation. Columbia University. Veen, Klaas van der. 1969. Huwelijk en Hirarchie bij de Anavil Brahman van Zuid Gujarat. Sociale Verandering en Ideologische Continuteit in de Indiase Kastensamenleving. Amsterdam: Afd. Zuid- en Zuidoost-Azi, Anthropologisch-Sociologisch Centrum, Universiteit van Amsterdam. Veen, Klaas van der. 1972. I Give Thee My Daughter: A Study of Marriage and Hierarchy among the Anavil Brahmans of South Gujarat. Translated from the Dutch by Nanette Jockin. Assen: Van Gorcum. [English translation of van der Veen 1969.] Reviews: Sharma 1973; Bouez 1974; Ramu 1974; Opler 1975. KACHI KOLI (MAHADEV KOLI) Ghurye, G. S. 1963. The Mahadev Kolis. Bombay: Popular Prakashan. [Pp. 184-189: kin terms.] HAVE Srinivasa Varma, G. 1970. Vaagri Boli: An Indo-Aryan Language. Annamalainagr: Annamalai University Press. [Dialect of Kachi Koli; pp. 34-75: Noun (kin terms passim).] Werth, Lucas.

1996a. Von Gttinnen und Ihren Menschen. Die Vagri, Vaganten Sdindiens. Berlin: Das Arabische Buch. [Pp. 121-284: kin groups, kinship system, position of women; 216-227: kin terminology.] HAVE Reviews: Parkin 1997b; Schmid 1998. Werth, Lukas. 1996b. Weiblichkeit und Gttin: Die kulturelle Konstruktion des Geschlechts in Indien und bei den Vagri. In Kulturen und Innovationen: Festschrift fr Wolfgang Rudolph, herausgegeben von Georg Elwert, Jrgen Jensen und Ivan R. Kortt. Pp. 209-224. Berlin: Duncker & Humblot. [Dialect of Kachi Koli.] SAURASHTRA Uida, Norihiko. 1996. Verwandtschaftsnamen der Saurashtra-Sprache. In Nanavidhaikata: Festschrift fr Hermann Berger, edited by Dieter B. Kapp. Pp. 271-291. Wiesbaden: Harrassowitz. RAJASTHANI BANJARA (LAMBADI, SUGALI) Deogaonkar, S. G., and Shailaja S. Deogaonkar. 1992. The Banjara. New Delhi: Concept Publishing Company. [Pp. 17-19: clans; 109: kin terms.] HAVE Naidu, T. S. 1988. Cultural Influences on the Age at Marriage among Chenchu and Sugali Tribes of Andhra Pradesh. In Marriage in India: Tribes, Muslims, and Anglo-Indians, edited by B. B. Goswami, J. Sarkar, and D. Danda. Pp. 265-272. Calcutta: Anthropological Survey of India. [Cross-listed in DRAVIDIAN.] Naik, Sarveswara V. HAVE 1975. A Note on Banjara (Sugali or Lambadi) Kinship Terms. Vanya Jati 23 (1): 23-25. GADE LOHAR (GADULIYA LOHAR) Ruhela, Satya P. 1968. The Gaduliya Lohars of Rajastan. A Study in the Sociology of Nomadism. New Delhi: Impex India. [Pp. 27-40: kin terminology.] HAVE GUJARI Verma, V. 1999. Ban-Gujars: A Nomadic Tribe in Himachal Pradesh. Delhi: B. R. Publishing Corporation. [Pp. 84-85: kin terminology.] HAVE MALVI Bhattacharya, Shefali. 1974. Malvi Kinship Terms. Indian Literature 35: 119-128. ROMANI Budilov, Lenka, and Marek Jakoubek.

2005. Ritual Impurity and Kinship in a Gypsy osada in Eastern Slovakia. Romani Studies 15 (1): 1-29. Cohn, W. 1972. Mariage chez les Rom nord-amricains: Quelques consequences du prix de la marie. tudes Tsiganes 2 (3): 4-11. Fraser, Angus. 1992. The Gypsies. Oxford: Blackwell. [Pp. 239-242: kinship, marriage and bride-price.] Jakoubek, Marek, and Lenka Budilov. 2006. Kinship, Social Organization and Genealogical Manipulations in Gypsy osadas in Eastern Slovakia. Romani Studies 16 (1): 63-82. Kosti, Svetislav. 1996. Pvod romskch pbuzenskch termn. Romano Daniben 1-2: 83-87. Kosti, Svetislav. 1997. Structure and Origin of the Kinship Terminology in Romas Language. Asian and African Studies 6 (1): 9-20. Markotic, Vladimir. HAVE 1970. North American Gypsy Terms: A Comment. American Anthropologist 72 (4): 847848. Matras, Yaron. 2002. Romani: A Linguistic Introduction. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. [Pp. 25-26: kin terms.] Nicolini, B. 1969. Famiglia Zingara. Brescia: Morcelliana. Pamporov, Alexey. 2007. Sold Like a Donkey? Bride-Price Among the Bulgarian Roma. Journal of the Royal Anthropological Institute 13: 471-476. Pamporov, Alexey. 2008. The Regional and the Subgroup Features of the Kinship Terminology of Roma/Gypsies in Bulgaria. Ethnologia Balkanica 12: 7995. HAVE

Petrovski, Trajko. 1986. Nekrvnoto srodstvo kaj Romite v SR Makedonija. Makedonski folklor 38: 177-182. Piasere, Leonardo. HAVE 1980. Il sistema di parentela e il parentado cognatico dei Rom Xoraxan. LUomo 4 (1): 49-84. Piasere, Leonardo. 1982. La terminologie des parents consanguins chez deux groupes Rom. tudes Tsiganes 28 (2): 1-24. Stoyanovitch, K. 1974. Les Tsiganes. Leur Ordre Social. Paris: Marcel Rivire.

Williams, Patrick. 1985. Lorganisation de deux communauts tsiganes. LHomme 25: 121-140. [Includes discussion of kinship and marriage.] WESTERN HINDI HINDUSTANI HINDI Bhargava, Mira, and Joachim Lambek. 1983. A Production Grammar for Hindi Kinship Terms. Theoretical Linguistics 10 (2-3): 227-245. Cohn, Bernard S. 1955. The Changing Status of a Depressed Caste. In Village India: Studies in the Little Community, edited by McKim Marriott. Pp. 53-77. Chicago: University of Chicago Press. [Pp. 55-57: Camar kinship organization.] Ekka, William, and Ajit K. Danda. 1980. The Nagesia of Chhattisgarh. Calcutta: Anthropological Survey of India. [Pp. 7077: a Hindi kin terminology.] HAVE Jamous, Raymond. 1991. La Relation Frre-Soeur. Parent et Rites chez les Meo de lInde du Nord. Paris: ditions de lcole des Hautes tudes en Sciences Sociales. Review: Allen 1993. English translation: Kinship and Rituals among the Meo of Northern India: Locating Sibling Relationship. Translated from the French by Nora Scott. Oxford: Oxford University Press, 2003. [Pp. 38-79: Meo Kinship Vocabulary.] Jana, A. K. HAVE 1990. Kinship and Social Organization of Koras of Bengal. Man and Life: A Journal of the Institute of Social Research and Applied Anthropology 16 (1-2): 89-96. [A Hindu caste; Kin categories are identified, but no kin terms are given.] Kapadia, Kanaiyalal M. 1947. Hindu Kinship: An Important Chapter in Hindu Social History. Bombay: Popular Book Depot. 320 P. Reviews: Sarma 1948; Fuchs 1950. Karandikar, S. V. 1929. Hindu Exogamy. Bombay: D. B. Taraporevala. Reviews: Charpentier 1930; Niggemeyer 1930. Leshnik, L. S. 1966. A Village Community in Central India. Anthropos 61: 813-830. [Nimari, a Hindi dialect. Pp. 823-824: The Family.] Mayne, John D. 1878. A Treatise on Hindu Law and Usage. Madras: Higginbotham.

Mayne, John D. 1887. Hindu Law in Madras. Law Quarterly Review 3: 446-459. [A critique of McLennans interpretation of patriarchal theory from the point of view of Hindu law.] Mehrotra, R. R. HAVE 1977. Fluidity of Kinship Terms of Address in Hindi. Anthropological Linguistics 19 (3): 123-125. Raheja, Gloria G. 1985. Kinship, Caste, and Auspiciousness in Pahansu. Ph.D. dissertation. University of Chicago. [A Hindi-speaking village.] Raheja, Gloria G., and Ann G. Gold. 1994. Listen to the Herons Words: Re-imagining Gender and Kinship in North India. Berkeley: University of California Press. Review: Khandelwal 1995. Svl, Minna. 1998. The Hindu Joint Family: Past and Present. In Changing Patterns of Family and Kinship in South Asia. Proceedings of an International Symposium on the Occasion of the 50th Anniversary of Indias Independence held at the University of Helsinki 6 May 1998, edited by Asko Parpola, and Sirpa Tenhunen. Pp. 61-74. Helsinki: Finnish Oriental Society. Tiwari, B. N. 1959-1960. An Etymological Note on Hindi p. In Dr. Siddheshwar Varma Volume, presented on the occasion of his seventy-fifth birthday 3d November, 1961 by members of the Linguistic Circle of Delhi, edited by A. Chandra Sekhar. Pp. 48-49. Madras: Linguistic Circle of Delhi/M.L.J. Press. [A Hindi reflexive/honorific pronoun is interpreted as a borrowed Dravidian kin term.] Turner, James. 1975. A Formal Semantic Analysis of a Hindi Kinship Terminology. Contributions to Indian Sociology 9: 263-292. Vatuk, Sylvia. HAVE 1969.The Structural Analysis of the Hindi Kinship Terminology. Contributions to Indian Sociology 3: 94-115. EAST-CENTRAL ZONE CHATTISGARHI Elwin, Verrier. 1939. The Baiga. London: John Murray. [Dialect of Chattisgarhi; pp. 527-529: kin terminology.] HAVE Reviews: R. P. 1940; Mandelbaum 1942. DHANWAR

Kumar Jana, Ashok. 1990. Kinship and Ways of Life: A Case Study among the Dhanwars of Sundargarh, Orissa. In Proceedings of the 77th Annual Session of the Indian Science Congress Association. Pt. 3. Section of Anthropology and Archaeology. Pp. 18-19. Cochin: Cochin University of Science and Technology. EASTERN ZONE BENGALI-ASSAMESE ASSAMESE Bezbaruah, Bandana. HAVE 1993. Kinship System among the Mataks: Some Aspects. Bulletin of the Department of Anthropology, Dibrugarh University 20-21 (1991-92): 74-83. Bhattacharjee, Kishore, and Annada C. Bhabati. 1996. Kinship of the Assamese: Symbols and Structures. In Kinship and Family in NorthEast India, edited by J. S. Bhandari. Pp. 373-392. New Delhi: Cosmo Publications. Das, Gitali, and Bandana Barman. HAVE 1999. Kinship Terms and Their Inflection for Person in Assamese. In Languages of the North East (Assamese, Khasi, Manipuri, Mising and Rabha), edited by P. N. Dutta Baruah. Pp. 90-103. Manasagangotri, Mysore: Central Institute of Indian Languages. Majumdar, Dhirendra N. 1969. A Comparative Study of Three Kinship Systems in Assam. In All India Sociological Conference. Delhi. [Not in catalogues.] BENGALI Aziz, K. M. Ashraful. 1979. Kinship in Bangladesh. Dacca: International Centre for Diarrhoeal Disease Research, Bangladesh. 228 P. [Hindu and Muslim communities. Includes kin terminologies.] Reviews: R.-I. H. 1980; Thorp 1980; Kolenda 1981. Basu, D. N. 1975. A Sociolinguistic Study of the Bangla Kinship Terms. Indian Linguistics 36: 217226. Bhattacharya, Tanmoy. HAVE 1998. Kinship Inversion in Bangla. In Proceedings of the 7th Manchester University Postgraduate Linguistics Conference. University of Manchester Papers in Linguistics 15 (1): 105-122. Das, Sisir K. 1968. Forms of Address and Terms of Reference in Bengali. Anthropological Linguistics 10 (4): 19-31. Fruzetti, Lina M. 1982. The Gift of a Virgin: Women, Marriage, and Ritual in a Bengali Society. New Brunswick, N. J.: Rutgers University Press. Reviews: Parkin 1983; Caplan P. 1984; Vatuk 1984.

Fruzetti, Lina, and Aks str. 1976a. Seed and Earth: A Cultural Analysis of Kinship in a Bengali Town. Contributions to Indian Sociology 10 (1): 97-133. Guha, Abhijit. 1989. Bengali Kinship: A Preliminary Enquiry into the Native Categories. Journal of the Indian Anthropological Society 24 (3): 232-243. Inden, Ronald, and Ralph W. Nicholas. 1972. A Cultural Analysis of Bengali Kinship. In Prelude to Crisis: Bengal and Bengal Studies in 1970. Papers from the 6th Conference on Bengal Studies, edited by Peter J. Bertocci. Pp. 91-98. East Lansing, MI: Asian Studies Center, Michigan State University. Inden, Ronald, and Ralph W. Nicholas. 1977. Kinship in Bengali Culture. Chicago: University of Chicago Press. Reviews: Leaf 1979; Lewandowski 1979; Khare 1980; McGilvray 1980; Vatuk 1981. Klass, Morton. 1966. Marriage Rules in Bengal. American Anthropologist 68 (4): 951-970. Sarkar, Profulla C. 1980. Dharma-Atmyo: Fictive Kin Relationship in Rural Bangladesh. Eastern Anthropologist 33 (1): 55-61. Sur, Atul K. 1929. Some Bengali Kinship Usages. Man in India 9: 72-79. Sur, Atul K. 1930. Some Bengali Kinship Usages. Anthropos 25: 329. Tenhunen, Sirpa. HAVE 2003. Culture and Political Agency: Gender, Kinship and Village Politics in West Bengal. Contributions to Indian Sociology 37 (3): 495-. Tenhunen, Sirpa. 2004. Culture and Political Agency: Gender, Kinship, and Village Politics in West Bengal, India. Suomen Antropologi 29 (3). Trautmann, Thomas R. 1980. Marriage and Rank in Bengali Culture. Journal of Asian Studies 39: 519-524. Uusikyl, Heli. 1998. The Seeds in the Container: Metaphors of Conception and Kinship in Rural Bangladesh. In Changing Patterns of Family and Kinship in South Asia. Proceedings of an International Symposium on the Occasion of the 50th Anniversary of Indias Independence held at the University of Helsinki 6 May 1998, edited by Asko Parpola, and Sirpa Tenhunen. Pp. 51-60. Helsinki: Finnish Oriental Society. Zaman, M. Q. 1981. Fictive Kinship in a Northern Bangladesh Village. Journal of the Indian Anthropological Society 16: 121-129.

CHAKMA Maitra, S. R. 2002. Ethnographic Study of the Chakma of Tripura. Kolkata: Anthropological Survey of India. [Pp. 111-125: kin terminology.] HAVE HAJONG Das, B. K. 1988. Marriage among the Hajongs. In Marriage in India: Tribes, Muslims, and AngloIndians, edited by B. B. Goswami, J. Sarkar, and D. Danda. Pp. 172-176. Calcutta: Anthropological Survey of India. MAL PAHARIA Verma, Brind B. HAVE 1960. Social Organization and Religion Among the Mal Pahariyas and the Kumarbhag of Santhal Parganas. Bulletin of the Bihar Tribal Research Institute 2 (2): 1-32. [Pp. 14-16: kin terms.] RAJBANSHI (RAJBANSI, RAJBANGSI) Mukherjee, Bhabananda. HAVE 1962. Rajbanshi Kinship System. Bulletin of the Anthropological Survey of India 11 (1): 47-56. Sanyal, Charu C. 1965. Rajbansis of North Bengal. Calcutta: Asiatic Society. [Pp. 88-117: marriage rules; 124-128: family; 128-133: kin terminology.] BIHARI BHOJPURI Rao, Rajendra K. 1988. Demographic Aspects of Marriage among Four Subgroups of Telis in Vidarbha Region, Maharashtra. In Marriage in India: Tribes, Muslims, and Anglo-Indians, edited by B. B. Goswami, J. Sarkar, and D. Danda. Pp. 105-114. Calcutta: Anthropological Survey of India. [Dialect of Bhojpuri.] Upadhyaya, Hari S. 1969. Patterns of Mother-Son Behavior in the Hindu Family as Depicted in the Bhojpuri Folksongs of India. Anthropologica 11 (2): 203-214. Upadhyaya, H. D. 1971. Some Instances of Consanguineous Relationship Patterns in Hindu Joint Family, as depicted in Bhojpuri Folksongs. Asian Folklore Studies 31 (1): 133-141. ORAON SADRI (KOL) Griffiths, Walter G. 1946. The Kol Tribe of Central India. Calcutta: Royal Asiatic Society of Bengal. [Pp. 283-286: kin terminology.] HAVE SADRI

Mukherjee, B., B. C. Roy Choudhury, and Deepali Ghosh. 1973. The Chero of Palamau. Calcutta: Anthropological Survey of India. [Pp. 60-63: kin terminology and behavior.] HAVE BUXA (BUKSA) Hasan, Amir. 1979. The Buxas of the Tarai (A Study of their Socio-Economic Disintegration). Delhi: B. R. Publishing Corporation. [Pp. 60-65: kin terminology.] HAVE ORIYA Behura, N. K. 2005. Tribe, Caste and Kinship in Orissa. In Tribal Situation in India, edited by Deepak K. Behera and Georg Pfeffer. Pp. 185-197. New Delhi: Concept Publishing. Chowdhury, Bakula C. 2010. Kinship System of Oriya Castes in Coastal Orissa. Bhubaneswar: Bakul Chandra Chowdhury. Rao, Raghava D. V. HAVE 1968. Domb Kinship Terms. Man in India 48 (2): 115-123. [Kupia, or Valmiki.] Roy, Sarat C. 1935. The Hill Bhiys of riss, with comparative notes on the Plains Bhiys. Ranchi: Man in India Office. [Pp. 134-148: Oriya kin terminology.] HAVE Reviews: Murdock 1936; Richards 1936. Skoda, Uwe. 2000. The Kinship System of the Aghria. Journal of Social Sciences 4 (4): 277-293. Skoda, Uwe. HAVE 2004. Ritual Friendship in a Converging Tribal and Caste Society. Journal of Social Sciences 8 (2): 167-177. [Ritual kinship.] Skoda, Uwe. 2005. The Aghria: A Peasant Caste on a Tribal Frontier. New Delhi: Manohar. Review: Parkin R. 2007. Skoda, Uwe. HAVE 2007. The Kinship System of the Aghria: A Case Study of Peasants in Middle India. Journal of the Royal Anthropological Institute 13: 679-701. THARU Gurung, Ganesh M., and Tove C. Kittelsen. HAVE 1996. Kurma, kola, and kuri as Community Concepts: Patrilineages, Deities, and InsideOutside Dichotomy among the Rana Tharus. Occasional Papers in Sociology and Anthropology 5: 78-93. Krausskopf, Gisle.

1990. Les Tharu et le royaume hindou de Dang (Npal). Souverainet divine et endogamie ethnique. LHomme 30: 30-54. McDonaugh, C. 2000. Spirit, Substance, Vehicle: Kinship and Cosmology among the Dangaura Tharu, Nepal. Social Anthropology 8 (1): 19-32. Srivastava, S. K. 1958. The Tharus: A Study of Culture Dynamics. Agra: Agra University Press. [Pp. 9196: kin terminology.] HAVE Reviews: Nimkoff 1959; Smith M. 1959 NORTHERN ZONE CENTRAL PAHARI KUMAONI (KUMAUNI) Bawa, Manjeet. 1967. Role Analysis of Fictive Kinship in a Kumaoni Society. Anthropos 62: 898-906. Sharma, D. D. 1985. Kinship Terms of Reference in Kumauni (A Socio-Linguistic Appraisal). International Journal of Dravidian Linguistics 14 (1): 160-175. HAVE

EASTERN PAHARI NEPALESE (EASTERN PAHARI) Burghart, Richard. 1975. The Role of Kinship in the Formation of Janakpurdham Pilgrim Groups. Contributions to Nepalese Studies 2 (1): 71-90. Doherty, Victor S. HAVE 1974. The Organizing Principles of Brahmin-Chetri Kinship. Contributions to Nepalese Studies 1 (2): 25-41. Gaborieau, Marc. 1978. Le partage du pouvoir entre les lignages dans une localit du Npal central. LHomme 18 (1-2): 37-67. Krause, Britt. HAVE 1980. Kinship, Hierarchy and Equality in North Western Nepal. Contributions to Indian Sociology 14 (2): 169-194. [Pp. 172-173: Rara (Jumli-speaking village) kin terminology. Dialect of Nepali.] Turin, Mark. 2001. Call Me Uncle: An Outsiders Experience of Nepali Kinship. Contributions to Nepalese Studies 28 (2): 277-283. GARHWALI Bisht, B. S. 2001. Ethnography of a Tribe: Study of Anwals of Uttarakhand Himalaya. Jaipur and New Delhi: Rawat. [Pp. 153-154: kin terminology of a Garhwali-speaking group.] HAVE

WESTERN PAHARI GADDI Kapila, Kriti. 2004. Conjugating Marriage: State Legislation and Gaddi Kinship. Contributions to Indian Sociology 38 (3): 379-409. Newell, W. H. 1952. Gaddi Kinship and Affinal Terms. Man in India 32 (2): 82-104. JAUNSARI Berreman, Gerald D. HAVE 1975. Himalayan Polyandry and the Domestic Cycle. American Ethnologist 2 (1): 127138. Bhandari, J. S. 1963. Kinship Structure among the Rajputs of Baila A Polyandrous Village of Jaunsar Bawar. Bulletin of the Anthropological Survey of India 12 (1-2): 7-21. Haas, Susanne. 1965. Die Polyandrie der Jaunsari. Anthropos 60: 369-386. Jain, S. C. 1948. Some Features of Fraternal Polyandry in Jaunsar Bawar. Eastern Anthropologist 1 (3): 27-33. PAHARI Berreman, Gerald D. 1962. Pahari Polyandry: A Comparison. American Anthropologist 64 (1): 60-75. WESTERN PANJABI (PUNJABI) GENERAL Alavi, H. A. 1972. Kinship in West Punjab Villages. Contributions to Indian Sociology 6: 1-27. Alvi, Anjum. 1999. Bearers of Grief: Death, Women, Gifts, and Kinship in Muslim Punjab. Ph.D. dissertation. Free University of Berlin. Bala, Madhu, and Omkar N. Koul. 1989. Modes of Address and Pronominal Usage in Punjabi: A Sociolinguistic Study. Mysore: Central Institute of Indian Languages. Bhatia, Tej K. 1993. Punjabi: A Conginitive-Descriptive Grammar. London: Routledge. [Pp. 355-358: kin terminology as a semantic field.] Channa, V. C. and Subhadra Channa. 1976. A Note on Punjabi Kinship Terminology. Indian Anthropologist 6 (2): 44-45. Delhi.

Das, Veena. 1976. Masks and Faces: An Essay on Punjabi Kinship. Contributions to Indian Sociology 10 (1): 1-30. Das, Veena. 1986. The Work of Mourning: Death in a Punjabi Family. In The CulturalTransition: Human Experience and Social Transformation in the Third World and Japan, edited by Merry I. White and Susan Pollak. Pp. 179-210. Boston: Routledge & Kegan Paul. Hershman, Paul. 1981. Punjabi Kinship and Marriage. Delhi: Hindustan. Reviews: Donnan 1982; Leaf 1983; Pfeffer 1983; Brar 1984. Leaf, M. J. 1971. The Punjabi Kinship Terminology as a Semantic System. American Anthropologist 73 (3): 545-554 Wakil, Parvez A. 1966. Biraderi in the Punjab: Analysis of Kinship Rules, Roles and Relationships. In Proceedings of the VIIIth International Congress of Anthropological and Ethnological Sciences, 1968, Tokyo and Kyoto. Vol. 2, edited by Banri Endo, Hiroshi Hoshi, and Shozo Masuda. Pp. 99-122. Tokyo: Science Council of Japan. JATS Chowdhry, Prem. HAVE 2004. Caste panchayats and the Policing of Marriage in Haryana: Enforcing Kinship and Territorial Exogamy. Contributions to Indian Sociology 38: 1-42. Madsen, Stig T. 1991. Clan, Kinship, and Panchayat Justice among the Jats of Western Uttar Pradesh. Anthropos 86 (4-6): 351. Sharma, Satya P. 1973. Marriage, Family, and Kinship among the Jats and the Thakurs of North India: Some Comparisons. Contributions to Indian Sociology 7: 81-103. Yadava, J. S. 1969. Kinship Groups in a Haryana Village. Ethnology 8 (4): 494-502. [Jats.] SINDHI Behura, N. K. HAVE 1965. Aspects of Bad-Bhatia Kinship in an Orissa Village. Man in India 45 (1): 37-49. [Bhatia, dialect of Sindhi. Includes kin terminology.] Gidwani, Parso J. 1978-1979. Sindhi Kinship Terms. Bulletin of the Deccan College Research Institute 38 (1-4): 91-95. SINHALESE-MALDIVIAN GENERAL HAVE

Pieris, Ralph. 1964. Vedda and Sinhalese kinship. Man 64: 118-119. Pieris, Ralph. 1965. Vedda and Sinhalese kinship. Man 65: 25. DIVEHI (DHIVEHI, MALDIVIAN)

HAVE

Gray A. HAVE 1878. The Maldive Islands: With a Vocabulary Taken from Franois Pyrard de Laval, 1602-1607. Journal of the Royal Asiatic Society of Great Britain and Ireland 10 (2): 173209. [Pp. 190-191: kin terms.] Maloney, Clarence. 1980. People of the Maldive Islands. Bombay and Chennai: Orient Longman. [Pp. 309351: Kinship and Family.] HAVE Reviews: Carter A. 1982; Eickelman 1982; Tharamangalam 1982. Romero-Fras, Xavier. 2003. The Maldive Islanders: A Study of the Popular Culture of an Ancient Ocean Kingdom. Barcelona: Nova Ethnographia Indica. SINHALA Bechert, Heinz. 1960. Mutterrecht und Thronfolge in Malabar und Ceylon. Paideuma 4-6: 179-192. Evers, Hans-Dieter. 1967. Kinship and Property Rights in a Buddhist Monastery in Central Ceylon. American Anthropologist 69 (6): 703-710. Frisch, Jack A. 1971. A Formal Analysis of Sinhalese Kinship Terms. Anthropological Linguistics 13 (3): 100-105. Gamburd, Geraldine D. 1972. The Seven Grandparents: Locality and Lineality in Sinhalese Kinship and Caste. Ph.D. Columbia University. 559 P. Houseman, Michael, and Douglas R. White. 1998. Network Mediation of Exchange Structures: Ambilateral Sidedness and Property Flows in Pul Eliya. In Kinship, Networks and Exchange, edited by Thomas Schweizer and Douglas R. White. Pp. 58-88. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Leach, Edmund R. 1955. Polyandry, Inheritance and the Definition of Marriage, with Particular Reference to Sinhalese Customary Law. Man 55: 182-186. Reprinted in: Rethinking Anthropology, by Edmund R. Leach. Pp. 105-113. London and New York: Athlone Press, 1966; Marriage, Family and Residence, edited by Paul J.

Bohannan and John Middleton. Pp. 73-83. Garden City, N. Y.: Natural History Press, 1968. Leach, Edmund R. 1961. Pul Eliya, a Village in Ceylon: A Study of Land Tenure and Kinship. London: Cambridge University Press. Chapter Kinship in Its Place is reprinted in The Essential Edmund Leach. Vol. I: Anthropology and Society, edited by Stephen Hugh-Jones and James Laidlaw. Pp. 267279. New Haven and London: Yale University Press, 2000. Reviews: Goodenough 1961a; Cohn 1962; Oliver 1962. Leach, Edmund R. 1971. More about Mama and Papa. In Rethinking Kinship and Marriage, edited by Rodney Needham. Pp. 75-98. London, etc.: Tavistock Publications. [Sinhala.] Munck, Victor C. de. HAVE 1990. Cross-Sibling Relationships and the Dowry in Sri Lanka. Ethnos 55 (1-2): 56-73. [Includes a critique of the Dravidian model.] Raghavan, M. D. 1961. The Karva of Ceylon: Society and Culture. With a Foreword by Christoph von Frer-Haimendorf. Colombo: K. V. G. de Silva and Sons. [Pp. 93-102: kin terminology of a Sinhalese group.] HAVE Reviews: Ames 1962; Yalman 1962. Robinson, Marguerite S. HAVE 1968. Some Observations on the Kandyan Sinhalese Kinship System. Man 3 (3): 402423. Selvadurai, Anthony J. 1973. Culture and Continuity: A Study of Kinship and Land Tenure in a Sinhalese Village. Ph.D. dissertation. University of Washington. 234 P. Sirrat, R. L. HAVE 1977. Dravidian and Non-Dravidian Kinship Terminologies in Sri Lanka. Contributions to Indian Sociology 11 (2): 271-293. Tambiah, S. J. 1958. The Structure of Kinship and Its Relationship to Land Possession and Residence in Pata Dumbara, Central Ceylon. Journal of the Royal Anthropological Institute of Great Britain and Ireland 88 (1): 21-44. Tambiah, S. J. 1965. Kinship Fact and Fiction in Relation to the Kandyan Sinhalese. Journal of the Royal Anthropological Institute 95 (2): 131-173. Yalman, Nur. HAVE 1962. The Structure of the Sinhalese Kindred: A Re-Examination of the Dravidian Terminology. American Anthropologist 64 (3, pt. 1): 548-575.

Yalman, Nur. 1965. Dual Organization in Central Ceylon? Or the Goddess of the Treetop. Journal of Asian Studies 24: 441-458. Yalman, Nur. 1967. Under the Bo Tree: Studies in Caste, Kinship and Marriage in the Interior of Ceylon. Berkeley and Los Angeles: University of California Press. 406 P. Reviews: Pieris 1968; Pocock 1968; Scheffler 1969b. VEDDAH (VEDDA) Leach, Edmund R. 1963. Did the Wild Veddas Have Matrilineal Clans? In Studies in Kinship and Marriage Dedicated to Brenda Z. Seligman on her 80th Birthday, edited by I. Schapera. Pp. 68-78. London: Royal Anthropological Institute. Seligmann, C. G., and Brenda Z. Seligmann. 1911. The Veddas. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. [Pp. 63-70: kin terminology.] Reviews: Churchill 1911; Crooke 1911; Dames 1912. Stegeborn, Wiveca. 1999. The Wanniyala-aetto (Veddahs) of Sri Lanka. In The Cambridge Encyclopedia of Hunters and Gatherers, edited by Richard B. Lee and Richard Daly. Pp. 269-273. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. [P. 270-271: kinship.] SOUTHERN ZONE KONKANI Katre, Lalita S. 1970. Konkani Kinship Terms. Indian Linguistics 31 (4): 145-161. HAVE

Katre, S. M. HAVE 1968. On Some Kinship Terms in Konkani. In Studies in Indian Linguistics. Professor M. B. Emeneau Sastiprti Volume, edited by Bhadriradju Krishnamurti. Pp. 164-165. Annamalainagar: Deccan College, Poona University and Annamalai University, Centers of Advanced Study in Linguistics. MARATHI Bn, Vronique. 1997. De limportance de la relation frre-soeur au Maharashtra (Inde). LHomme 37 (141): 25-53. Bhide, S. S. 1981. Kinship Terms and Social Practices. Bulletin of the Deccan College Research Institute 40: 27-28. [Marathi.] Carter, Anthony T. 1975. Caste Boundaries and the Principle of Kinship Amity: A Maratha Caste Purana. Contributions to Indian Sociology 9 (2): 123-138. Delfendahl, Bernard.

1971. Parent, fonction et territoire dans les cultes champtres dun village de lInde. LHomme 11 (1): 52-67. [Marathi.] Dhogae, Ramea, and Kashi Wali. 2009. Marathi. Amsterdam: John Benjamins. [Pp. 66-67: the use of simple kin terms as pre-modifiers in complex, descriptive kin terms.] Good, Anthony. 1981. Prescription, Preference and Practice: Marriage Patterns among the Kondaiyankottai Maravar of South India. Man 16 (1): 108-129. [Marathi.] HAVE

Reprinted in: Kinship and Family: An Anthropological Reader, edited by Robert Parker and Linda Stone. Pp. 187-204. Oxford: Blackwell, 2004. Junghare, Indira Y. 1998. My Home: My Parents Place or My In-Laws House? A Cross-Cultural Comparison. In House and Home in Maharashtra, edited by Irina Glushkova and Anne Feldhaus. Pp. 176-188. Delhi: Oxford University Press. [Marriage and kinship in Marathi wedding songs.] Kale, Kalyan. 1998. Kinship Terms in Marathi. In House and Home in Maharashtra, edited by Irina Glushkova and Anne Feldhaus. Pp. 176-188. Delhi: Oxford University Press. Karve, Irawati. 1939-1940. Kinship Terminology and Kinship Usages of the Marth Country. Bulletin of the Deccan College Research Institute 1: 327-389; 2, 9-33. Karve, Irawati. HAVE 1942a. Brother and Sister in Marathi Folksong. Science and Culture 8 (5): 214-217. Karve, Irawati. HAVE 1942b. Kinship System and Kinship Usages in Mahrstra. In Proceedings of the 28th Indian Science Congress, Benares, 1941. Pp. 217-218. Calcutta: Indian Science Congress Association. Lomova-Oppokova, Marina Yu. 1999. Marathas: The Role of Kinship Relations in the Social and Political Life of Maharashtra. In Home, Family and Kinship in Maharashtra, edited by Irina Glushkova and Rajendra Vora. Pp. 185-198. New Delhi: Oxford University Press. Kelkar, Ashok R. 1959-1960. Marathi Kinship Terms: A Lexicographical Study. In Dr. Siddheshwar Varma Volume, presented on the occasion of his seventy-fifth birthday 3d November, 1961 by members of the Linguistic Circle of Delhi, edited by A. Chandra Sekhar. Pp. 122. Madras: Linguistic Circle of Delhi/M.L.J. Press. Review: Raeside 1964. Orenstein, Henry. 1965. Gaon: Conflict and Cohesion in an Indian Village. Princeton: Princeton University Press. [Marathi. Pp. 319-325: kin terminology.] HAVE Reviews: Spencer 1966; McCormack 1968.

Pandharipande, Rajeshwari. 1997. Marathi. New Delhi: Psychology Press. [Pp. 261-263: the use of vocative kin terms, including as address forms for friends.] Vora, Rajendra 1999. Dominant Lineages and Political Power in Maharashtra. In Home, Family and Kinship in Maharashtra, edited by Irina Glushkova and Rajendra Vora. Pp. 199-219. New Delhi: Oxford University Press. Others Chantia, Alok, Ritu Garg, Sameera Maiti, Shailendra Pandey, Ajita Singh and Jyoti Misra. 2002. Kinship Terminology among Dhankut and Marriage Pattern. In Proceedings of the 89th Annual Session of the Indian Science Congress Association. Pt. 3. Section of Anthropology and Archaeology. Pp. 8-9. Lucknow: Lucknow University. Hara, Tadahiko. 1969. The Kinship Terminology of the Moslem Population in Chittagong District, East Pakistan. Journal of Asian and African Studies 2: 100-125. Hara, Tadahiko. 1991. Paribar and Kinship in a Moslem Rural Village in East Pakistan. Tokyo: Institute for the Study of Languages and Cultures of Asia and Africa. Hitchcock, John T. 1956. The Rajputs of Khaalaapur: A Study of Kinship, Social Stratification, and Politics. Ph.D. dissertation. Cornell University. 335 P. Ishwaran, K. 1968. Shivapur: A South Indian Village. London: Routledge & Kegan Paul. 205 P. [Pp. 52-73: Family and Marriage.] Reviews: Beals A. 1969; Mukherjee 1969. Kapoor, Divyadarshi. 1958. The Kinship System of the Non-Polyandrous Kanets of Mahasu. The Anthropologist 5 (1-2): 19-31. HAVE

Khatoon, Tayyaba. HAVE 1968. Degress of Prohibited Relationship among the Muslims. In Proceedings of the 54th Indian Science Congress, Hyderabad, 1967. P. 489. Calcutta: Indian Science Congress Association. Koppad, K. B. 1972. Some Features of Kinship System in Karnataka Region of Mysore State. Indian Anthropologist 11 (1): 27-40. Kumar Datta, Ansu. 1970. Dharam Kinship in South-West Bengal. Anthropos 65 (1-2): 178-188.

Mahapatra, L. K. 1973. Ritual Kinship in Orissa. Bulletin of the Deccan College Research Institute 31-32: 89-105. Mayer, Adrian C. 1960. Caste and Kinship in Central India: A Village and Its Region. Berkeley and Los Angeles: University of California Press. Reviews: Cohn 1960; Hermanns 1960; Mandelbaum 1960; Beals 1961; Varma 1961. Mehra, J. D. 1959. Kinship System of the Shokas of Almora District, Uttar Pradesh. The Anthropologist 6 (1-2): 1-6. Delhi. Parry, Jonathan P. 1972. Caste and Kinship in Kangra. Ph.D. dissertation. Cambridge University. Parry, Jonathan P. 1979. Caste and Kinship in Kangra. London: Routledge & Kegan. Reviews: Carrithers 1979; Allen 1980; Berreman 1980; Fox 1980; Gaborieau 1980; Good 1980; Vatuk 1980. Pfeffer, Georg. 1983. Prskription und Geschichte: Grenzen in pakistanischen Terminologien. In Ethnologie und Geschichte. Festschrift fr Karl Jettmar, heraugegeben von Peter Snoy. Pp. 471-485. Wiesbaden: Steiner. Raha, Manis K., and Palash Ch. Coomar. HAVE 1989. The Kinship Terms of the Bhantu of Andamans: Structural Analysis. Man in India 69 (4): 374-386. Tenhunen, Sirpa. 1998. Urban Hierarchies in Flux: Arranged Intercaste Marriages in Calcutta. In Changing Patterns of Family and Kinship in South Asia. Proceedings of an International Symposium on the Occasion of the 50th Anniversary of Indias Independence held at the University of Helsinki 6 May 1998, edited by Asko Parpola, and Sirpa Tenhunen. Pp. 7586. Helsinki: Finnish Oriental Society. Vreede-de Stuers, Cora. 1963. Terminologie de parent chez les musulmans Ashrf de lInde du Nord. Bijdragen tot de Taal-, Land en Volkenkunde 119 (3): 254-266. NORTHWESTERN ZONE GENERAL Biddulph, John. 1880. Tribes of the Hindoo Koosh. Calcutta: Office of the Superintendant of Government Printing. [Pp. 82-83: milk kinship.] DARDIC GENERAL HAVE

Grierson, George A. 1969 (1906). The Pica Languages of North-Western India. Delhi: Munshiram Manoharlal. [Pp. 65, 66, 67-68, 70, 75, 77, 79: detailed lists of basic kin terms.]

HAVE

Pfeffer, Georg. HAVE 1984. Kin Classification in Hunza. Journal of Central Asia 7 (2): 57-68. Islamabad. [Cross-listed in BURUSHASKI.] CHITRAL KALASHA Jones, Schuyler. 1974. Men of Influence in Nuristan: A Study of Social Control and Dispute Settlement in Waigal Valley, Afganistan. London and New York: Seminar Press. [Pp. 118-164: Kalasha kinship and marriage, including terminology.] HAVE Reviews: Tapper 1975; King 1976; Strand 1976. Jones, Schuyler, and Peter S. C. Parkes. 1974. Ethnographic Notes on Clan/Lineage Houses in the Hindukush and Clan Temples and Descent Group Structure among the Kalasha (Kalash Kafirs) of Chitral. Proceedings of the 6th International Symposium on Asian Studies. Pp. 1155-1176. Hong Kong: Asian Research Service. Parkes, Peter. 1983. Alliance and Elopement: Economy, Social Order and Sexual Antagonism among the Kalasha (Kalash Kafirs) of Chitral. Ph.D. dissertation. Oxford University. Parkes, Peter. 1984. Clan Temples and Descent Group Structure among the Kalasha (Kalash Kafirs) of Chitral. In Proceedings of the 6th International Symposium on Asian Studies. Vol. 4, edited by L. Au, H. Nelson and H. Leung. Pp. 1164-1176. Hong Kong: Asian Research Services. Parkes, Peter. 1997. Kalasha Domestic Society: Practice, Ceremony and Domain. In Family and Gender in Pakistan: Domestic Organization in a Muslim Society, edited by Hastings Donnan and Frits Selier. Pp. 25-63. New Delhi: Hindustan Publishing Corporation. Parkes, Peter. 2000. Kinship as Anger: Relations of Resentment in Kalasha Divination. In Culture, Creation and Procreation in South Asia: Concepts of Kinship in South Asian Practice, edited by Monica Bck and Aparna Rao. Pp. 271-296. New York: Berghahn Books. Parkes, Peter. 2001. Unwrapping Rudeness: Inverted Etiquette in an Egalitarian Enclave. In Anthropology of Indirect Communication, edited by Joy Hendry and C. W. Watson. London: Routledge. [P.239: kin terms as address forms in Kalasha, with Khowar examples.] KASHMIRI Koul, Omkar N. HAVE

2005. Studies in Kashmiri Linguistics. Delhi: Indian Institute of Language Studies. [Pp. 111-118: kin terms, including kin terms and modes of address.] Madan, Triloki N. 1953. Kinship Terms Used by the Pandits of Kashmir: A Preliminary Analysis. Eastern Anthropologist 7 (3): 37-46. Madan, Triloki N. 1963. A Further Note on the Pandit Kinship Terminology. In Anthropology on the March: Recent Studies of Indian Beliefs, Attitudes and Social Institutions, edited by L. K. Ratnam, L. Krishna Anantha Krishna Iyer, and Diwan Bahadur. Pp. 268-274. Madras: Book Centre. Madan, Triloki N. 1975. Structural Implications of Marriage in North India: Wife-Givers and Wife-Takers among the Pandits of Kashmir. Contributions to Indian Sociology 9 (2): 217-243. Madan, Triloki N. 1965. Family and Kinship: A Study of the Pandits of Rural Kashmir. Oxford: Oxford University Press. [Pp. 258-265: kin terminology.] HAVE Reviews: Benedict, B. 1966; Caplan L. 1967; Karve 1967; Ross 1967; Tyler 1967; Kurian 1971. Madan, Triloki N. 1993b. The Structural Implications of Marriage Alliance in North India: Wife-Givers and Wife-Takers among the Pandits of Kashmir. In Family, Kinship and Marriage in India, edited by Patricia Uberoi. Pp. 287-306. Delhi, etc.: Oxford University Press. KOHISTANI Knudsen, Are. 2008. Violence and Belonging: Land, Love and Lethal Conflict in the North-Western Frontier of Pakistan. Copenhagen: NIAS Press. [Kinship and blood vengeance.] KUNAR GAWAR-BATI Morgenstierne, Georg. 1950. Notes on Gawar-Bati. Oslo: Kommisjon Hos Jacob Dybwad. PASHAYI Keiser, R. Lincoln. 1974. Social Structure in the Southeastern Hindu-Kush: Some Implications for Pashai Ethno-History. Anthropos 69 (3-4): 445-456. SHINA BROKSKAT Ramaswami, N. 1982. Brokskat Grammar. Mysore: Central Institute of Indian Languages. [P. 40: kinship plural.]

DOMAAKI Lorimer, D. L. R. 1939. The Dumki Language: Outlines of the Speech of the Doma, or Bricho, of Hunza. Nijmegen: Dekker & van der Vegt. [Pp. 32-33: plurals of kin terms.] SHINA Nayyar, Adam. 1986. Astor: Eine Ethnographie. Stuttgart: Steiner Verlag Wiesbaden. [P. 118: Shina kinship chart.] HAVE Vohra, Rohit. 1989. An Ethnography. The Buddhist Dards of Ladakh: Mythic Lore, Household, Alliance System, Kinship. Ettelbruck, Grand Duchy of Luxembourg: Skydie Brown International. LAHNDA SERAIKI (MULTANI) Bhatt, Raj N. 1989. Multani Kinship Organization: An Investigation. Man in India 69 (4): 387-392. HAVE NURISTANI GENERAL Buddruss, Georg. 1976. Nochmals zur Stellung der Nristn-Sprachen des afghanischen Hindukusch. Mnchener Studien zur Sprachwissenschaft 35: 19-38. [P. 25: daughter; 29-30, 31: parent-in-law.] Degener, Almuth. HAVE 2002. The Nuristani Languages. In Indo-Iranian Languages and Peoples, edited by Nicholas Sims-Williams. Pp. 103-117. Oxford: Oxford University Press. (Proceedings of the British Academy 116). [P. 108: the term for daughter in Nuristani languages as compared with Iranian and Indic.] Hamp, Eric P. HAVE 1966. Notes on Kafir Phonology. In Shahidullah Presentation Volume, edited by Anwar S. Dil. Pp. 89-100. Lahore: Linguistic Research Group of Pakistan. [Pp. 98-99: Nuristani terms for daughter in the Indo-Aryan context.] Morgenstierne, Georg. 1926. Report on a Linguistic Mission to Afghanistan. Oslo: H. Aschenhoug. [P. 71: strange development of d > j in Khowar ur daughter; ur has been influenced by au son.] Review: Turner R. 1926. Morgenstierne, Georg. 1973. Die Stellung der Kafirsprachen. In Irano-Dardica, by Georg Morgenstierne. Pp. 327-344. Wiesbaden: Ludwig Reichert. [P. 332: on Prasun lt daughter in connection with Sanskrit.] HAVE

Parkes, Peter. HAVE 2001. Alternative Social Structures and Foster Relations in the Hindu Kush: Milk Kinship Allegiance in Former Mountain Kingdoms of Northern Pakistan. Comparative Studies in Society and History 43 (1): 4-36. Robertson, George S. HAVE 1896. The Kafirs of Hindu-Kush. London: Lawrence & Bullen. [Sporadically on clans; p. 213ff: ritual kinship.] Snoy, Peter. 1962. Die Kafiren. Formen der Wirtschaft und Geistigen Kultur. Ph.D. dissertation. Frankfurt am Main: Goethe Universitt. [Pp. 217-224: family, clan, social classes.] Strand, Richard F. HAVE 2011. Nurestani Languages. In Encyclopaedia Iranica. (Online). [Kinship possession, syncope in the terms for daughter.] Trumpp, E. 1866. ber die Sprache der sogenannten Kfirs im indischen Caucasus (Hind Ksch). Zeitschrift der Deutschen Morgenlndischen Gesellschaft 20 (1): 377-418. [Pp. 412, 414: kin terms recorded by several authors.] HAVE COMPARATIVE Klimburg, Max. 1999. The Kafirs of the Hindu Kush: Art and Society of the Waigal and Ashkun Kafirs. Vol. 1-2. Stuttgart: Steiner. [Vol. 1, pp. 61-73: sporadically on agnatic clans.] KAMVIRI Jones, Schuyler. 1967. The Political Organization of the Kam Kafirs. A Preliminary Analysis. Kobenhavn. (Historisk-Filosofiske Meddelelser udgivet af det Gongelige Danske Videnskabernes Selskab 42 (2)). [Clan structure.] Strand, Richard F. HAVE 1974. Principles of Kinship Organization among the Kom Nuristani. In Cultures of the Hindukush. Selected Papers from the Hindu-Kush Cultural Conference Held at Moesgrd 1970, edited by Karl Jettmar and Lennart Edelberg. Pp. 51-56. Wiesbaden. KATI Jettmar, Karl. 1986. The Religions of the Hindukush. Vol. 1: The Religion of the Kafirs: The PreIslamic Heritage of Afghan Nuristan. Warminster: Aris & Phillips. [Pp. 29-31: Kati kinship and social organization.] WAIGALI Degener, Almuth.

1998. Die Sprache von Nisheygram im Afghanischen Hindukusch. Wiesbaden: Harrassowitz. [A Waigali village; pp. 201-202: possession of kin terms.] Katz, David J. 1982. Kafir to Afghan: Religious Conversion, Political Incorporation and Ethnicity in the Vaygal Valley, Nuristan. Ph.D. dissertation. University of California, Los Angeles. [Pp. 85-118: kinship and social structure.] IRANIAN ANCIENT Bartholomae, Christian. HAVE 1886. Beitrge zur altiranischen Grammatik. IV. X. Z. brtiry, tiry. Beitrge zur Kunde der Indogermanischen Sprachen 10: 267-280. [On the metathesis in the terms for brothers son and fathers brother.] Beekes, Robert S. P. HAVE 1981. The Neuter Plural and the Vocalization of the Laryngeals in Avestan. Indo-Iranian Journal 23: 275-287. [Extensively on terms for father and daughter.] Benveniste, mile. 1951. tudes sur le vieux-perse. Bulletin de la Socit de Linguistique de Paris 47: 2151. [Pp. 21-22: on epigraphic reflexes of the IE word for daughter.] HAVE Benveniste, mile. 1966. Titres et Noms Propres en Iranien Ancien. Paris : Librairie C. Klincksieck. [Pp. 3450: MPers name for princess and Iranian terms for daughter.] HAVE Reviews: J. N. 1968 ; Miller D. 1968. Brandenstein, Wilhelm, and Manfred Mayrhofer. 1964. Handbuch des Altpersischen. Wiesbaden: Otto Harrassowitz. [P. 117: *duHi daughter (Elam.) < *duxri, MPers. dux girl.] Emmerick, R. E. 1968. Saka Grammatical Studies. London: Oxford University Press. [Pp. 343-345: rdeclension nouns, i.e. kin terms.] HAVE Review: Morgenstierne 1970. Fischer, Helmut. 1998. Randbemerkungen zur avestischen u-Epenthese. Mnchener Studien zur Sprachwissenschaft 58: 81-86. [On several kin terms.] Goodenough, Ward H. 1949. Comments on the Question of Incestuous Marriages in old Iran. American Anthropologist 51: 326-328. Herrenschmidt, Clarisse. 1987. Note sur la parent chez les Perses au dbut de lempire achmnide. In Achaemenid History. II: The Greek Sources, edited by H. Sancisi-Weerdenburg and A. Kuhrt. Pp. 53-67. Leiden: Brill. HAVE

Herrenschmidt, Clarisse. 1994. Le xwtodas ou mariage incestueux en Iran ancien. In pouser au Plus Proche: Inceste, Prohibitions et Stratgies Matrimoniales autour de la Mditerranne, edited by Pierre Bonte. Pp. 113-125. Paris: ditions de lcole des Hautes tudes en Sciences Sociales. Hoffmann, Karl, and Bernhard Forssman. 1996. Avestische Laut- und Flexionlehre. Innsbruck: Institut fr Sprachwissenschaft der Universitt Innsbruck. [Pp. 81-82: the problem of laryngeal vocalization in the words for father and daughter.] HAVE Insler, Stanley. HAVE 1971. Some Problems of Indo-European * in Avestan. Language 47 (3): 573-585. [P. 573, n. 2: on the term for father in Late Avestan and Gathic.] Leist, Burkard W. 1889. Alt-Arisches Jus Gentium. Jena: G. Fischer. Mazahri, A. 1938. La Famille Iranienne aux Temps Ant-Islamiques. Paris: Librairie Orientale et Amricaine. Meillet, Antoine. HAVE 1918. A propos du mot avestique pt. Mmoires de la Socit de Linguistique de Paris 20: 286-292. [Avestan term for father.] Ravnaes, Erling. HAVE 1981. The Development of /Interconsonantal Laryngeal in Iranian. Indo-Iranian Journal 23: 247-273. [Extensively on terms for father and daughter.] Schmidt, Gernot. 1973. Die iranischen Wrter fr Tochterund Vaterund die Reflexe des interkonsonantischen H () in den idg. Sprachen. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 87: 36-83. HAVE

Slotkin, J. S. 1947. On a Possible Lack of Incest Regulations in Old Iran. American Anthropologist 49: 612-617. Szemernyi, Oswald. 1950. Contributions to Iranian Lexicography. Journal of the American Oriental Society 70 (4): 226-236. [Pp. 235-236: on Iranian terms for grandfather] HAVE Tichy, Eva. 1985. Avestisch pitar-/ptar-. Zur Vertretung interkonsonantischer Laryngale im Indoiranischen. Mnchener Studien zur Sprachwissenschaft 45: 229-244. SCYTHIAN Zgusta, Ladislav. HAVE 1953. Zwei Skythische Gtternamen: und . Archv Orientlni 21: 270-271. MODERN GENERAL

Behnam, D., and S. Scott. 1971. Nuclear Families and Kinship Groups in Iran. Diogenes 19 (76): 115-131. Khatib-Chahidi, Jane. 1992. Milk Kinship in Shiite Islamic Iran. In The Anthropology of Breast-feeding, edited by V. Maher. Pp. 109-132. Oxford: Berg. WESTERN NORTHWESTERN BALOCHI (BALUCHI) Ferraro, Felicetta. HAVE 1988. Baluchi Kinship Terminology. Newsletter of Baluchistan Studies 5: 33-62. Ferraro, Felicetta. HAVE 1990. Household and Family: Some Ethno-Lexical Aspects in Baluchi. Newsletter of Baluchistan Studies 7: 15-28. Naples. Pastner, Carroll McC. HAVE 1981. The Negotiation of Bilateral Endogamy in the Middle Eastern Context: The Zikri Baluch Example. Journal of Anthropological Research 37 (4): 305-318. KURDISH Allison, Christi. 2001. The Yezidi Oral Tradition in Iraqi Kurdistan. Richmond: Curzon Press. [Pp. 58-59: social structure and family genealogies.] Asatrian, Garnik. HAVE 1999-2000a. Kurdish Etymologies I. 3. dmri, demri stepmother; Stiefmutter. Iran and the Caucasus 3: 209-210. Asatrian, Garnik. HAVE 1999-2000b. The Holy Brotherhood: The Yezidi Religious Institution of the Brother and the Sister of the Next World. Iran and the Caucasus 3: 79-96. Barth, Fredrik. 1953. Principles of Social Organization in Southern Kurdistan. Oslo: Brdrene Jrgensen. [Pp. 29-33: Kinship, including kin terminology; 67-77: kinship composition of groups.] HAVE Review: Masters 1955. Barth, Fredrik. HAVE 1954. Fathers Brother's Daughter Marriage in Kurdistan. Southwestern Journal of Anthropology 10: 164-171. Reprinted in: Peoples and Cultures of the Middle East: An Anthropological Reader. Vol. 1. Cultural Depth and Diversity, edited by Louise E. Sweet. Pp. 127-136. Garden City, NY: Natural History Press, 1970; Journal of Anthropological Research, 1986, 42 (3): 389-396.

Dziegiel, Leszek. 1982. Life Cycle within the Iraqi Kurd Family. Ethnologia Polona 8: 247-260. Gheitury, Amer, Yasami, Hasan, and Kristin Kazzazi. HAVE 2010. A Note on Kalhori Kinship Terms.. Iranian Studies 43 (4): 533-554. [Southern Kurdish dialect.] Hassanpour, Amir. HAVE 2001. The (Re)production of Patriarchy in the Kurdish Language. In Women of a NonState Nation. The Kurds, edited by Shahrzad Mojab. Pp. 227-263. Costa Mesa CA: MAZDA. Leach, Edmund R. 1940. Social and Economic Organization of the Rowanduz Kurds. London: London School of Economics and Political Science. (Monographs in Social Anthropology 3.) [Pp. 13-27: Social Organization, including kinship structure; 63: kin terms.] Reviews: Bacon 1941; V. M. 1941. Yalin-Heckmann, Lale. 1987. Kinship and Tribal Organization in the Province of Hakkari, Southeast Turkey. Ph.D. dissertation. London School of Economics. Yalin-Heckmann, Lale. 1989. On Kinship, Tribalism and Ethnicity in Eastern Turkey. In Ethnic Groups in the Republic of Turkey, edited by Peter A. Andrews. Pp. 622-632. Wiesbaden: Ludwig Reichert Verlag. Yalin-Heckmann, Lale. 1991. Tribe and Kinship among the Kurds. Frankfurt am Main and New York: Peter Lang. 328 P. ZAZA-GORANI DIMLI Todd, Terry L. 2002. A Grammar of Dimili, Also Known as Zaza. Stockholm: Iremet. [Pp. 38-39: special and ordinary kin terms, with grammatical analysis of direct and oblique cases, referential and vocative forms.] SOUTHWESTERN PERSIAN HAZARA Bacon, Elizabeth. 1951. The Hazara Mongols of Afghanistan: A Study in Social Organization. Ph.D. dissertation. University of California, Berkeley. Monsutti, Alessandro. 2004. Cooperation, Remittances, and Kinship among the Hazaras. Iranian Studies 37 (2): 219-240.

TAT Yar-Shater, E. 1969. Distinction of the Feminine Gender in Southern Tti. In Studia Classica et Orientalia Antonio Pagliaro Oblata. T. 3. Pp. 281-301. Roma: Instituto di Glottologia di Roma. [Also Muslim Tat. Pp. 288-289: feminine nouns denoting kin relationships and their use in genitive compounds.] WESTERN FARSI Amanolahi, Sekandar. HAVE 2003. Socio-Political Changes among the Basseri of South Iran. Iran and the Caucasus 7 (1-2): 261-277.[Pp. 268-269: patrlineal clans and subclans.] Barth, Fredrik. 1961. Nomads of South Persia: The Basseri Tribe of the Khamseh Confederacy. New York: Humanities Press; Oslo: Oslo University Press. [Pp. 29-32: kin terminology.] HAVE Reviews: Amoss 1962; Lambton 1962; Coon 1962. Karkal M. 1983. Marriage Behaviour and Demographic Transition among Parsis. In Dynamics of Population and Family Welfare, edited by K. Srinivasan and S. Mukerji. Pp. 397-410. Bombay, India: Himalaya Publishing House. Others Anderson, Jon W. 1982. Cousin Marriage in Context: Constructing Social Relations in Afghanistan. Folk 24: 7-28. Ascoli, Graziadio I. 1863. 2. nder (pers.). Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 12: 320. [Persian for step-father, father-in-law, step-son, son-in-law, mother-in-law, step-mother, kinsman.] Bailey, H. W. HAVE 1956. Armeno-Indoiranica. 3. dxoy Ruling Lady. Transactions of the Philological Society (1956): 91-94. [On an OPers form attested in an Elamite inscription and possibly related to IE daughter.] Bartholomae, Christian. HAVE 1893. Arica III. 11. Anl pt zu t; bal. tr. Indogermanische Forschungen 2: 263. [Baluchi term for fathers sister in the Indo-Iranian context.] Bateni, M. R. 1973. Kinship Terms in Persian. Anthropological Linguistics 15 (7): 324-327. HAVE

Beattie, Hugh. 1982. Kinship and Ethnicity in the Nahrin Area of Northern Afghanistan. Afghan Studies 3-4: 39-51. London. Berrenberg, Jeanne.

2003. Beyond Kinship Algebra: Values and the Riddle of Pashtun Marriage Structure. Zeitschrift fr Ethnologie 128 (2): 269-292. Bradburd, Daniel A. 1979. Kinship and Contract: The Social Organization of the Komachi of Kerman, Iran. Ph.D. dissertation. City University of New York. 293 P. Bromberger, Christian. 2005. Famille et parent dans la plaine du Giln (Iran). In Famille et Mutations Sociopolitiques, lApproche Culturaliste lpreuve, edit par Azadeh Kian-Thibaut et Marie Ladier-Fouladi. Pp. 125-142. Paris: Editions de la Maison des Sciences de lHomme. Centlivres, Pierre, and Micheline Centlivres-Demont. 1984. La socit Afghane: Structure et valeurs. In Afghanistan: La Colonisation Impossible. Pp. 57-80. Paris: ditions du Cerf. [Pp. 68-70: Marriage Alliance.] Christensen, Asger. 1982. Agnates, Affines and Allies: Patterns of Marriage among Pakhtun in Kunar, NorthEast Afghanistan. Folk 24: 29-63. Digard, Jean-Pierre. 1987. Jeux de structures. Segmentarit et pouvoir chez les nomades Baxtyri dIran. LHomme 27: 12-53. Duchesne-Guillemin, J. 1946. Pers. dz jeune fille, vierge. Le Muson 59 (1-4): 571-575. (Mlanges L. Th. Lefort.) [In connection with the IE word for daughter.] Dupree, Louis. 1984. Tribal Warfare in Afganistan and Pakistan: A Reflection of the Segmentary Lineage System. In Islam in Tribal Societies: From Atlas to the Indus, edited by Akbar S. Ahmed and David M. Hart. Pp. 266-286. London, etc.: Routledge & Kegan Paul. Ferdinand, Klaus. 1982. Marriage among Pakhtun Nomads of Eastern Afghanistan. Folk 24: 65-87. Gershevitch, Ilya. HAVE 1973. Genealogical Descent in Iranian. Bulletin of the Iranian Culture Fioundation 1: 7186. Harmatta, J. 1971. Sino-Iranica. Acta Antiqua Academiae Scientiarum Hungaricae 19: 113-143. [Pp. 129-130: on OPers du-uk-i-i princess in relation to IE daughter.] HAVE Henning, W. B. HAVE 1964. The Survival of an Ancient Term. In Indo-Iranica. Mlanges Prsents Georg Morgenstierne lOccasion de son Soixante-Dixime Anniversaire. Pp. 95-97. Wiesbaden: Otto Harrassowitz. [On WestIran vesita husbands sister.] Hbschmann, Heinrich. 1899. Ueber die persische Verwandtenheirath. Zeitschrift der Deutschen Morgenlndischen Gesellschaft 43: 308-312.

Khatib-Chahidi, Jane. 1992. Milk Kinship in Shiite Islamic Iran. In The Anthropology of Breast-Feeding: Natural Law or Social Construct, edited by Vanessa Maher. Pp. 109-132. Oxford: Berg. Khatib-Chahidi, Jane. 1993. Sexual Prohibitions, Shared Space and Fictive Marriages in Shiite Iran. In Women and Space: Ground Rules and Social Maps, edited by Sh. Ardener. Pp. 112-134. Oxford. [P. 133: Persian kinship terminology.] Kisliakov, N. A. 1936. Sledy Pervobytvogo Kommunizma u Gornyh Tadjikov Vakhio-Bolo. (Trudy Instituta Antropologii, Etnografii i Arheologii 10). Moscow and Leningrad: Academy of Sciences Press. [Pp. 124-156: kinship system and terminology.] HAVE Lders, Heinrich. HAVE 1920. Pali dht. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 49: 236-250. [A diminutive of the IE term for daughter in an Indo-Aryan context.] Reprinted in: Philologica Indica: Ausgewhlte Kleine Schriften von Heinrich Lders. Ss. 497-509. Gttingen: Vandenhoeck & Ruprecht, 1940. Meillet, Antoine. HAVE 1929. Compte-Rendu: Georg Morgenstierne. Indo-Iranian Frontier Languages, Vol. 1. Parachi and Ormuri. Oslo, 1929. Bulletin de la Socit de Linguistique de Paris 30 (2): 89-91. [Phonetic irregularities in IE affinal terms.] Morgenstierne, Georg. 1927. An Etymological Dictionary of Pashto. Oslo: Kommisjon Hos Jacob Dybwad. Morgenstierne, Georg. 1929. Indo-Iranian Frontier Languages. Vol. 1. Parachi and Ormuri. Oslo: Aschenhoug. Morgenstierne, Georg. 1932. Notes on Balochi Etymology. Norsk Tidsskrift for Sprogvidenskap 5: 37-53. [Pp. 43-44, 48, 52: on kin terms.] Morgenstierne, Georg. 1938. Indo-Iranian Frontier Languages. Vol. 2. Iranian Pamir Languages (YidghaMunji, Sanglechi-Ishkashmi amd Wakhi). Oslo: Aschenhoug. Morgenstierne, Georg. 1962. Feminine Nouns in -a in Western Iranian Dialects. In A Locusts Leg: Studies in Honour of S. H. Taqizadeh. Pp. 203-208. London: Percy Lund, Humphreys. [P. 205: kin terms.] HAVE Morgenstierne, Georg. 1974. An Etymological Vocabulary of the Shughni Group. Weisbaden: Ludwig Reichert. Najmabadi, Schahnaz R. 1975. Die iravand in West Lorestan, mit Besonderer Bercksichtung des Verwandtschaftssystems. Ph.D. dissertation. Heidelberg. Pastner, Carroll M.

1978. Kinship Terminology and Feudal versus Tribal Orientations in Baluch Social Organization: A Comparative View. In The Nomadic Alternative: Modes and Models of Interaction in the African-Asian Deserts and Steppes, edited by Wolfgang Weissleder. Pp. 261-274. The Hague: Mouton. Pehrson, Robert N. 1966. The Social Organization of the Marri Baluch. Compiled and analyzed by Fredrik Barth. Chicago: Aldine. (Viking Fund Publications in Anthropology 43.) [Pp. 33-70: kinship and marriage, including terminology.] Reviews: Madan 1967; Shapiro W. 1967; Dupree 1968. Perrin, J.-M. 1964. LAfghon, dialecte Indo-Aryen parl au Turkestan. Bulletin de lcle Franaise dExtrme-Orient 52 (1): 173-181. [Pp. 178-180: kin terminology (after a Russian publication: Oranskii, I. M. 1956. Indoiazychnaia etnograficheskaia gruppa afgon v Srednei Azii. Sovetskaia etnografia 2: 117-124)] HAVE Perry, John R. 2005. A Tajik Persian Reference Grammar. Leiden and Boston: Brill. [Pp. 477-478: kin terms as forms of address.] Pisarchik, A. K. HAVE 1949. Terminy obrascheniia lo i ro v shugnano-rushanskoi gruppe iazykov v vekhoviah Piandja (Amu-Dari). Izvestiia Tadzhikskogo Filiala Akademii Nauk SSSR 15: 59-67. Pisarchik, A. K. HAVE 1953. O nekotoryh terminah rodstva u tadjikov. In Sbornik Statei po Istorii i Filologii Srednei Azii, posviaschennyi 80-letiiu so dnia rozhdeniia A. A. Semenova. (Trudy Instituta Istorii, Arheologii i Etnografii Akademii Nauk Tadjikskoi SSR 17). Pp. 177-184. Stalinabad: Tadjik Academy of Sciences Press. Reznik, D. G. HAVE 1957. Materialy k terminologii rodstva tadzhikov (Soobschenie I. Shugnanskie I rushanskie terminy rodstva tadzhikov Pamira). Uchenye Zapiski Kuliabskogo Gosudarstvennogo Pedagogicheskogo Instituta 3: 193-220. Reznik, D. G. HAVE 1958. Materialy k terminologii rodstva tadzhikov (Materialy k terminologii rodstva tadjikov, Soobschenie II). Uchenye Zapiski Kuliabskogo Gosudarstvennogo Pedagogicheskogo Instituta 4: 287-310. Rzehak, Lutz. 1995. Menschen des Rckens-Menschen des Baluches: Sprache und Wirklichkeit im Verwandtschaftssystem der Belutschen. In Iran und Turfan. Beitrge Berliner Wissenschaftler, Werner Sundermann zum 60. Geburtstag Gewidmet, edited by Christiane Reck, Christine Reck, and Peter Zieme. Pp. 207-229. Wiesbaden: Harrassowitz. Saadat, Mostafa. 2007. Consanguineous Marriages in Iranian Folktales. Community Genetics 10 (1): 3840. Salzer, Richard B.

1974. Social Organization of a Nomadic Pastoral Nobility in Southern Iran: the Kashkuli Kuchek Tribe of the Qashqai. Ph.D. dissertation. University of California, Berkeley. [Pp. 138-188: lineage segmentation, marriage, residence, family cycle.] Skld, Hannes. 1936. Materialen zu den Iranischen Pamirsprachen. Lund: C. W. K. Gleerup. [P. 172-173: Shugni basic kin terms.] Spooner, Brian J. 1965. Kinship and Marriage in Eastern Persia. Sociologus 15 (1): 22-31. Spooner, Brian J. 1966. Iranian Kinship and Marriage. Iran 4: 51-59. Tapper, Nancy. 1991. Bartered Brides: Politics, Gender and Marriage in an Afghan Tribal Society. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. [Durrani, a dialect of Northern Pashto.] Reviews: Afshar 1992; Donnan 1992; Mills 1994. Tomaschek, Wilhelm. 1880. Centralasiatische Studien. II. Die Pamir-Dialekte. Sitzungsberichte der Philosophisch-Historischen Classe der Kaiserlichen Akademie der Wissenschaften 96 913): 735-900. Wien. [Pp. 772-776: kin terms.] HAVE Zadran, Alef-Shah. 1980. Kinship, Family and Kinship Terminology. Afghanistan: Historical and Cultural Quarterly 33 (2): 45-68. Kabul. OSSETIAN Benveniste, mile. 1956. tudes sur la phonetique et ltymologie de lOssete. Bulletin de la Socit de Linguistique de Paris 52 (1): 6-59. [Pp. 18-19: etymology and discussion of Osset aefsn belle-mere, maitresse de maison < *abi-ainii-, Avest aibi-ina habitant de la maison.] Bielmeier, Roland. HAVE 1989. Sarmatisch, Alanisch, Jassisch und Altossetisch. In Compendium Linguarum Iranicarum, herausgegeben von Rdiger Schmitt. Ss. 236-245. Wiesbaden: Ludwig Reichert. [Pp. 240, 242: Iranian kin terms attested in Sarmatian personal names.] Cheung, Johnny. 2000. Some Remarks on Gemination in Ossetic. The Ossetic Reflexes of PIr. intervocalic *-Cy-. In Indoarisch, Iranisch und die Indogermanistik. Arbeitstagung der Indogermanischen Gesellschaft vom 2. bis 5. Oktober 1997 in Erlangen, herausgegeben von Bernhard Forssman und Robert Plath. Ss. 69-74. Wiesbaden: Reichert. [Pp. 70: gemination in kin terms plurals fiddaeltae, maddaeltae, aervaddaeltae.] Dareste, R. 1887. Review of Sovremennyi obychai i drevnii zakon: Obychnoe pravo osetin v istorikosravnitelnom osveshchenii, par Maxime Kovalevski. Journal des Savants March: 164177; May: 279-294. [Pp. 283: marriage; 284-285: patriarchal family, adoption, kin classification; 288-289: on the replacement of gens by the state.] HAVE

Hamp. Eric. HAVE 2001. Diverse Indo-Iranian Etymological Notes. Ossetic syl / sil Female. Journal of the American Oriental Society 121 (1): 89-90. [A follow-up to Abaevs etymology from *stri-.] Hbschmann, Heinrich. 1887. Etymologie und Lautlehre der Ossetischen Sprache. Strassburg. [Pp. 107-108: basic kin terms, including Dig. nostae daughter-in-law < *nvostae.] Kaloev, B. A. 1979. M. M. Kovalevskii i ego issledovaniia gorskikh narodov Kavkaza. M.: Nauka. [Pp. 69-96: Ossetian customary law in Kovalevskiis writings; 166: Ossetian kin terms as recorded by Kovalevskii.] Kovalewsky, Maxime. 1893. Coutume Contemporaine et Loi Ancienne. Droit Coutumier Osstien, clair par lHistoire Compare. Paris: L. Larose. [Pp. 207-232: Kinship system and laws of inheritance.] See Dareste 1887 for a review of the Russian original. Miller, Wsewolod. 1903. Die Sprache der Osseten. In Grundriss der Iranischen Philologie, herausgegeben von Wilhelm Geiger und Ernst Kuhn. Bd. 1. Anhang. Ss. 1-111. Strassburg: Karl J. Trbner. [Pp. 41-42: complex suffixes al + ta of kin terms.] HAVE Miller, Wsewolod. 1907. Beitrge zur ossetischen Etymologie. Indogermanische Forschungen 21: 323-334. [P. 331, 332-333: some kin terms.] HAVE Thordarson, Fridrik. 1973. Ossetic and Caucasian Stray Notes. Norsk Tidsskrift for Sprogvidenskap 27 (1): 85-97. [P. 90: on names derived from kin terms in Scythian inscriptions.] Thordarson, Fridrik. HAVE 1989. Ossetic. In Compendium Linguarum Iranicarum, herausgegeben von Rdiger Schmitt. Ss. 456-479. Wiesbaden: Ludwig Reichert. [Pp. 469, 478: on kin terms.] MESSAPIC Blumenthal, Albrecht von. 1936. Zur Interpretation der messapischen Inschriften. Indogermanische Forschungen 54: 81-113. [Pp. 112-113: on do as a possible reflection of IE *dhugHter daughter.] HAVE Haas, Otto. HAVE 1962. Messapische Studien. Inschriften mit Kommentar, Skizze einer Laut- und Formenlehre. Heidelberg: Carl Winter. [Pp. 142-144: Words for Daughter and Son.] Pisani, Vittore. 1959. Messapisch bilia lat. filia und eine vermeintlich messapische Inschrift. Indogermanische Forschungen 64: 169-171. Simone, Carlo de. HAVE

1958. Una nuova iscrizione messapica proveniente da Sepino. Indogermanische Forschungen 63: 253-272. [Pp. 261-272: on bilia daughter.] HAVE Stier, G. 1857. Zur Erklrung der Messapischen Inschriften. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 6: 142-150. [Pp. 147-148: on Bilias daughter.] Whatmough, Joshua. 1931. The Osi of Tacitus Germanic or Illyrian? Harvard Studies in Classical Philology 42: 139-155. [P. 152: on bilia in connection with flia and the reflection of dh in Messapic.] PHRYGIAN Haas, Otto. HAVE 1966. Die Phrygischen Sprachdenkmler. Sophia: Academie Bulgare des Sciences. (Linguistique Balkanique 10.) [Pp. 103, 112, 161, 208, 211: attested forms of Phryg kin terms.] Neumann, Gnther. HAVE 1987. Zur Verwandtschaftsbezeichnung *. Glotta 65: 33-37. [A controversial word found among Greek inscriptions in Asia Minor, which is often attributed to Phrygian.] Solmsen, Felix. 1897. Zum Phrygischen. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 34: 36-68. [Pp. 39, 48: on Phryg gelaros, gallaros and IE terms for husbands sister.] HAVE ROMANCE SOUTHERN CORSICAN Anonymous. 1893. The Corsican Clan. New York Times. December 10. HAVE

Jaffe, Alexandra M. 1999. Ideologies in Action: Language Politics on Corsica. Berlin: Mouton & Walter de Gruyter. [Pp. 46-52: Kinship and the Clan.] Reviews: Timm 2000; Millar 2002. Lenclud, G. 1986. De bas en haut, de haut en bas. Le systme des clans en Corse in ltat en perspective. Etudes Rurales 101-102: 137-173. Olivesi, Claude. 1983. Le systme politique Corse: Le clan. Cuntrasti 1: 13-24. Orsoni, Claude. 1990. Clanisme et racisme: Hypothse sur les relations inter-communaires en Corse. Peuples Mditerranens 51: 191-201. Ravis-Giordani, Georges.

1983. Bergers Corses: Les Communauts Villageoises du Niolu. Edisud, Aix. [Extensively on kinship, marriage, feuding, ritual kinship and endogamy.] Revised edition: Ajaccio: Albiana-Parc Naturel Rgional de Corse, 2001. Review: Augustins 2005. Wilson, Stephen. 1988. Feuding, Conflict, and Banditry in Nineteenth-Century Corsica. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. [Kinship, affinity, endogamy and feuding.] Reviews: Kertzer 1990; Petrusewicz 1990; Reece 1990. ITALIC Hamp, Eric. 1971. Fils et fille en italique: Nouvelle contribution. Bulletin de la Socit de Linguistique de Paris 66 (1): 213-227. Lejeune, Michel. HAVE 1968. Fils et fille dans les langues de lItalie ancienne. Bulletin de la Socit de Linguistique de Paris 62 (1): 67-86. Mastrelli, Carlo A. HAVE 1980. Un falso arcaismo: lat.-fal. uxor. pel. usur. Archivio Glottologico Italiano 65: 1418. FALISCAN Giacomelli, G. 1963. La Lingua Falisca. Firenze: L.S. Olschki. [P. 155: pp. 155ff: the structure of onomastic formula, including kin terms such as mater and filios; 259: usur = Lat uxor wife.] LATIN COLLECTIONS Andreau, Jean, and Hinnerk Bruhns. (eds.) 1990. Parent et Stratgies Familiales dans lAntiquit Romaine. Actes de la Table Ronde des 2-4 Octobre 1986, Paris, Maison de Sciences de lHomme. Roma: Ecole Franaise de Rome. Review: Parkin T. 1994. La Definizione Essenziale Giuridica del Matrimonio: Atti del Colloquio RomanisticoCanonistico (13-16 marzo 1979). Roma: Libreria Editrice della Pontificia Universit Lateranense, 1980. 175 P. Dixon, Suzanne. (ed.) 2001. Childhood, Class, and Kin in the Roman World. London and New York: Routledge. Reviews: Golden 2002; Hope 2002; Treggiari 2002.

Franciosi, Gennaro. (ed.) 1984. Ricerche sulla Organizzazione Gentilizia Romana. Napoli: Jovene. Kertzer, David I., and Richard P. Saller. (eds.) 1991. The Family in Italy from Antiquity to the Present. New Haven: Yale University Press. Reviews: Bryant 1993; Ciacci 1993; Musgrave 1993; Parkin T. 1994; Wiedemann 1998. Rawson, Beryl. (ed.) 1986. The Family in Ancient Rome: New Perspectives. Ithaca: Cornell University Press. Reviews: Pomeroy 1987; Wiedemann 1987; Saller 1988. Rawson, Beryl. (ed.) 1991. Marriage, Divorce and Children in Ancient Rome. Oxford and Canberra: Clarendon Press/Humanities Research Centre. Reviews: Gardner 1992; Parkin T. 1994. Volterra, Edoardo. 1991. Scritti Giuridici: Famiglia e Successioni. T. 1-3. Napoli: Jovene. GENERAL Adams, James N. HAVE 1972. Latin Words for Woman and Wife. Glotta 50: 234-255. [femina, coniux, uxor.] Aebischer, Paul. HAVE 1937. Litalien prlitteraire a-t-il dit germano et germana pour frre et soeur ? tude de stratigraphie linguistique. In Festschrift Karl Jaberg zugeeignet zur Feier seines 60. Geburtstages und zur Vollendung des 60. Semesters seines Akademischen Lehramtesm 24. April 1937. Pp. 211-239. Halle-Saale: Max Niemeyer. Alfs, Gerd. 1950. Adoptionen in der Zeit der Rmischen Republik bis auf die des Caesar Octavianus. Ph.D. dissertation. Universitt Koln. Alinei, Mario. 1983. Onomasiologia strutturale ed etimologia: il caso di barba zio e amita zia. In Linguistica e Dialettologia Veneta: Studi Offerti a Manlio Cortelazzo dai Colleghi Stranieri, a cura di Gnter Holtus e Michael Metzeltin. Pp. 115-131. Tbingen: Narr. Ambrosini, Riccardo. 1962. Etimologia di lat. uxor. Studi e Saggi Linguistici 2: 23-32. HAVE

Andr, Jacques. 1968. Le nom du collatral au cinquime degree. Revue de Philologie 42 (1): 42-48. Andr, Jacques. 1978. Les Mots Redoublement en Latin. Paris: Editions Klincksieck. [On reduplicated kin terms sporadically.] Review: Messing 1981.

Andreau, Jean. 1990. Activit financire et liens de parent en Italie Romaine. In Parent et Stratgies Familiales dans lAntiquit Romaine, edited by Jean Andreau and Hinnerk Bruhns. Pp. 501-526. Roma: Ecole Franaise de Rome. Arjava, Antti. 1988. Paternal Power in Late Antiquity. Journal of Roman Studies 88: 147-165. HAVE

Ascoli, Graziadio I. 1864. Uxor (vaa, vacca). Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 13: 157-160. Augustins, Georges. 1985. Parent et maisonne Rome, un point de vue sur lorigine du testament. LEthnographie 81 (1): 85-96. Augustins, Georges. 1990. Groupe de parent ou principe de lgitimit. In Parent et Stratgies Familiales dans lAntiquit Romaine, edited by Jean Andreau and Hinnerk Bruhns. Pp. 611-618. Roma: Ecole Franaise de Rome. Bakkum G. C. L. M. 2009a. The Latin Dialect of the Ager Faliscus: 150 Years of Scholarship. Ph.D. dissertation. Amsterdam University: Faculty of Humanities. [Pp. 177-212: kin terms discussed in the Lexical Material section.] Bakkum G. C. L. M. 2009b. The Latin Dialect of the Ager Faliscus: 150 Years of Scholarship. Ph.D. dissertation. Amsterdam: Amsterdam University Press. Bauman, R. 1984-1985. Family Law and Roman Politics. In Sodalitas: Scritti in Onore di Antonio Guarino. T. 3. Pp. 1283-1330. Napoli: Jovene. Bnabou, Marcel. 1990. Pratique matrimoniale et representation philosophique: Le crpiscule des strategies? In Parent et Stratgies Familiales dans lAntiquit Romaine, edited by Jean Andreau and Hinnerk Bruhns. Pp. 123-137. Roma: Ecole Franaise de Rome. Bettini, Maurizio. 1984. Pater, avunculus, avus nella cultura romana pi arcaica. Athenaeum 62 (3-4): 468491. Reprinted in: Sodalitas: Scritti in Onore di Antonio Guarino, a cura di Vincenzo Giuffr. T. 2. Pp. 855-880. Napoli: Jovene, 1984. Bettini, Maurizio. 1986. Antropologia e Cultura Romana: Parentela, Tempo, Immagini dellAnima. Rome: La Nuova Italia Scientifica. Reviews: Barton 1988; Douglas 1988. English translation: Anthropology and Roman Culture: Kinship, Time, Images of the Soul. Translated by John Van Sickle. Baltimore: John Hopkins University Press, 1991.

Reviews: Pollard 1992; Treggiari 1993. German translation: Familie und Verwandtschaft im Antiken Rom. Frankfurt am Main and New York: Campus. 256 P. Bettini, Maurizio. 1988. Il divieto fino al sesto grado incluso nel matrimonio romano. Athenaeum 66: 6998. Reprinted in: Parent et Stratgies Familiales dans lAntiquit Romaine, edited by Jean Andreau and Hinnerk Bruhns. Pp. 27-49. Roma: Ecole Franaise de Rome, 1990. Bettini, Maurizio. 1990. Heroides 8,42 e i gradi di parentela in Ovidio. Rivista di Filologia e dIstruzione Classica 18: 418-429. Bettini, Maurizio. 1991a. Il sistema della parentela e la struttura della famiglia. In Storia e Civilt dei Romani. Il Potere e lEsercito, edited by S. Settis. Pp. 66-73. Milano: Electa. Bettini, Maurizio. 1991b. E tolgono per moglie la cugina. In Il matrimonio e la Parentela, by J.G. Frazer. Translated into Italian by Milano Il Saggiatore. Pp. 244-265. Bettini, Maurizio. 1992. Aspetti e problemi della parentela Romana. In Actes du Congrs de la Federation Internationale des tudes Classiques, Pisa 1989. Studi Italiani di Filologia Classica 10: 1168 - 1174. Bettini, Maurizio. HAVE 1994. De la terminologie romaine des cousins. In pouser au Plus Proche: Inceste, Prohibitions et Stratgies Matrimoniales autour de la Mditerranne, edited by Pierre Bonte. Pp. 221-239. Paris: ditions de lcole des Hautes tudes en Sciences Sociales. Bettini, Maurizio, and L. Greco. 1983. Meccanismi retorici e paradigmi culturali: Lo statuto antropologico di figlio/ servo/ animale domestico nella cultura romana arcaica e in quella della Sardegna tradizionale. In Retorica e Classi Sociali. Atti del IX Convegno di Studi, Bressanone 1981. Pp. 39-52. Padova: Centro Stampa di Palazzo Maldura. Bierkan, Andrew T., Charles P. Sherman, and mile Stocquart. 1907. Marriage in Roman Law. Yale Law Journal 16 (5): 303-327. HAVE

Bodel, John. 2008. Ciceros Minerva, Penates, and the Mother of the Lares: An Outline of Roman Domestic Religion In Household and Family Religion in Antiquity, edited by John P. Bodel, and Saul M. Olyan. Pp. 248-275. Malden, MA; Oxford: Blackwell. Boemer, F. 1987. Wie ist Augustus mit Vesta verwandt. Gymnasium 94: 525-528. Bonfante, Guiliano. HAVE

1981. PUER = FILIUS, FILIA. La Parola del Passato: Revista di Studi Antichi 200: 312314. Botsford, G. W. 1907. Some Problems Connected with the Roman Gens. Political Science Quarterly 22: 663-692. Bradley, Keith R. 1991. Discovering the Roman Family. Oxford: Oxford University Press. Reviews: Saller 1992; Dixon S. 1993; McGinn 1993; Parkin T. 1994; Wiedemann 1998. Bral, Michel. HAVE 1889a. tymologies. Noverca la belle-mre. Mmoires de la Socit de Linguistique de Paris 6: 341. [Latin for stepmother.] Bral, Michel. HAVE 1889b. Notes tymologiques. 1. Atavus. Mmoires de la Socit de Linguistique de Paris 7: 447. Bruhns, Hinnerk. 1990. Parent et alliances politiques la fin de la Rpublique Romaine. In Parent et Stratgies Familiales dans lAntiquit Romaine, edited by Jean Andreau and Hinnerk Bruhns. Pp. 571-594. Roma: Ecole Franaise de Rome. Bchner, Karl. 1955. Tacitus und Plinius ber Adoption des rmischen Kaisers (Das Verhltnis von tacitus hist. I. 15-16 zu Plinius Panegyricus 7-8). Rheinische Museum fr Philologie 98: 289-312. Buckland, W.W. 1930. Diligens paterfamilias. In Studi in Onore di Pietro Bonfante, a cura de E. Albertario, P. Ciapessoni e P. De Fransisci. Pp. 85-108. Milano: Fratelli Treves. Burnand, Yves. 1990. Les alliances matrimoniales des snateurs et chevaliers Gallo-Romains. In Parent et Stratgies Familiales dans lAntiquit Romaine, edited by Jean Andreau and Hinnerk Bruhns. Pp. 295-309. Roma: Ecole Franaise de Rome. Bury, John B. 1888. Stritauos. Classical Review 2 (1-2): 43. HAVE

Bush, Archie C. HAVE 1970. Roman Collateral Kinship Terminology. Ph.D. dissertation. State University of New York at Buffalo. 332 P. Bush, Archie C. 1971. Latin Kinship Extensions: An Interpretation of the Data. Ethnology 10: 409-432. Bush, Archie C. HAVE 1972a. Parents Cousin and Cousins Child. American Journal of Philology 93 (1972): 568-576. Bush, Archie C. HAVE

1972b. Remote Uncles and Remote Aunts as Defined in the Sententiae Receptae Paulo. Transactions and Proceedings of the American Philological Association 103: 3947. Bush, Archie C. 1972-1973. Consobrinus and Cousin. Classical Journal 68 (2): 161-165. Bush, Archie C. 1987. Nepos Again. Journal of Indo-European Studies 15 (3-4): 285-296. Bush, Archie C., and Joseph J. McHugh. 1975. Patterns of Roman Marriage. Ethnology 14 (1): 25-46. Butler, Jonathan L. 1969. The Latin Derivational Suffixes -INUS, -INA, -INUS, and -INEUS: Their Origins and Romance Descendants. Ph.D. dissertation. University of California, Berkeley. Butler, Jonathan L. 1971. Latin -nus, -na, -inus and -ineus, from Proto-Indo-European to the Romance Languages. Berkeley: University of California Press. (University of California Publications in Linguistics 68.) [Includes derivations from kin terms.] Cantarella, E. 2003. Fathers and Sons in Rome. Classical World 96 (3): 281-298. Clemente, Guido. 1990. Tradizioni familiari e prassi politica nella repubblica romana: Tra mos maiorum e individualismo. In Parent et Stratgies Familiales dans lAntiquit Romaine, edited by Jean Andreau and Hinnerk Bruhns. Pp. 595-608. Roma: Ecole Franaise de Rome. Conway, Seymour R. 1893. On the Change of d to l in Italic (lacrima, levir, lingua etc. Mod. Italian cicala, caluco et.). Indogermanische Forschungen 2: 157-167. [P. 165: on levir husbands brother.] HAVE Corbett, P. E. 1930. The Roman Law of Marriage. Oxford: Clarendon Press. Reviews: A. H. S. 1930; Volterra 1930; Duff P. 1931; Lawson 1932. Corbier, Mireille. 1990. Les comportements familiaux de laristocratie romaine (IIe sicle av. J.-C. IIIe ap. J.-C.). In Parent et Stratgies Familiales dans lAntiquit Romaine, edited by Jean Andreau and Hinnerk Bruhns. Pp. 226-249. Roma: Ecole Franaise de Rome. Corbier, Mireille. 1990. Construire sa parent Rome. Revue Historique 575: 3-36. Corbier, Mireille. 1991a. Constructing Kinship in Rome: Marriage and Divorce, Filiation and Adoption. In The Family in Italy from Antiquity to the Present, edited by D. Kertzer and R. Saller. Pp. 127-144. New Haven: Yale University Press. HAVE

Corbier, Mireille. 1991b. La descendance dHortensius et de Marcia. Mlanges dArchologie et dHistoire de lcole Franaise de Rome 103 (2): 655-701. Corbier, Mireille. 1991. Divorce and Adoption as Roman Familial Strategies. In Marriage, Divorce and Children in Ancient Rome, edited by Beryl Rawson. Pp. 47-78. Oxford: Clarendon Press. Corbier, M. 1998. pigraphie et parent. In Epigraphie et Histoire: Acquis et Problmes (Actes du Congrs de la Socit des Professeurs dHistoire Ancienne, Lyon-Chambry, 21-23 Mai 1993), edited by Y.Le Bohec and Y. Roman. Pp. 101152. Lyon: De Boccard, 1998. Corbier, Mireille. 1999. La petite enfance Rome: Lois, normes, pratiques individuelles et collectives. Annales 54: 1257-1290. Corbier, Mireille. 2001. Solidarit entre les gnrations et scurit du cycle de vie: La socit romaine (IIe sicle avant J.-C. IIIe sicle aprs J.-C.). In Les Solidarits: Le Lien Social dans Tous ses tats, edited by P. Guillaume. Pp. 103-123. Bordeaux: Maison des Sciences de lHomme dAquitaine. Cornil, Georges. 1897. Contribution ltude de la patria potestas. Nouvelle Revue Historique de Droit Francais et tranger 21: 416-485. Review: Durkheim 1899b. Crook, John A. 1967. Patria Potestas. Classical Quarterly 17: 113-122. Crook, John A. 1990. His and Hers: What Degree of Financial Responsibility Did Husband and Wife Have for the Matrimonial Home and Their Life in Common, in a Roman Marriage? In Parent et Stratgies Familiales dans lAntiquit Romaine, edited by Jean Andreau and Hinnerk Bruhns. Pp. 153-172. Roma: Ecole Franaise de Rome. Dalla, D. 1988. Aspetti della patria potest e deo rapporti tra genitori e figli nellepoca postclassical. In Atti dellAccademia Romanistica Costantiniana: VII Convegno Internazionale: 89-109. Deman, Albert. HAVE 1981. Le terme de parent germanique svecerio/socerio dans les inscriptions latines. Antiquit Classique 50: 198-208. [Cross-listed in GERMANIC.] De Martino Francesco. 1953. La gens, lo stato e le classi in Roma antica. In Studi in Onore di Vincenzo Arangio-Ruiz nel XLV Anno del suo Insegnamento. T. 4. Pp. 25-49. Napoli: Jovene. Reprinted in: Diritto e Societa nell'Antica Roma, by Francesco De Martino. T. 1. Pp. 5174. Roma: Editori Riuniti, 1979.

Derouet, Bernard. 1990. Laristocratie romaine donne-t-elle limage dun systme maisons? In Parent et Stratgies Familiales dans lAntiquit Romaine, edited by Jean Andreau and Hinnerk Bruhns. Pp. 271-283. Roma: Ecole Franaise de Rome. Devoto, Giacomo. 1940. Storia della Lingua di Roma. Bologna: L. Cappelli. [P. 11: on the etymology of Lat. uxor wife.] DeWitt, Norman W. 1935-1936. Semantic Notes on Latin Words. Classical Journal 31: 505-506. [Interpretation of Lat. nepos grandson, nephew and avunculus mother's brother.] Dickey, Eleanor. 2002. Latin Forms of Address: From Plautus to Apuleius. Oxford: Oxford University Press. [Pp. 110-128: Kinship terms.] Review: Katz 2003. Dixon, Suzanne. 1985. The Marriage Alliance in the Roman Elite. Journal of Family History 10 (4): 353-378. Dixon, Suzanne. 1992. The Roman Family. Baltimore: Johns Hopkins University Press. Reviews: Gardner 1993; Parkin T. 1994. Dondin-Payre, Monique. 1990. La stratgie symbolique de la parent sous la Rpublique et lempire Romains. In Parent et Stratgies Familiales dans lAntiquit Romaine, edited by Jean Andreau and Hinnerk Bruhns. Pp. 53-76. Roma: Ecole Franaise de Rome. Dumont, Jean-Christian. 1990. Limperivm du pater familias. In Parent et Stratgies Familiales dans lAntiquit Romaine, edited by Jean Andreau and Hinnerk Bruhns. Pp. 475-495. Roma: Ecole Franaise de Rome. Durry, M. 1956. Sur le mariage romain. Autocritique et mise au point. Revue Internationale des Droits de lAntiquit, 3e Srie, 3: 227-243. Reprinted in: Revue des tudes Latines 47 (1969): 27-41. E. W. F. 1907. Note on Warren. American Journal of Philology 28: 488. [Uxor wife from *ughswesor yoke-sister, yoke-fellow, wife, from the root wegh-.] Elwyn, Sue. 1993. Interstate Kinship and Roman Foreign Policy. Transactions of the American Philological Association 123: 261-286.

Etienne, Roland. 1990. Rflexions sur quelques terrains o la cohsion familiale est mise lpreuve. In Parent et Stratgies Familiales dans lAntiquit Romaine, edited by Jean Andreau and Hinnerk Bruhns. Pp. 619-622. Roma: Ecole Franaise de Rome. Evans, John K. 1991. War, Women and Children in Ancient Rome. London: Routledge. Reviews: Jones N. 1992; Culham 1993; Parkin T. 1994. Fadda, Carlo. 1910. Diritto delle Persone e della Famiglia. Napoli: Alvano. 425 P. Fay, Edwin W. HAVE 1897. Contested Etymologies. VII. Some Cases of Haplolalia. Classical Review 11 (2): 90-94. [P. 94: etymology of Lat vitricus stepfather.] Fay, Edwin W. 1907. Etymologies. 6. vitricus. Classical Quarterly 1 (4): 282-283. Fayer, C. 1994. La Familia Romana: Aspetti Giuridici ed Antiquari. Roma: LErma di Bretschneider. Review: Gardner 1997. Franciosi, Gennaro. 1978. Clan Gentilizio e Strutture Monogamiche. Napoli: Jovene. See also Moreau 1979. Franciosi, Gennaro. 1983. La relazione avuncolare in Roma antioca (a proposito della congiura degli Aquili e dei Vitelli). In Studi in Onore di Arnaldo Biscardi. T. 4. Pp. 489-494. Milano: Istituto editoriale Cisalpino, La Goliardica. Franciosi, Gennaro. 1984a. Preesistenza della gens e nomen gentilicium. In Ricerche sulla Organizzazione Gentilizia Romana, a cura di Gennaro Franciosi. Pp. 3-33. Napoli: Jovene. Franciosi, Gennaro. 1984b. Sepolcri e riti di sepoltura delle antioche gentes. In Ricerche sulla Organizzazione Gentilizia Romana, a cura di Gennaro Franciosi. Pp. 37-80. Napoli: Jovene. Franciosi, Gennaro. 1984c. La plebe senza genti e il problema della rogatio canuleia. In Ricerche sulla Organizzazione Gentilizia Romana, a cura di Gennaro Franciosi. Pp. 121-179. Napoli: Jovene. Franciosi, Gennaro. 1988. Matrimonio, conubium e classi sociali nel V sec. A.C. In Societa e Diritto nellEpoca Decemvirale. Atti del Convegno di Diritto Romano, Copanello 3-7 giugno 1984. Pp. 147-150. Napoli: Edizioni Scientifiche Italiane. HAVE

Franciosi, Gennaro. 1989. Famiglia e Persone in Roma Antica. DallEt Arcaica al Principato. Torino: Giopichelli. Frank, Marica. 1995. The Rhetorical Uses of Family Terms in Senecas Oedipus and Phoenissae. Phoenix 49 (1): 121-130. Fraschetti, Augusto. 1990. Cognata Numina: Culti della citt e culti della famiglia del principe in epoca Augustea. In Parent et Stratgies Familiales dans lAntiquit Romaine, edited by Jean Andreau and Hinnerk Bruhns. Pp. 85-119. Roma: Ecole Franaise de Rome. Frier, Bruce W., and Thomas A. J. McGinn. 2004. A Casebook on Roman Family Law. Oxford: Oxford University Press. Review: Bradley 2005. Frisk, Hjalmar. 1938. Indogermanica. 5. anniculus. Gteborgs Hgskolas rsskrift 44: 18-20. [Diminutive kin terms are used for comparison.] HAVE

Funck, A. HAVE 1892. Was heisst die Kinder. Archiv fr Lateinische Lexicographie und Grammatik 7: 73-102. G. L. 1870. Familia. In Dictionary of Greek and Roman Antiquities, edited William Smith. Pp. 519-520. London: Murray. Gardner, Jane F., and Thomas Wiedmann. 1991. The Roman Household: A Sourcebook. London and New York: Routledge. Reviews: Currie 1992; Parkin T. 1994. Gaudemet, J. 1961. Aspetti comunitari del regime matromoniale romano. Jus 12: 450-464. Guarino, Antonio. 1939. Adfinitas. Milano: Giuffr. 110 P. Hallett, Judith P. 1984. Fathers and Daughters in Roman Society: Women and the Elite Family. Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press. Reviews: Bradley 1985; MacMullen 1985; Martin 1986; Saller 1986. Hamp, Eric P. HAVE 1982. Remnants of the Pronominal Genitive Singular -l. American Journal of Philology 103 (2): 214-216. [On Lat famul, familia.] Hamp, Eric P. HAVE

1982-1983a. On Latin Stem Alternations. 2. Latin ianitrcs. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 96 (1): 102. Hamp, Eric P. HAVE 1982-1983b. Some Italic and Celtic Correspondences. 10. Latin amita fathers sister. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 96 (1): 97. Hamp, Eric P. 1985. Latin pappa. Glotta 63: 110. Hanson, A. E. 1999. The Roman Family. In Life, Death and Entertainment in the Roman Empire, edited by D. S. Potter and D. J. Mattingly. Pp. 19-66. Ann Arbor: University of Michigan Press. Harlow, Mary. 1998. In the Name of the Father: Procreation, Paternity, and Patriarchy. In Thinking Men: Masculity and its Self-Representation in the Classical Tradition. London: Routledge. Harris, William V. 1986. The Roman Fathers Power of Life and Death. In Studies in Roman Law in Memory of A. Arthur Schiller, edited by Roger S. Bagnall and William V. Harris. Pp. 81-95. Leiden: Brill. Harrod, Samuel G. 1909. Latin Terms of Endearment and of Family Relationship: A Lexicographical Study Based on Volume VI of the Corpus Inscriptorum Latinarum. Ph.D. dissertation. Princeton University. 91 P. Review: Hodgman 1913. Hausman, A. E. 1891. Adversaria Orthographica. Classical Review 44 (5): 293-296. [Pp. 293-294: on two spellings of the Latin word for wife: uxor and uoxor.] HAVE Havet, L. 1889. Mlanges Latins. Patruus. Mmoires de la Socit de Linguistique de Paris 6: 2021. Hermann, Eduard. 1928. Lateinisch socerio. Glotta 17: 142-143. Hinard, Franois. 1990. Stratgies familiales et ruptures lpoque des guerres civiles et de la Proscription. In Parent et Stratgies Familiales dans lAntiquit Romaine, edited by Jean Andreau and Hinnerk Bruhns. Pp. 555-570. Roma: Ecole Franaise de Rome. Holper, J. J. 1996. Kin Term Usage in The Federalist: Evolutionary Foundations of Publiuss Rhetoric. Politics and the Life Sciences 15 (2): 265-272. Hopkins, Keith. 1980. Brother-Sister Marriage in Roman Egypt. Comparative Studies in Society and History 22: 203-250.

Hopkins, Keith. 1990. Seven Missing Papers. In Parent et Stratgies Familiales dans lAntiquit Romaine, edited by Jean Andreau and Hinnerk Bruhns. Pp. 623-630. Roma: Ecole Franaise de Rome. Humbert, Michel. 1990. Lindividu, ltat: Quelle stratgie pour le marriage classique? In Parent et Stratgies Familiales dans lAntiquit Romaine, edited by Jean Andreau and Hinnerk Bruhns. Pp. 173-198. Roma: Ecole Franaise de Rome. Jakobsohn, Hermann. 1911. Lat. svecerio. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachvorschung 44: 11-13. HAVE

Jung, J. H. 1982. Das Eherecht der rmischen Soldaten. Aufstieg und Niedergang der Rmischen Welt 2 (14): 303-346. Keller, Otto. 1891. Lateinische Volksetymologie und Verwandtes. Leipzig: B. G. Teubner. [Pp. 77-78: kin terms.] Kepartova, Jana. 1986. Frater in Militrinschriften Bruder oder Freund? Listy Filologick 109 (1): 11-14. Key, Thomas H. 1854. On the Derivation of son, nurus, anus, uxor, wife, pas, omnis, solus, every, all, olos. Transactions of the Philological Society 257-272. Klenze, Clemens A. K. 1828a. Das Familienrecht der Cognaten und Affinen nach Rmischem und Verwandten Rechten: Ein Versuch Rein Historischer Vergleichung im Rechte. Berlin: Nicolaischen Buchhandlung. 203 P. Klenze, Clemens A. K. 1828b. Die Cognaten und Affinen nach rmischen Rechte in Vergleichung mit anderen verwandten Rechten. Zeitschrift fr Geschichtliche Rechtswissenschaft 6 (1-2): 1-200. Koch, Hermann A. 1870. Voxor = Uxor. Jahrbcher fr Classische Philologie 16: 685-687. HAVE

Koptev, A. V. 1995. Lgislation romaine des IVe et Ve s. sur les mariages desclaves et de colons. In Esclavage et Dpendance dans lHistoriographie Sovitique Moderne, dit par M.-M. Mactoux, M.-M. et . Geny. Pp. 127-155. Besanon Paris: Universit de Besanon. Kunst, C. 1996. Adoption und Testamentadoption in der spten Republik. Klio 78: 87-104. Kurylowicz, Marek. 1984. Die justinianische Adoption. In Sodalitas: Scritti in Onore di Antonio Guarino, a cura di Vincenzo Giuffr. T. 7. Pp. 3305-3316. Napoli: Jovene, 1984. L.S.

1870. Matrimonium. In Dictionary of Greek and Roman Antiquities, edited William Smith. Pp. 735-744. London: Murray. Lacey, Walter K. 1986. Patria Potestas. In Marriage, Divorce and Children in Ancient Rome, edited by Beryl Rawson. Pp. 121-144. Oxford: Clarendon Press. Lange, Ludwig. HAVE 1876. Rmische Alterthmer. Berlin: Weidmann. [Pp. 102-259: family and clan law.] Lazzeroni, Romano. HAVE 1971. Contatti di lingue e di culture nellItalia antica: Il nome del figlio e quello dei Dioscuri. Studi e Saggi Linguistici 11: 1-21. Lefas, Alexandre. 1897. Ladoption testamentaire Rome. Nouvelle Revue Historique de Droit Franais et tranger 21: 721-763. Review: Durkheim 1899d. Lentano, Mario. 1996. Le Relazioni Difficili: Parentela e Matrimonio nella Commedia Latina. Napoli: Loffredo. 206 P. Lewis, N. 1970. On Paternal Authority in Roman Egypt. Revue Internationale des Droits de lAntiquite 17: 251-258. Lindsay, H. 1998b. Adoption and Succession in Roman Law. Newcastle Law Review 3 (1): 57-81. Lindsay, H. 2001. Adoption and Its Function in Cross-Cultural Contexts. In Childhood, Class and Kin in the Roman World, edited by S. Dixon. Pp. 190-204. London and New York: Routledge. Lobrano, Giovanni. 1984a. Il filius familius tutor in D. 1.6.9. In Sodalitas: Scritti in Onore di Antonio Guarino, a cura di Vincenzo Giuffr. T. 6. Pp.3027-3055. Napoli: Jovene, 1984. Lobrano, Giovanni. 1984b. Pater et Filius Eadem Persona: Per lo Studio della Patria Potestas. Milano: A. Giuffr. Lounsbury, Floyd. HAVE 1967. The Structure of the Latin Kinship System and Its Relation to Roman Social Organization. In Trudy VII Mezhdunarodnogo Kongressa Antropologicheskikh i Etnograficheskikh Nauk, Moskva, 3-10 avgusta 1964 g. T. 4. Pp. 261-270. Moscow: Nauka. Lubotsky, Alexander. 1994. Vd. vidhat. In Frh-, Mittel-, Sptindogermanisch. Akten der IX. Fachtagung der Indogermanischen Gesellschaft vom 5. bis 9. Oktober 1992 in Zurich. Ss. 201-206. Wiesbaden: Reichert. [P. 3: Lat vitricus step-father.]

Lujn Martinez, Eugenio R. HAVE 1996. Sobre la etimologa de uxor. Cuadernos de Filologa Clsica. Estudios Latinos 10: 21-28. [Etymology of the Latin term for wife.] Lungarova, Pepa, and Cenka Davidkova. 2002. Nabljudenie vrchu termini za rodstvov latinski ezik. In Ezikt: istorija i svremennost. Pp. 290-292. umen: Univ. izd. Ep. KonstantinPreslavski. Mancuso, Gaetano. HAVE 1972. Alle radici della storia del senatus. Contributo allidentificazione dei patres nellet precittadina. Annali del Seminario Giuridico della Universit di Palermo 33: 169-335. Mancuso, Gaetano. HAVE 1973. Patres minorum gentium. Annali del Seminario Giuridico della Universit di Palermo 34: 397-421. Mancuso, Gaetano. HAVE 1976. Patres conscripti. Unipotesi sulla composizione dellantico senato romano. Annali del Seminario Giuridico della Universit di Palermo 36: 253-288. Marin, Demetrio. HAVE 1960. Abba, Pater. In Hommages Lon Herrmann. Pp. 503-508. Bruxelles-Berchem: Latomus. Marouzeau, J. HAVE 1923. Sur la qualit des mots. II: filius, liberi natus, nati. Revue de Philologie 47: 6973. Marouzeau, J. 1932. Essai sur la stilistique du mot. Revue des tudes Latines 10 (2): 336-372. [Pp. 369372: on the affective difference between filius and natus.] Massa-Pairault, Franoise-Hlne. 1990. Du marriage la solidarit politique: Quelques rflexions sur le cas de Clusium Hellnistique. In Parent et Stratgies Familiales dans lAntiquit Romaine, edited by Jean Andreau and Hinnerk Bruhns. Pp. 333-380. Roma: Ecole Franaise de Rome. Maurin, J. 1975. Remarques sur la notion de puer lpoche classique. Bulletin de lAssociation Guillaume Bud 14: 221-230. Meillet, Antoine. HAVE 1895-1896. Varia. II. Lat. auonculus. Mmoires de la Socit de Linguistique de Paris 9: 141-142. [Latin terms for mothers brother.] Meillet, Antoine. 1918. Latin parens. Mmoires de la Socit de Linguistique de Paris 20: 264. Meillet, Antoine. HAVE 1926. Lat genunus. Bulletin de la Socit de Linguistique de Paris 27: 54-55. [The intersection of the notions of knee and kinship.] Meillet, Antoine. HAVE

1934. propos de Latin sodalis. In Miscelnea Scientfica e Literria Dedicada ao Doutor J. Leite de Vasconcellos. Vol. 1. Pp. 442-445. Coimbra: Impresa da Universidade. [Includes kin terms.] Mnager, L.-R. 1980. Systmes onomastiques, structures familiales et classes sociales dans le monde grco-romain. Studia et Documenta Historiae et Iuris 46: 147-235. Mette-Ditmann, A. 1991. Die Ehegesetze des Augustus: Eine Untersuchung im Rahmen der Gesellschaftspolitik des Princeps. Stuttgart: Steiner. Reviews: Gardner 1992; Parkin T. 1994. Mezger, Fritz. 1944a. Latin Dii Indigetes, Dii Novensides and the Designation of IE Kinship. American Journal of Philology 65 (4): 364-366. Mezger, Fritz. 1944b. Latin UXOR. American Journal of Philology 65: 170-171. Mezger, Fritz. 1958. Lat. indigena. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 75: 124. Moorhouse, A. C. HAVE 1951. Latin amata, amita. Classical Review 1 (1): 1-3. [Lat amita fathers sister as belonging to the house.] Moreau, Philippe. 1978a. Plutarque, Augustin, Lvi-Strauss. Prohibition de linceste et marriage preferential dans la Rome primitive. Revue Belge de Philologie et dHistoire 56: 41-54. Moreau, Philippe. HAVE 1978b. La terminologie latine et indo-europenne de la parent et le systme de parent et dalliance a Rome: Questions de methode. (A propos de G. Franciosi, Clan Gentilizio e Strutture Monogamiche. Contributo alla Storia della Familia Romana, 1978, et de O. Szemernyi, Studies in the Kinship Terminology of the Indo-European Languages, 1977.) Revue des tudes Latines 56: 41-52. See Franciosi 1978. Moreau, Philippe. HAVE 1980. De quelques termes de parent chez Tacite. In Mlanges de Littrature et dpigraphie Latines, dHistoire Ancienne et dArchologie: Hommage la Mmoire de Pierre Wuilleumier. Pp. 239-250. Paris: Belles Lettres. Moreau, Philippe. 1983. Structures de parent et dalliance Larinum daprs le Pro Cluentio. In Les Bourgeoisies Municipales Italiennes aux IIe et Ier sicles av. J.-C. Pp. 99-123. Naples: ditions de CNRS. Moreau, Philippe. HAVE

1990. Adfinitas. La parent pa alliance dans la socit romaine (Ier sicle av. J.-C. IIe sicle ap. J.-C.) In Parent et Stratgies Familiales dans lAntiquit Romaine, edited by Jean Andreau and Hinnerk Bruhns. Pp. 3-26. Roma: Ecole Franaise de Rome. Moreau, Philippe. 1994. Le mariage dans les degrs raprochs. Le dossier romain (Ier sicle av. J. C. IIIe sicle ap. J.-C.). In pouser au Plus Proche: Inceste, Prohibitions et Stratgies Matrimoniales autour de la Mditerranne, edited by Pierre Bonte. Pp. 59-78. Paris: ditions de lcole des Hautes tudes en Sciences Sociales. Mowat, R. HAVE 1868. Les noms familiers chez les Romains. Mmoires de la Socit de Linguistique de Paris 1: 293-336. [Entirely on kin terms and personal names.] Muirhead, James. HAVE 1886. Historical Introduction to the Private Law of Rome. Edinburgh: A. & C. Black. [Pp. 24-49: family organization.] Mussy, C. 1980. Une etymologie de Lat. uxor. Bulletin de la Socit de Linguistique de Paris 75 325-346. Niedermann, Max. HAVE 1902. Notes dtymologie latine. III. Genta. In Mlanges Linguistiques Offerts M. Antoine Meillet. Pp. 109-110. Paris: Librairie C. Klincksieck. [An Old Lat term for sonin-law.] Nielsen, Hanne S. 1987. Alumnus: A Term of Relation Denoting Quasi-Adoption. Classica et Mediaevalia 38: 141-188. Nony, Daniel. 1990. Ltre et/ou le paratre. In Parent et Stratgies Familiales dans lAntiquit Romaine, edited by Jean Andreau and Hinnerk Bruhns. Pp. 267-270. Roma: Ecole Franaise de Rome. North, John A. 1990. Family Strategy and Priesthood in the Late Republic. In Parent et Stratgies Familiales dans lAntiquit Romaine, edited by Jean Andreau and Hinnerk Bruhns. Pp. 527-543. Roma: Ecole Franaise de Rome. Otrbski, Jan. HAVE 1929. Origine du mot latin noverca. Eos: Commentarii Societatis Philologicae Polonorum 32: 371-376. Otto, Walter. 1903-1904. ber die lateinischen Wrter auf -ca, -cus, -cius, -x und Verwandtes. Indogermanicshe Forschungen 15: 9-53. [Pp. 15, 52: patricus, patricius and other derivations of pater father.] HAVE Pailler, Jean-Marie. 1989. Lhritage dHannibal: Mres et fils Rome aprs la mort des pres. In Actualit de lAntiquit. Pp. 55-62. Paris: CNRS.

Pailler, Jean-Marie. 1990. Les Bacchanales: Une affaires de famille. In Parent et Stratgies Familiales dans lAntiquit Romaine, edited by Jean Andreau and Hinnerk Bruhns. Pp. 77-83. Roma: Ecole Franaise de Rome. Pearce, T. E. V. 1974. The Role of the Wife as CUSTOS in Ancient Rome. Eranos 72: 16-33. Peile, John. 1887. Strtauos (Fest). Trtauos. Classical Review 1 (7): 205. Persson, P. 1909. Zur lateinischen Grammatik und Wortkunde. Indogermanische Forschungen 26 (2): 60-68. [P. 63: socer as exemplifying the rule u > e before r in unaccented open syllables.] Persson, P. 1915. Latina. I. Zur behandlung von u in unbetonter offener Silbe. Glotta 6: 87-92. [Pp. 87-88: on Lat socer father-in-law.] HAVE Petr, V. J. 1899. ber den Wechsel der Laute d und l im Lateinischen. Beitrge zur Kunde der Indogermansichen Sprachen 25: 127-158. [P. 137: on lvir.] HAVE Phillips, Jane E. 1978. Roman Mothers and the Lives of Their Adult Daughters. Helios 6 (1): 69-80. Pisani, Vittore. 1948. Nepos scialacquatore e lallungamento nel nom. sing. dei monosillabi. Atti del Sodalizio Glottologico Milanese 1 (1): 30-32. HAVE

Pisani, Vittore. HAVE 1951. UXOR. Ricerche dui morphologia indeuropea. In Miscellanea Giovanni Galbiati. Vol. 3. Pp. 1-38. Milano: U. Hoepli. Pomata, G. 1994. Legami di sangue, legami di seme. Consanguineita e agnazione del diritto romano. Quaderni Storici 86 (2). Pomeroy, Sarah B. 1976. The Relationship of the Married Woman to Her Blood Relatives in Rome. Ancient Society 7: 215-227. Puigvert i Planagum, Gemma. HAVE 1998. Rendimientos morfolgicos del sufijo ie. *-yH2: Un exemplo evidente de cohesion interna del sistema morfolgico latino. Faventia 20 (2): 79-92. [Pp. 91-92: on vocative filie son in the context of Latin morphology.] Raditsa, L. F. 1980. Augustus Legislation Concerning Marriage, Procreation, Love Affirs and Adultery. Aufstieg und Niedergang der Rmischen Welt 2 (13): 278-339. Raepsaet-Charlier, M. T.

1982. pouses et familles de magistrates dans les provinces romaines aux deux premiers sicles de lEmpire. Historia 31: 56-69. Rmy, Bernard. 1990. Le marriage des snateurs romains affects en Anatolie. In Parent et Stratgies Familiales dans lAntiquit Romaine, edited by Jean Andreau and Hinnerk Bruhns. Pp. 381-414. Roma: Ecole Franaise de Rome. Rio, Pedro del. 1939. Frater-Germanus. Emerita 7 (1-2): 1-5. Risch, Ernst. HAVE 1957. Das lteste lateinische Wort fr Sohn. In Gedenkschrift Paul Kretschmer, 2. Mai 1866 - 9. Mrz 1956. T. 2. Pp. 109-112. Wiesbaden: Otto Harrassowitz; Wien: Brder Hollinek. Rix, Helmut. 1989. Lat. patronus, matrona, colonus, pecunia. In Indogermanica Europaea. Festschrift fr Wolfgang Meid zum 60. Geburtstag am 12.11.1989, herausgegeben von Karin Heller, Oswald Panagl und Johann Tischler. Ss. 225-240. Graz. Role, R. 1981. Proprior sobrino, proprius sobrino in der romischen Rechtssprache. Zeitschrift fr Rechtsgeschichte 91: 341-365. Romano, A. 1984. Dal pater gentis ai patres dellorganizzazione cittadina. Note sul fondamento della leadership arcaica. In Ricerche sulla Organizzazione Gentilizia Romana, a cura di Gennaro Franciosi. Pp. 83-117. Napoli: Jovene. Rose, H. J. 1920. Mother-Right in Ancient Italy. Folklore 31: 93-108. Rossbach, August. 1853. Untersuchungen ber die Rmische Ehe. Stuttgart: Carl Macken. Sachers, E. 1949. Pater familias. Paulys Realencyclopedie der Classischen Altertumswissenschaft 23 (1): 2121-2157. Stuttgart: J. B. Metzler. Sachers, E. 1953. Potestas patria. Paulys Realencyclopedie der Classischen Altertumswissenschaft 18 (2): 1084-1096. Stuttgart: J. B. Metzler. Saller, Richard P. 1984. Familia, domus and the Roman Conception of the Family. Phoenix 38: 336-355. Saller, Richard P. 1986. Patria potestas and the Stereotype of the Roman Family. Continuity and Change 1: 7-22. Saller, Richard P. 1988. Pietas, Obligation and Authority in the Roman Family. In Alte Geschichte und Wissenschaftsgeschichte. Festschrift fr Karl Christ zum 65. Geburtstag, herausgegeben

von Peter Kneissl und Volker Losemann. Pp. 393-410. Darmstadt: Wissenschaftliche Buchgesellschaft. Saller, Richard P. 1994. Patriarchy, Property, and Death in the Roman Family. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Reviews: Bradley 1995; Brettell 1996; Gardner 1996. Saller, Richard P. 1997. Roman Kinship: Structure and Sentiment. In The Roman Family in Italy: Status, Sentiment, Space, edited by Beryl Rawson and P. Weaver. Pp. 7-34. Oxford and Canberra: Clarendon Press. Saller, Richard P. HAVE 1999. Pater Familias, Mater Familias, and the Gendered Semantics of the Roman Household. Classical Philology 94 (2): 182-197. Sancho, L. 1990. El matrimonio romano primitivo y el valor de la Lex inhumanissima (Cic.Rep. II, 37, 62). Revue Internationale des Droits de lAntiquite 37: 347-383. Scheid, John. HAVE 1975. Scribonia Caesaris et les Julio-Claudiens. Problmes de vocabulaire de parent. Mlanges dArche'ologie et dHistoire de lcole Francaise de Rome 87 (1): 349-375. Scheid, John. 1993. Die Parentalia fr die verstorbenen Caesaren als Modell fr den rmischen Totenkult. Klio 75: 188-201. Scherillo, G. 1931. Sul Tractatus de Gradibus Cognationum. Studi Economoci-Giuridici della Facolt di Giurisprudenza dell Universit di Cagliari 18. Schrijnen, Jos. 1914. Das sabinische l im Lateinischen. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 46: 376-380. [P. 380: Lat lvir husbands brother.] HAVE Schrijver, Peter. HAVE 1991. The Reflexes of the Proto-Indo-European Laryngeals in Latin. Amsterdam and Atlanta: Rodopi. [Pp. 21: on neps grandson; 105-108, 331-332, 415, 489, 509: on Osc fu(u)tir and Gaul duxtir daughter; 97: on Lat pater father; 97, 105-108: on Lat ianitrices wives of two brothers; 242: Lat flius son; 269, 271: on Lat lvir husbands brother; 218, 434: on Lat gener son-in-law; 131, 199: on Lat gls husbands sister.] Settipani, Christian. 2000. Continuit Gentilice et Continuit Familiale dans les Familles Snatoriales Romaines lpoque Impriale. Mythe et Ralit, Oxford: Unit for Prosopographical Research, Linacre College, University of Oxford. Shackleton Bailey, D. R. 1977. Brothers or Cousins. American Journal of Ancient History 2: 148-150. Shannon, Charles H.

1900. Etymologies of Some Latin Words of Will and Desire. Proceedings of the 32d Annual Session of the American Philological Association (July): 24-26. [Pp. 25, 26: amita fathers sister < *ame-ta as a verbal adjective of *amo I love.] Shaw, Brent D. 1984. Latin Funeral Epigraphy and Family Life in the Later Roman Empire. Historia 33: 457-497. Shaw, Brent D. 1987. The Family in Late Antiquity: The Experience of Augustine. Past and Present 115: 3-51. Shaw, Brent D., and Richard P. Saller. 1984. Close-Kin Marriage in Roman Society? Man 19 (3): 432-444. Shaw, Brent D. 1992. Explaining Incest: Brother-Sister Marriage in Graeco-Roman Egypt. Man 27: 267299. Skutsch, Franz. 1910a. Quisquilien. 5. patr, matr, fratr. Glotta 2: 156-157. Skutsch, Franz. 1910b. Quisquilien. 6. Vokativ puere und Verwandtes. Glotta 2: 157-158. Sohm, Rudolph. 1884. Institutionen des Rmischen Rechts. Leipzig: Duncker & Humblot. Translated into English as The Institutes of Roman Law, by James C. Ledlie. Oxford: Clarendon Press, 1892. [Pp. 120-122: paterfamilias; 355-486: family and inheritance.] HAVE Review: J. C. 1893. Szemernyi, Oswald. HAVE 1952. The Development of the Indo-European Mediae Aspiratae in Latin and Italic. Archivum Linguisticum 4 (1): 27-53. [P. 44: on Lat consobrinus cousin < *swesrinos and its phonetic path; contra Pisani.] Taubenschlag, R. 1916. Die patria potestas im Recht der Papyri. Zeitschrift fr Rechtsgeschichte 37: 177230. Thierfelder, Helmut. 1960. Die Geschwisterehe im Hellenistisch-Rmischen Aegypten. Mnster: Achendorff. Reviews: Rees 1961; Welles 1962. Thomas, Yan. 1980. Mariages endogamiques Rome: Patrimonie, pouvoir et parent depuis lpoque archaque. Revue Historique de Droit Franais et tranger 3: 345-382. Thomas, Yan.

1982. Droit domestique et droit politique Rome. Remarques sur la pcule et les honores des fils de famille. Mlanges dArchologie et dHistoire de lcole Franaise de Rome 94: 528-580. Thomas, Yan. 1986. Le ventre: Corpus maternel, droit paternal. In Le Genre Humain. Pp. 211-236. Paris. Thomas, Yan. 1990. Remarques sur la jurisdiction domestique Rome. In Parent et Stratgies Familiales dans lAntiquit Romaine, edited by Jean Andreau and Hinnerk Bruhns. Pp. 449-474. Roma: Ecole Franaise de Rome. Treggiari, Susan. 1991. Roman Marriage: Iusti Conjuges from the Time of Cicero to the Time of Ulpian. Oxford: Clarendon Press. Reviews: Gardner 1992; McGinn 1993b; Parkin T. 1994; Linderski 1995. Van Windekens, Albert J. 1984. Encore lat. uxor et i.-e. *ukson-. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 97: 96-98. Venning, William M. 1881. Marriage and the Condition of Married under the Roman Law. Oxford: A.T. Shrimpton & Son. 16 P. Veyne, Paul. 1968. La famille et lamour sous le Haut-Empire. Annales: Economies, Socits, Civilisations 33: 35-63. Villers, R. 1981. Le marriage envisag comme institution dtat dans le droit classique. Aufstieg und Niedergang der Rmischen Welt 2 (14): 292-293. Voci, P. 1985. Storia della patria potestas da Costantino e Guistiniano. Studia et Documenta Historiae et Iuris 51: 1-72. Voci, P. 1980. Storia della patria potestas de Augusto a Diozleziano. Iura 31: 37-100. Volterra, Edoardo. 1927. Studio sullarrha sponsalica. Rivista Italiana per le Scienze Giuridiche 2: 581670. Reprinted in: Scritti Giuridici: Famiglia e Successioni, para Edoardo Volterra. T. 1. Pp. 3-92. Napoli: Jovene, 1991. Volterra, Edoardo. 1929a. Ancora sul consenso della filiafamilias agli sponsali. Rivista Italiana per le Scienze Giuridiche 10: 3-11.

Reprinted in: Scritti Giuridici: Famiglia e Successioni, para Edoardo Volterra. T. 1. Pp. 527-537. Napoli: Jovene, 1991. Volterra, Edoardo. 1929b. La L. 3 pr. C. de int. matr. 5, 6 e il principio rite contractum matrimonium ex post facto vitiari non potest. Bullettino dellIstituto di Diritto Romano 37: 230-245. Reprinted in: Scritti Giuridici: Famiglia e Successioni, para Edoardo Volterra. T. 1. Pp. 305-314. Napoli: Jovene, 1991. Volterra, Edoardo. 1929c. Sul Consenso della filiafamilias agli Sponsali. Roma: Grafia s.a.i. Industrie Grafiche. 15 P. Reprinted in: Scritti Giuridici: Famiglia e Successioni, para Edoardo Volterra. T. 1. Pp. 291-304. Napoli: Jovene, 1991. Volterra, Edoardo. 1929d. Studio sullarrha sponsalica. II. Larrha sponsalica nella legislazione di Guistiniano. Rivista Italiana per le Scienze Giuridiche 4: 3-33. Reprinted in: Scritti Giuridici: Famiglia e Successioni, para Edoardo Volterra. T. 1. Pp. 93-124. Napoli: Jovene, 1991. Volterra, Edoardo. 1930a. In tema di accusatio adulterii. I. Laulterium della sponsa; II. Ladulterium delluxor in captivitate. In Studi in Onore Pietro Bonfante. T. 2. Pp. 109-126. Milano: Pavia. Reprinted in: Scritti Giuridici: Famiglia e Successioni, para Edoardo Volterra. T. 1. Pp. 315-328. Napoli: Jovene, 1991. Volterra, Edoardo. 1930b. Studio sullarrha sponsalica. III. Lorigine orientale dellarrha sponsalicia, la sua penetrazione nel diritto cristiano e bizantino. Rivista Italiana per le Scienze Giuridiche 5: 155-245. Reprinted in: Scritti Giuridici: Famiglia e Successioni, para Edoardo Volterra. T. 1. Pp. 125-218. Napoli: Jovene, 1991 Volterra, Edoardo. 1934. Unosservazione in tema di impedimenti matrimoniali. In Studi in Memoria di Aldo Albertoni. T. 1. Pp. 399-421. Padova: CEDAM. Reprinted in: Scritti Giuridici: Famiglia e Successioni, para Edoardo Volterra. T. 1. Pp. 477-498. Napoli: Jovene, 1991. Volterra, Edoardo. 1940. La Conception du Mariage daprs les Juristes Romains. Padova: La Garangola. 66 P. Reprinted in: Scritti Giuridici: Famiglia e Successioni, para Edoardo Volterra. T. 2. Pp. 3-68. Napoli: Jovene, 1991.

Volterra, Edoardo. 1948a. Ancora sulla manus e sul matrimonio. In Studi S. Solazzi. Pp. 673-688. Napoli: Jovene. Reprinted in: Scritti Giuridici: Famiglia e Successioni, para Edoardo Volterra. T. 2. Pp. 83-96. Napoli: Jovene, 1991. Volterra, Edoardo. 1948b. Quelques observations sur le marriage des filiifamilias. Revue Internationale des Droits de lAntiquit 1: 213-242. Reprinted in: Scritti Giuridici: Famiglia e Successioni, para Edoardo Volterra. T. 2. Pp. 97-126. Napoli: Jovene, 1991. Volterra, Edoardo. 1949. Sui mores della familia romana. Rendiconti della Reale Accademia dei Lincei, Classe di scienze morali, storiche e filologiche 8 (4): 516-534. Reprinted in: Scritti Giuridici: Famiglia e Successioni, para Edoardo Volterra. T. 2. Pp. 179-198. Napoli: Jovene, 1991. Volterra, Edoardo. 1952-1953. Ancora sul problema della familia romana. Rivista Italiana per le Scienze Giuridiche 89: 402-412. Reprinted in: Scritti Giuridici: Famiglia e Successioni, para Edoardo Volterra. T. 2. Pp. 337-362. Napoli: Jovene, 1991. Volterra, Edoardo. 1953a. Le forme del matrimonio romano. In Atti del III Congreso Internazionale di Diritto Comparativo. T. 1. Pp. 201-206. Roma. Translated into French as Les formes du marriage chez les Romains. In Atti del III Congreso Internazionale di Diritto Comparativo. T. 1. Pp. 207-212. Roma. Volterra, Edoardo. 1953b. La nozione giuridica del conubium. In Studi in Memoria di Emilio Albertario, a cura de Vincenzo Arangio-Ruiz e Giuseppe Lavaggi. T. 2. Pp. 347-384. Milano: A. Giuffr. Reprinted in: Scritti Giuridici: Famiglia e Successioni, para Edoardo Volterra. T. 2. Pp. 283-320. Napoli: Jovene, 1991. Volterra, Edoardo. 1955. La conception du marriage Rome. Revue Internationale des Droits de lAntiquit 3 (2): 365-379. Reprinted in: Confrences et Travaux, Universit Libre de Bruxelles, Facult du Droit 3 (1955): 47-59. Volterra, Edoardo. 1966. La nozione del adoptio e dellarrogatio secondo i giuristi romani del II e del III secolo d.C. Bullettino dellIstituto di Diritto Romano 69: 109-153.

Reprinted in: Scritti Giuridici: Famiglia e Successioni, para Edoardo Volterra. T. 2. Pp. 573-. Napoli: Jovene, 1991. Volterra, Edoardo. 1967. Sul diritto familiare di Ardea nel V secolo a.C. In Studi in Onore di Antonio Segni. T. 4. Pp. 657-678. Milano: A. Giuffr. Reprinted in: Scritti Giuridici: Famiglia e Successioni, para Edoardo Volterra. T. 3. Pp. 109-128. Napoli: Jovene, 1991. Volterra, Edoardo. 1968. La conventio in manum e il matrimonio romano. Rivista Italiana per le Scienze Giuridiche 95: 205-226. Reprinted in: Scritti Giuridici: Famiglia e Successioni, para Edoardo Volterra. T. 3. Pp. 155-176. Napoli: Jovene, 1991. Volterra, Edoardo. 1972. Iniustum matrimonium. In Studi in Onore di Gaetano Scherillo. T. 2. Pp. 441-470. Milano: Cisalpino-La Goliardica. Reprinted in: Scritti Giuridici: Famiglia e Successioni, para Edoardo Volterra. T. 3. Pp. 177-206. Napoli: Jovene, 1991. Volterra, Edoardo. 1975. Precisazioni di tema di matrimonio classico. Bullettino dellIstituto di Diritto Romano 78: 245-270. Reprinted in: Scritti Giuridici: Famiglia e Successioni, para Edoardo Volterra. T. 3. Pp. 355-381. Napoli: Jovene, 1991. Volterra, Edoardo. 1975. Sullunione conjugale del funzionario della provincia. In Festschrift fr Erwin Seidl zum 70. Geburtstag, herausgegeben von Heinz Hbner, Ernst Klingmller und Andreas Wacke. Ss. 169-178. Kln: P. Hanstein. Volterra, Edoardo. 1976. Lacquisisto della patria potestas a la morte del paterfamilias. Bullettino dellIstituto di Diritto Romano 79: 193-250. Reprinted in: Scritti Giuridici: Famiglia e Successioni, para Edoardo Volterra. T. 3. Pp. 381-438. Napoli: Jovene, 1991. HAVE Reprinted in: Scritti Giuridici: Famiglia e Successioni, para Edoardo Volterra. T. 3. Pp. 345-354. Napoli: Jovene, 1991 Volterra, Edoardo. 1978a. Ancora sul matrimonio di Antonio con Cleopatra. In Festschrift fr Werner Flume zum 70. Geburtstag, 12. September 1978, Herausgegeben von Kurt Ballerstedt und Horst H. Jakobs. Bd. 1. Ss. 205-212. Kln: O. Schmidt. Reprinted in: Scritti Giuridici: Famiglia e Successioni, para Edoardo Volterra. T. 3. Pp. 439-446. Napoli: Jovene, 1991. HAVE

Volterra, Edoardo. 1978b. La gradium agnationis vetustissima desriptio segnalata da Cujas. Memorie della Classe di scienze morali, storiche e filologiche, Reale Accademia dei Lincei 8 (12, 1): 1108. Reprinted in: Scritti Giuridici: Famiglia e Successioni, para Edoardo Volterra. T. 3. Pp. 475-584. Napoli: Jovene, 1991 Volterra, Edoardo. 1980a. Ancora sulla struttura del matrimonio classico. In De Iustitia et Iure. Festgabe fr Ulrich von Lbtow zum 80. Geburtstag, herausgegeben von Manfred Harder und Georg Thielmann. Ss. 147-153. Berlin: Duncker & Humblot. Reprinted in: Scritti Giuridici: Famiglia e Successioni, para Edoardo Volterra. T. 3. Pp. 599-606. Napoli: Jovene, 1991 Volterra, Edoardo. 1980b. Consensus facit nuptias. In La Definizione Essenziale Giuridica del Matrimonio. Pp. 44-56. Roma: Libreria Editrice della Pontificia Universit Lateranense. Reprinted in: Scritti Giuridici: Famiglia e Successioni, para Edoardo Volterra. T. 3. Pp. 585-598. Napoli: Jovene, 1991 Volterra, Edoardo. 1983. Luxor e la nurus in manus dans Gai., 3, 46; 41, et Ulp. 29, 1. In Religion, Socit et Politique. Mlanges en Hommage Jacques Ellul. Pp. 409-416. Paris: Presses Universitaires de France. Reprinted in: Scritti Giuridici: Famiglia e Successioni, para Edoardo Volterra. T. 3. Pp. 607-614. Napoli: Jovene, 1991 Wallace, Kristine G. 1977. Kinship Terms in Tacitus. Helios 5 (2): 56-59. Wallace-Hadrill, A. 1981. Family and Inheritance in the Augustan Marriage Laws. Proceedings of the Cambridge Philological Society 207: 58-80. Watkins, Calvert. HAVE 1957. Latin maritus. In Studies Presented to Joshua Whatmough on His Sixtieth Birthday, edited by Ernst Pulgram. Pp. 277-281. S.-Gravenhage: Mouton. Watson, P. 1989. Filiaster: Privignus or Illegitimate Child? Classical Quarterly 39 (2): 531-548. Weiss, Egon. 1908. Endogamie und Exogamie im rmischen Kaiserrecht. Zeitschrift (der SavignyStiftung) fr Rechtsgeschichte, Romanistiche Abteilung 19: 340-369. Wenger, Leopold. 1941. Zwei lateinische Papyri zum rmischen Eherechte. Sitzungsberichte der Akademie der Wissenschaften in Wien 219 (1). 40 P. Review: DOrs 1943. HAVE

Westrup, Carl W. 1926. Quelques Observations sur les Origines du Mariage par usus et du Mariage sans manus dans l'Ancien Droit Romain. Paris: Socit Anonyme du Recueil Sirey. 49 P. Westrup, Carl W. 1943. Recherches sur les Formes Antiques de Mariage dans lAncien Droit Romain. Kbenhavn: I Kommission hos Munksgaard (Kongelige Danske videnskabernes selskab. Historiskfilologiske Meddelelser 30 (1).) Westrup, Carl W. 1934-1954. Introduction to Early Roman Law: Comparative Sociological Studies. Vol. 1. The Patriarchal Joint Family. Vol. 2. Joint Family and Family Property. Kbenhavn: Munksgaard. Reviews: Jennings 1935; Schiller 1935; Schulz 1942. Westrup, Carl W. 1954. Sur les gentes et les curiae de la royaute primitive de Rome. Revue Internationale des Droits de lAntiquite 1: 435-476. Williams, G. 1958. Some Aspects of Roman Marriage, Ceremonies and Ideals. Journal of Roman Studies 48: 16-29. Wilson, Joseph P. HAVE 1988. Three Non-Uses of frater in Pro Caelio 32. Classical Journal 83 (3): 207-211. Wiseman, T. P. 1976. Factions and Family Trees. Liverpool Classical Monthly 1 (1): 1-3. Wuilleumier, P. 1942. Socerio. Revue des tudes Latines 20 (1-2): 47-49. [Epigraphic.] HAVE

Zimmermann, August. HAVE 1897. Spuren indogermanischer Namengebung im Lateinischen. Beitrge zur Kunde der Indogermansiochen Sprachen 23: 77-93; 257-283. [Extensively on child language kin terms in names.] Zimmermann, August. HAVE 1922. Lateinische Kinderworte als Verwandtschaftsbezeichnungen. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 50: 147-151. MEDIEVAL (VULGAR) LATIN Guerreau-Jalabert, Anita. HAVE 1988. La designation des relations et des groups de parent en latin mdival. Archivum Latinitatis Medii Aevii 46 (7): 65-108. Rothwell, W. HAVE

1972. Review of An Inquiry into Local Variations in Vulgar Latin, by Paul A. Gaeng. Modern Language Review 67 (3): 604-605. [P. 605: Lat uxor wife, woman in the dialects of Old French.] OSCAN Buck, Carl D. HAVE 1901. A Grammar of Oscan and Umbrian. Boston: Ginn. [P. 129: Nouns of relationship.] Conway, R. S. 1897. The Italic Dialects, edited with a Grammar and Glossary. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. [P. 624: futrei genetrici, dat. sing. fem., title of a goddess in the Cereal cycle; the masc. seems to be preserved in a Grecised shape in , Nom. Pl. What was the nom. sg. of the fem. word?] Enderis, Ernst. 1871. Versuch einer Formenlehre der Oskischen Sprache, mit den oskischenInschriften und Glossar. Zurich: S.Hhr. [Pp. XV, 56: fuutrei Dat. Sing genetrici, fuutreis Gen. Sing. genetricis discussed alongside the other kin terms in -ter, paterei, maatreis.] Hofmann, J. B. HAVE 1936. Zur lateinischen und italischen Wortforschung. o. futr. Glotta 25:119-120. [The Oscan word for daughter.] Kretschmer, Paul. 1933. Zu osk. ftir. Glotta 21: 100. [The Oscan word for daughter.] HAVE

Pisani, Vittore. HAVE 1934. A proposito di osco ftr ed v. In Italica, para Vittore Pisani. Pp. 15-16. Roma: R. Istituto dei Sordomuti. Planta, Robert von. 1897. Grammatik der Oskisch-Umbrischen Dialekte. Strassburg: Karl J. Trbner. [Vol. 2, pp. 55-56, 684: fuutrei creatrici, genitrici.] Ribezzo, Fr. HAVE 1932. Unit italica ed unit italo-celtica. Del rapporto originario e storico tra Lazialiausonici e Umbro-sabellici. Rivista Indo-Greco-Italica di Filologia Lingua Antichit 16 (1-2): 27-40. [Pp. 30-31: Osc fuutre glossed as genitrici.] Stuart-Smith, Jane. 2004. Phonetics and Philology: Sound Change in Italic. Oxford: Oxford University Press. [Pp. 81, 84: on futir daughter < *dhugHter and not *dhughHter; 56: Falisc filea daughter < *bhweH-, Messap bilia, Alb bir son.] Thurneysen, R. 1898. Review of Grammatik der Oskisch-Umbrischen Dialekte. Bd. II. Formenlehre, Syntax, Sammlung der Inschriften und Glossen, by R. von Planta. Indogermanische Forschungen (Anzeiger) 9: 183-187. [P. 184: the identification of Osc futreis, fuutrei as IE daughter.] HAVE Thurneysen, R. 1933. Italisches. II. Oskisch ftir Tochter. Glotta 21: 7-8. HAVE

Reprinted in: Gesammelte Schriften, herausgegeben von Patrizia de Bernardo Stempel und Rolf Kdderitzsch. Bd. 1. Ss. 329-330. Tbingen: M. Niemeyer, 1991. Vetter, Emil. 1953. Handbuch der Italischen Dialekte. Bd. 1. Texte mit Erklrung, Glossen, Wrterverzeichnis. Heidelberg: Carl Winter. [P. 405: futir, Nom Sing filia, Dat. Sing. fuutrei , Gen. Sing. futre[isp]e filiaeque.] UMBRIAN Rix, Helmut. 1971. Umbrisch titis: Die grammatische Form der Filiationsangabe im Umbrischen. In Donum Indogermanicum: Festgabe fur Anton Scherer zum 70. Feburtstag, herausgegeben von Robert Schmitt-Brandt. Pp. 177-181. Heidelberg: Carl Winter. Stegmann von Pritzwald, Kurt. 1933. Zu umbr. fratreks. Glotta 21: 134-136. MODERN GENERAL Aebischer, Paul. HAVE 1936. Protohistoire de deux mots romans dorigine grecque: thius oncle et thia tante. Annali della Scuola Normale Superiore di Pisa. Lettere, Storia e Filosofia, Serie 2 (5): 54-69. Bologna. Aebischer, Paul. 1978. Les denominations du cousin en Italie dans les dialects actuels et les chartes mdievales. In Etudes de Stratigraphie Linguistique, par Paul Aebischer. Pp. 78-84. Bern: Francke. Bartoli, Matteo. 1936. Caratteri fondamentali delle lingue neolatine. Archivio Glottologico Italiano 28: 97-133. Reprinted in Saggi di Linguistica Spaziale. Torino: Vincenzo Bono. [Pp. 100, 102: thius vs. avunculus in Romance dialects.] Bonfante, Giuliano. 1965. Le norme areali di Matteo Brtoli. Quaderni Ibero-Americani 31: 7-60. Torino. Reprinted in Studii Romeni, para Giuliano Bonfante. Pp. 102-157. Roma: Societ Accademica Romena, 1973. [Pp. 143-157: kin terms in medieval and modern Romance languages.] HAVE Caldwell, David E. 1987. Production Grammars for Romance Kinship Terminology. M.Sc. thesis. McGill University, Canada. Calvi, Giulia. 2007. Rights and Ties that Bind: Mothers, Children, and the State in Tuscany During the Early Modern Period. In Kinship in Europe: Approaches to Long-Term Development

(1300-1900), edited by David W. Sabean, Simon Teuscher and Jon Mathieu. Pp. 145162. New York and Oxford: Berghahn Books. Cerd, Ramn. 1997. Paralelisme romanice n folosirea posesivelor cu termini derudenie. Studii i Cercetri Lingvistice 48 (1-4): 75-82. Harris, M. Roy. 1965. The Semantic Prehistory of the Romance Progeny of Latin AUUNCULUSAMITA. Romance Notes 7: 95-100. Kertzer, D. I., and C. A. Barrel. 1987. Recenti sviluppi nella storia della famiglia italiana e iberica. Rassega Italiana di Sociologia 28 (2): 249-289. Maillard, Michel. HAVE 2005. Une Histoire dO, ou La revanche des grands-mres. Faits de Langues 25: 207213. [On avo grandmother.] Malkiel, Yakov. HAVE 1951. Lexical Polarization in Romance. Language 27 (4): 485-518. [P. 490-494: polarization according to sex of relative (no generation) in Romance languages and its roots in Latin; socra mother-in-law and nura daughter-in-law in Romance dialects.] Malkiel, Yakov. 1987. The Transmission into Romance of Latin nodus, nuptiae, nurus, and nux: Diachronic Interplay of Phonetic and Semantic Analogies. General Linguistics 27 (4): 239-260. Pauli, Ivan. 1919. Enfant, Garon, Fille dans les Langues Romanes, tudis particulirement dans les dialectes galloromans et italiens. Lund: A.B.P. Lindstedt en distribution. Rapp, Linda L 1982. Kinship Terminology in Romance: An Ethnolinguistic Survey of Contemporary Usage. Papers in Romance 4 (1): 29-44. Tappolet, Ernst. 1895. Die Romanischen Verwandtschaftsnamen, mit besonderer Bercksichtigung der franzsischen und italienischen Mundarten. Ein Beitrag zur Vergleichenden Lexikologie. Strassburg: Karl J. Trbner. 178 P. Tukey, Ann. 1962. Kinship Terminology in the Romance Languages. Ph.D. dissertation. University of Michigan. 267 P. FRENCH COLLECTIONS Wheaton, Robert, and Tamara K. Hareven. (eds.) 1980. Family and Sexuality in French History. Philadelphia PA: University of Pennsylvania Press. MEDIEVAL

Amado, Claudie. 2004. La Famille Noble Mridionale Autour de 1000: Perspectives et Historiographie. In Hommes et Socits dans lEurope de lAn Mil, edited by Pierre Bonnaisse and Pierre Toubert. Pp. 185-200. Toulouse. Aurell, Martin. 2000. La parent en lam mil. Cahiers de Civilization Medieval 43: 125-142. Bouchard, Constance B. 2001. Those of My Blood: Constructing Noble Families in Medieval Francia. Philadelphia: University of Pennsylvania Press. Reviews: Baldwin J. 2003; Power 2004. Bove, B. 2000. Espace, pit et parent Paris aux XIIIe et XIVe sicles daprs les fondations danniversaires des familles chevinales. In Religion et Socit Urbaine au Moyen ge. Pp. 253-281. Paris. Carozzi, Claude, Jean-Loup Lemaitre, and Eliana Magnani. 2008. Famille et Parent dans la Vie Religieuse du Midi: XIIe-XVe Sicle. Toulouse: Privat. Carron, Roland. 1989. Enfant et Parent dans la France Mdivale: Xe-XIIIe Sicles. Genve: Droz. Reviews: Bouchard 1990; Lynch 1990. Duby, Georges. 1972. Lignage, noblesse et chevallererie au XIIe sicle dans la Rgion maconnaise. Une rvision. Annales conomies, Socits, Civilisations 27: 803-823. Duby, Georges. 1953. La Socit aux XIe et XIIe Sicles dans la Rgion Mconnaise. Paris: Librairie Armand Colin. [Pp. 215-225: the interplay of kinship and feudalism.] Reviews: Williams J. 1954; Furber 1955; Lennard 1955. Duby, Georges. 1980. The Structure of Kinship and Nobility: Northern France in the Eleventh and Twelfth Centuries. In The Chivalrous Society, by Georges Duby. Translated by Cynthia Postan. Pp. 134-148. dlestand du Mril, M. 1862. Des formes du mariage et des usages populaires qui sy rattachaeient surtout en France pendant le Moyen Age. In tudes sur Quelques Points dArchologie et dHistoire Littraire, by M. dlestand du Mril. Pp. 1-84. Paris and Leipzig: A. Franck. Farnsworth, William O. HAVE 1913. Uncle and Nephew in the Old French Chanson de Geste: A Study in the Survival of Matriarchy. New York: Columbia University Press.

Reviews: Nitze 1914; Stowell 1914. Guene, B. 1978. Les genealogies entre lhistoire et la politique: La fiert dtre Captien en France, au Moyen Age. Annales: conomies, Socits, Civilisations 3: 450-477. Maurel, Christian. 1986. Structures familiales et solidarit lignagres Marseille au XVe sicle: Autour de lascension sociale des Forbin. Annales: conomies, Socits, Civilisations 41: 658-682. Nielen, Marie-Adelade. 2002. Families of Outremer: A Source of Traditional Naming Customs. In Personal Names Studies of Medieval Europe: Social Identity and Familial Structures, edited by George Beech, Monique Bourin and Pascal Chareille. Pp. 131-139. Kalamazoo: Medieval Institute Publications, Western Michigan University. Oexle, O. G. 1993. Lignage et parent, politique et religion dans la noblesse du XIIe s.: l'vangliaire de Henri le Lion. Cahiers de Civilisation Mdivale 36 (4): 339-354. OGorman, Richard. 1965. Encore anc. fr. sire, seigneur beau-pere. Romania 86: 393-394. OGorman, Richard. 1982. Seignor Schwiegervater dans LAltfranzsisches Wrterbuch. Studia Neophilologica 54: 99-108. Regnier, Claude. 1960. Sur un emploi de seigneur qui manque Godefroy. Romania 81: 522-524. [On the meaning father-in-law.] Regnier, Claude. 1962. A propos de sire, seigneur beau-pere. Romania 83: 117-118. Sablonier, Roger. 1984. The Aragonese Royal Family Around 1300. In Interest and Emotion: Essays on the Study of Family and Kinship, edited by David W. Sabean and Hans Medick. Pp. 210-240. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Searle, Eleanor. 1988. Predatory Kinship and the Creation of Norman Power, 840-1066. Berkeley: University of California Press. Reviews: Bachrach 1989; Bates 1990. Taviani, H. 1978. Le mariage dans lhrsie de lAn Mil. Annales: conomies, Socits, Civilisations 6: 1074-1089. Theis, L. 1976. Saints sans famille? Quelques remarques sur la famille dans le monde franc travers les sources hagiographiques. Revue Historique 517: 3-20. MODERN

Blochwitz, Werner. 1963. Die lexikalische Sonderstellung der Gaskogne, dargestelt an den Verwandtschaftsbezeichnungen. Zeitschrift fur Romanische Philologie 79: 74-109. Bloemen, Johan. 1981. Petit et grand: Le problme de la norme implicite. Travaux de Linguistique: Publications du Service de Linguistique Franaise de lUniversite de lEtat Gand 8: 725. Bloemen, Johan. 1982. La syncatgormaticit relative de petit et grand. In Sprache Beschreiben und Erklren. Akten des 16. Linguististischen Kolloquiums, Kiel 1981, herausgegeben von Klaus Detering, Jrgen Schmidt-Radefeldt, und Wolfgang Sucharowski. Bd. 1. Pp. 8390. Tbingen: Max Niemeyer. [Analysis of constructions grand frre and petit frre.] Botsch, G., and M. Prost. 2001. Apparentement et ressemblance patronymique en Dauphin du XVe au XXe sicle. In Le Patronyme: Histoire, Anthropologie, Socit, edit par G. Brunet, P. Darlu et G. Zei. Pp. 301-317. Paris: CNRS. Claverie, Elizabeth, and Pierre Lamaison. 1982. LImpossible Mariage: Violence et Parent en Gvaudan. Paris: Hachette. Collomp, Alain. 1977. Alliance et filiation en Haute-Provence au XVIIIe sicle. Annales: conomies, Socits, Civilisations 32 (3): 445-477. Collomp, Alain. 1983. La Maison du Pre. Famille et Village en Haute-Provence aux XVIIe et XVIIIe Sicles. Paris: Presses Universitaires de France. Reviews: Beik 1984; Benedict P. 1984. Collomp, Alain. 1984. Tensions, Dissensions, and Ruptures Inside the Family in Seventeenth- and Eighteenth-Century Haute Provence. In Interest and Emotion: Essays on the Study of Family and Kinship, edited by Hans Medick and David W. Sabean. Pp. 145-170. Cambridge and New York: Cambridge University Press; Paris: ditions de la Maison des Sciences de lHomme. Collomp, Alain. 2000. Surnames, Marriage, and Consanguinity in Eighteenth and Nineteenth Century Haute-Provence. History of the Family 5 (2): 243-254. Davis, Natalie Z. 1977. Ghosts, Kin, and Progeny: Some Features of Family Life in Early Modern France. Daedalus 106: 87-114. Delille, Grard. 2007. Kinship, Marriage and Politics. In Kinship in Europe: Approaches to Long-Term Development (1300-1900), edited by David W. Sabean, Simon Teuscher and Jon Mathieu. Pp. 163-186. New York and Oxford: Berghahn Books.

Derouet, Bernard. 1989. Pratiques successorales et rapport la terre: Les socits paysannes dancien rgime. Annales: Economies, Socits, Civilisations 44: 173-206. Derouet, Bernard. 1993. Le partage des frres: Hritage masculine et reproduction sociale en Franche-Comt aux XVIIIe et XIXe sicles. Annales: Economies, Socits, Civilisations 48: 453-474. Derouet, Bernard. 1995. Territoire et parent. Pour une mise en perspective de la communaut rurale et les forms de reproduction familiale. Annales: Histoire, Sciences Sociales 50: 645-686. Derouet, Bernard. 1997a. Les pratiques familiales, le droit et la construction des diffrences (15e-19e sicles). Annales: Histoire, Sciences Sociales 52 (2): 369-391. Derouet, Bernard. 1997b. La transmission galitaire du patrimoine dans la France rurale (XVIe-XIXe sicles): Nouvelles perspectives de recherche. In Familia, Casa y Trabajo: Historia de la Familia. Vol. 3, edit par F. Chacn Jimnez et Lloren Ferrer i Als. Pp. 73-92. Paris: EDITUM. Derouet, Bernard. 2001. Parent et march foncier lpoque moderne: Une reinterpretation. Annales: Histoire, Sciences Sociales 56: 337-368. Derouet, Bernard. 2007. Political Power, Inheritance, and Kinship Relations: The Unique Features of Southern France (Sixteenth-Eighteenth Century). In Kinship in Europe: Approaches to Long-Term Development (1300-1900), edited by David W. Sabean, Simon Teuscher and Jon Mathieu. Pp. 105-124. New York and Oxford: Berghahn Books. Derouet, Bernard, and Joseph Goy. 1998. Transmettre la terre: Les inflexions dune problmatique de la difference. Mlanges de lcole Franaise de Rome. Italie et Mditerranne 110: 117-153. Dupaquier, Jacques. HAVE 1981. Naming Practices, Godparentholds, and Kinship in the Vexin, 1540-1900. Journal of Family History 6: 135-155. Fine, Agns. 1997. Parrainage, marrainage et relations familiales dans la socit franaise contemporaine. Lien Social et Politique 37: 157-170. Gager, Kristin E. 1996. Blood Ties and Fictive Ties: Adoption and Family Life in Early Modern France. Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press. Reviews: Cadoret 1997; Desan 1997; Hardwick 1997; Abrarns 1998; Dixon C. 1998. Gallagher, O. R. 1950. The Social Structure of a French Village Community, with Special Reference to the Kinship System. M. A. thesis. London School of Economics. Grendan, J. Du Plessis de.

1900. Histoire de lAutorit Paternelle et de la Socit Familiale en France avant 1789. Paris: Arthur Rousseau. Review: Durkheim 1902. Guigo, Denis. 1991. Les termes dadresse dans un bureau parisien. LHomme 31: 41-59. [Includes the use of a kinship chart to illustrate relations between employees.] Kesztenbaum, Lionel. 2008. Places of Life Events as Bequestable Wealth: Family Territory and Migration in France, 19th and 20th Centuries. In Kinship and Demographic Behavior in the Past, edited by Tommy Bengtsson, and Geraldine P. Mineau. Pp. 155-184. Dordrecht and London: Springer. Ladurie, Emmanuel L. 1976. Family Structures and Inheritance Customs in Sixteenth-Century France. In Family and Inheritance: Rural Society in Western Europe, 1200-1800, edited by Jack Goody, Joan Trisk and E. P. Thompson. Pp. 37-70. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Johnson, Christopher H. 2002. Das Geschwister Archipel: Bruder, Schwester, Liebe und Klassenformation im Frankreich des 19. Jahrhunderts. LHomme: Zeitschrift fr Feministische Geschichtswissenschaft 13: 50-67. Johnson, Christopher H. 2007. Kinship, Civil Society, and Power in Nineteenth-Century Vannes. In Kinship in Europe: Approaches to Long-Term Development (1300-1900), edited by David W. Sabean, Simon Teuscher and Jon Mathieu. Pp. 258-283. New York and Oxford: Berghahn Books. Johnson, Cynthia J. 2005. Marrying and Dying in Medieval Occitania: Case-Study Approach to Dowries, Disputes and Devolution in Twelth-Century Southern France. Ph.D. dissertation. Emory University, Department of History. Jones, Anne M. 1987. Kin Relations in a French Alpine Community: A Preliminary Investigation. Sociologia Ruralis 27 (4): 304-322. Karnoouh, C. 1971. Loncle et le cousin. Etudes Rurales 42: 7-51. (Special Issue: Recherches sur la Parent Paysanne.) Lamaison, Pierre. 1979. Les stratgies matrimoniales dans un systme complexe de parent: Ribennes en Gvaudan (1650-1830). Annales: conomies, Socits, Civilisations 34 (4): 721-743. Lemieux, Vincent. 1971. Parent et Politique. LOrganisation Sociale dans lle dOrlans. Quebec: Presses de lUniversite Laval. Reviews: Havel 1972; Karnoouh 1974; McRoberts 1976.

Le Roy Ladurie, Emmanuel. 1976. A System of Customary Law: Family Structures and Inheritance Customs in Sixteenth-Century France. In Family and Society, edited by Robert Forster and Orest Ranum. Pp. 75-103. Baltimore: Johns Hopkins University Press. Livingstone, A. 1997. Kith and Kin: Kinship and Family Structure of the Nobility of Eleventh- and Twelfth-Century Blois-Charters. French Historical Studies 20 (3): 419-458. Macherel, Claude. 1979. La traverse du champ matrimonial: Un exemple alpin. tudes Rurales 73: 9-40. Paris. Madic, Flora. 2000. De lgalit problematique aux mariages utiles. Parent et alliance dans une socit parentle (Mase, Alpes suisses). LHomme 154-155: 225-240. (Special issue: Question de Parent.) Maczak, Witold. HAVE 1989. Pourquoi un seul r dans pre, mre et frre? In Variatio Linguarum: Beitrge zu Sprachvergleich und Sprachentwicklung. Festschrift zum 60. Geburtstag von Gustav Ineichen, herausgegeben von Ursula Klenk, Karl-Hermann Krner und Wolf Thmmel. Pp. 183-189. Stuttgart: R. Steiner Wiesbaden. Maranda, Pierre. 1966. French Kinship: Structure and History. Ph.D. dissertation. Harvard University. Maranda, Pierre. 1974. French Kinship: Structure and History. The Hague: Mouton. (Janua Linguarum. Series Practica 169) Reviews: Wolfram 1975; Chock 1976. Martin, O. 1901. La Crise du Mariage dans la Lgislation Intermdiare (1798-1804). Thse Droit. Paris. Merk, George. 1983. Pourquoi un seul r dans pre, mre et frre? Revue de Linguistique Romane 47: 335-351. Michel, Andree. 1967. Comparative Data Concerning the Interaction in French and American Families. Journal of Marriage and the Family 29: 337-344. [Cross-listed in AMERICA.] Nassiet, Michel. 1994. Nom et blason. Un discours de la filiation et de lalliance (XIVe-XVIIIe sicle). LHomme 34: 5-30. Patterson, Shirley G. 1913. Concerning the Type beau-pre, belle-mre. Modern Language Notes 28 (3): 7377. Perrenoud, Alfred.

1995. Parents, grands-parents et parent Jussy au tournant du XIXme sicle. In Des Archives la Mmoire. Mlanges offerts Louis Binz. Pp. 305-323. Genve: Socit dHistoire et dArchologie de Genve. Pidoux, Pierre A. 1902. Histoire du Mariage et du Droit des Gens Maris en Franche-Comt depuis la Rdaction des Coutumes en 1459 jusqu' la Conqute de la Province par Louis XIV en 1674. Paris: Dole L. Bernin. Review: Durkheim 1904b. Karnoouh, C. 1971. Terres et familles dans un village du Chtillonnais. Etudes Rurales 42: 52-104. (Special Issue: Recherches sur la Parent Paysanne.) Pouzol, Abel. 1902. La Recherche de la Paternit: tude Critique de Sociologie et de Legislation Compare. Paris: Giard et Brire. Review: Durkheim 1903. Segalen, Martine. 1979. Mating in French Pre-Industrial Rural Areas. In Europe as a Culture Area, edited by Jean Cuisenier. Pp. 147-158. The Hague: Mouton. Segalen, Martine. 1984. Avoir sa Part: Sibling Relations in Partible Inheritance Brittany. In Interest and Emotion: Essays on the Study of Family and Kinship, edited by Hans Medick and David W. Sabean. Pp. 129-144. Cambridge and New York: Cambridge University Press; Paris: ditions de la Maison des Sciences de lHomme. Salitot, M., and P. Labat. 1986. Rapports de production et parent dans un village du Bassin parisien. Ethnologie Franaise 16 (1): 77-87. Segalen, Martine. 1985. Quinze Gnrations de Bas-Bretons: Parent et Socit dans le pays Bigouden Sud, 1720-1980. Paris: Presses Universitaires de France. Reviews: Collard 1987; Treanton 1989; Ford 1990. Segalen, Martine, and Philippe Richard. 1986. Marrying Kinsmen in Pays Bigouden Sud, Brittany. Journal of Family History 11 (2): 109-130. Stocquart, mile. 1905. Aperu de lvolution Juridique du Mariage. I. France. Bruxelles: Oscar Lamberty. Review: Baldwin 1905. Tilly, Louise A. 1979. The Family Wage Economy of a French Textile City: Roubaix, 1872-1906. Journal of Family History 4 (4): 381-394.

Tilly, Louise A. 1979b. Individual Lives and Family Strategies in the French Proletariat. Journal of Family History 4: 137-152. English translation: Fifteen Fenerations of Bretons: Kinship and Society in Lower Brittany, 1720-1980. Translated from the French by J. A. Underwood. New York: Cambridge University Press, 1991. Volterra, Edoardo. 1984. La rivoluzione francese e il diritto di famiglia. Rivista trim. Dir. Proc. Civ. 38: 260-277. Wald, Paul. HAVE 1977. La variabilit dans les terminologies de parent comme critre dadquation de lanalyse: Lexemple de la terminologie consaguine Franaise. LHomme 17 (2-3) : 2370. Weber, Florence. 2003. Charges de Famille: Dpendance et Parent dans la France Contemporaine. Paris: La Dcouverte. Wheaton, Robert. 1980. Affinity and Descent in Seventeenth-Century Bordeaux. In Family and Sexuality in French History, edited by Robert Wheaton and Tamara K. Hareven. Pp. 111-134. Philadelphia, PA: University of Pennsylvania Press. White, Stephen D. 1988. Custom, Kinship, and Gifts to Saints: The Laudatio Parentum in Western France, 1050-1150. Chapel Hill: University of North Carolina Press. Reviews: Biancalana 1989; Koziol 1990; Lewis A. 1990; Caenegem 1991. White, Stephen D. 1994. The Discourse of Inheritance in Twelfth-Century France: Alternative Models of the Fief in the Raoul de Cambrai. In Law and Government in Medieval England and Normandy: Essays in Honour of Sir James Holt, edited by George Garnett and John G. Hudson. Pp. 173-197. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Reprinted in: Re-Thinking Kinship and Feudalism in Early Medieval Europe, by Stephen D.White. Pp. 173-197. Aldershot: Ashgate Press, 2005. White, Stephen D. 1996. Clotilds Revenge : Politics, Kinship, and Ideology in the Merovingian Blood Feud. In Portraits of Medieval and Renaissance Living : Essays in Honor of David Herlihy, edited by Samuel K. Cohn and Steven A. Epstein. Pp. 107-130. Ann Arbor : University of Michigan Press. Reprinted in: Re-Thinking Kinship and Feudalism in Early Medieval Europe, by Stephen D.White. Pp. 107-130. Aldershot: Ashgate Press, 2005. Zonabend, Franoise. 1978. Baptismal Kinship at Minot (Cte dOr). Annales: Economies, Socits, Civilisations 33: 656-676.

Zonabend, Franoise. 1981. Les trs proches et le pas trop loin. Rflexions sur lorganisation du champ matrimonial des socits structures de parent complexes. Ethnologie Franaise 11 (4): 311-318. [Rural France.] Zonabend, Franoise. 1990. La parent baptismale Minot. In Une Campagne Voisine: Minot, un Village Bourguignon, edited by T. Jolas, M.-C. Pingaud, Y. Verdier and Franoise Zonabend. Pp. 215-240. Paris: Editions de la Maison des Sciences de lHomme. Yoon, H-S. 1989. The Grammar of Inalienable Possession Construction in Korean, Mandarin, and French. Harvard Studies in Korean Linguistics 3. [Cross-listed in SINO-TIBETAN and KOREAN.] Yver, Jean. 1966. galit entre Hritiers et Exclusion des Enfants Dots: Essai de Gographie Coutumire. Paris: Sirey. Reviews: Bromley 1967; Wood 1968. Zonabend, F. 1976. Lenqute de parent dans la socit paysanne franaise. In Outils dEnqute et dAnalyse Anthropologiques, edited by Robert Cresswell and Maurice Godelier. Pp. 266277. Paris: Maspero. FRIULIAN Rizzolatti, Piera. 2001. Su alcune rarit lessicali del friulano. In Studi Offerti ad Alexandru Niculescu dagli amici e allievi di Udine, a cura di Sergio vatteroni. Pp. 195-205. Udine: Forum. [Pp. 204205: on a dialectal form of the word for grandson.] IBERO-ROMANCE COLLECTIONS Vilar, Pierre. 1987. La Familia en la Espaa Mediterranea (s. XV-XIX). Barcelona: Crtica. GENERAL Chacn Jimnez, Francisco. 1987. La familia en Espaa, una historia por hacer. In La Familia en la Espaa Mediterranea (s. XV-XIX), edited by Pierre Vilar. Pp. 13-35. Barcelona: Crtica. Gacto Fernndez, Enrique. 1987. El grupo familiar de la Edad Moderna en los territorios del Mediterraneo hispanico: Una vision juridical. In La Familia en la Espaa Mediterranea (s. XV-XIX), edited by Pierre Vilar. Pp. 36-64. Barcelona: Crtica. COMPARATIVE

Brgger, J., and D. D. Gilmore. 1997. The Matrifocal Family in Iberia: Spain and Portugal Compared. Ethnology 36 (1): 13-30. EAST IBERIAN CATALAN-VALENCIAN-BALEAR COLLECTIONS Ponce, S., and Lloren Ferrer i Als. (eds.) 1994. Familia i Canvi Social a la Catalunya Contemporania. Vic: Spain Eumo. GENERAL Aebischer, Paul. HAVE 1971. Sur quelques noms de parent en catalan. In Estudis de Linguistica i de Filologia Catalanes Dedicats a la Memoria de Pompeu Fabra en el Centenari de la Seva Naixenca. XIII: 13-25. Barcelona, 1963-68. Barrera Gonzalez, A. 1990. Casa, Herncia y Familia en la Catalunya Rural. Madrid: Alianza Universidad. Faus Condomines, J. 1902. Els capitols matrimonials a la comarca de Guissona (Catalunya Segriana). Revista Juridica de Catalunya. Barcelona. Ferrer i Als, Lloren. 1991a. Familia, iglesia y matrimonio en el campesinado acomodado catalan (s. XVIIIXIX). Boletin de la ADEH 9 (1): 27-64. Ferrer i Als, Lloren. 1991b. Familia y grupo sociales en Cataluna en los siglos XVIII-XIX. In Familia, Grupos Sociales y Mujer en Espana (s. XV-XIX), edited by F. Chacon, J. Hernandez Franco and A. Penafiel. Pp. 119-137. Murcia, Spain: Universidad de Murcia. Ferrer i Als, Lloren. 1993. Fratelli al celibato, sorelle i matrimonio. La parte dei cadetti nella riproduzzione sociale dei gruppi agiati in Catalogna (secoli XVIII-XIX). Quaderni Storici 28 (83): 527554. Ferrer i Als, Lloren. 1994. Lus de la familia per le burgesia de la Catalunya Central. In Familia i Canvi Social a la Catalunya Contemporania, edited by S. Ponce and Lloren Ferrer i Als. Pp. 15-44. Vic: Spain Eumo. Ferrer i Als, Lloren. HAVE 2004. Kinship as a Mechanism in the Social Structuring of Rural Catalonia (Eighteenth and Nineteenth Centuries). Journal of Family History 29 (2): 135-152. Iszaevich, Abraham. HAVE 1981. Corporate Household and Ecocentric Kinship Group in Catalonia. Ethnology 20 (4): 277-290. Llobera, Josep R. 1997. Aspects of Catalan Kinship, Identity, and Nationalism. Journal of the

Anthropological Society of Oxford 28 (3): 297-309. (Special Issue: Kinship and Identity.) Llobera, Josep R. 2004. Whats in a Name: Kinship, Territory and Religion in the Making of National Identity. In Foundations of National Identity: From Catalonia to Europe, by Josep R. Llobera. Pp. 46-63. New York: Berghahn Books. Pla Alberola, Primitivo J. 1987. Familia y matrimonio en la Valencia moderna: Apuntes para su estudio. In La Familia en la Espaa Mediterranea (s. XV-XIX), edited by Pierre Vilar. Pp. 94-128. Barcelona: Crtica. Simn i Tarrs, Antoni. 1987. La familia catalana en el Antiguo Rgimen. In La Familia en la Espaa Mediterranea (s. XV-XIX), edited by Pierre Vilar. Pp. 65-93. Barcelona: Crtica. WEST IBERIAN CASTILIAN SPANISH MEDIEVAL Figueras, Llus To. 2002. Personal Naming and Structures of Kinship in the Medieval Spanish Peasantry. In Personal Names Studies of Medieval Europe: Social Identity and Familial Structures, edited by George Beech, Monique Bourin and Pascal Chareille. Pp. 53-66. Kalamazoo: Medieval Institute Publications, Western Michigan University. Martin, Georges. HAVE 1997. Structures de parent et rgimes de la dpendance politique. Annexes des Cahiers de Linguistique Hispanique Mdivale 11 (11): 153-167. [Kinship and vassality in medieval Spain, as reflected in Poema de Mo Cid (1200).] Sopena, Pascual M. 2002. Personal Naming and Kinship in the Spanish Aristocracy. In Personal Names Studies of Medieval Europe: Social Identity and Familial Structures, edited by George Beech, Monique Bourin and Pascal Chareille. Pp. 67-76. Kalamazoo: Medieval Institute Publications, Western Michigan University. MODERN Blanes, Isabel M. 1987. La estructura familiar del campesinado de Mallorca, 1824-1827. In La Familia en la Espaa Mediterranea (s. XV-XIX), edited by Pierre Vilar. Pp. 212-257. Barcelona: Crtica. Brandes, Stanley H. 1975. Migration, Kinship, and Community: Tradition and Transition in a Spanish Village. New York: Academic Press. Reviews: Aceves 1976; Buechler 1979. See also Foster 1977.

Chacn Jimnez, Francisco. 1987. Notas para el estudio de la familia en la regin de Murcia durante el Antiguo Rgimen. In La Familia en la Espaa Mediterranea (s. XV-XIX), edited by Pierre Vilar. Pp. 129-171. Barcelona: Crtica. Comas DArgemir, Dolors. 1987. Rural Crisis and the Reproduction of Family Systems: Celibacy as a Problem in Aragonese Pyrenees. Sociologia Ruralis 27 (4): 263-277. Fahnestock, Edith, and Mary B. Peaks. HAVE 1913. A Vulgar Latin Origin for Spanish padres Meaning Father and Mother. Transactions and Proceedings of the American Philological Association 44: 77-86. Fauve Chamoux, A. 1984. Les structures familiales au royaume des familles souches: Esparros. Annales 39: 514-528. Fauve Chamoux, A. 1987. La fonctionnement de la famille souche dans les baronies des Pyrnes du XVII sicle a la premire guerre mondiale. In I Congreso Hispano Luso Italiano de Demografia Historica. Barcelona: Association de Demografia Historica. Foster, George M. HAVE 1953. Cofrada and Compadrazgo in Spain and Spanish America. Southwestern Journal of Anthropology 9 (1): 1-28. [Cross-listed in AMERICA.] Foster, George M. 1977. Comment on Aceves Review of Brandes Migration, Kinship and Community. American Anthropologist 79: 442-443. Harney, Michael. 1993. Kinship and Polity in the Poema de Mio Cid. West Lafayette: Purdue University Press. Review: Snchez 1994; Pavlovi 1995. Hran Haen, Franois. 1979. Terre et Parent en Andalousie Occidentale: Recherche dAnthropologie Sociale et Historique sur la Bourgeoisie Agraire de Sville. Ph.D. dissertation. Universit de Paris V. Hran Haen, Franois. 1990. Le Bourgeois de Sville: Terre et Parent en Andalousie. Paris: Presses Universitaires de France. Reviews: Wylie 1992; Zalio 1993. Herndez Franco, J., and A. Peafiel Ramn. 1998. Parentesco, linaje y mayorazgo en una ciudad mediterrnea: Murcia (siglos XVXVIII). Hispania 58 (198): 157-183. Madrid. Kenny, Michael. HAVE 1960. Patterns of Patronage in Spain. Anthropological Quarterly 33 (1): 14-23. [Ritual kinship.]

Mikelarena, F. 1992. Estructuras familiares y sistemas sucesorios en Navarra: Una aproximacin crtica desde las ciencias sociales a las perspectivas tradicionales. Revista Jurdica de Navarra 14: 119-145. Mira, J. 1971. Mariage et famille dans une communaut rurale du Pays de Valence (Espagne). Etudes Rurales 42: 105-119. (Special Issue: Recherches sur la Parent Paysanne.) Pitt-Rivers, Julian A. 1958. Ritual Kinship in Spain. Transactions of the New York Academy of Sciences, Series II 20: 424-431. Rice, Carl C. 1901. Etymological Notes on Old Spanish consograr, consagrar, *consangrar. Modern Language Notes 16 (8): 236-238. Roque, Maria A. 1988. Hermanos y tios o el character uxorilocal del parentesco castellano. Revista de Dialectologia y Tradiciones Populares 43: 525-537. Ruiz Domenec, J. E. 1979. Systme de parent et thorie de lalliance dans la socit Catalane (env. 1000-env. 1240). Revue Historique 532: 305-326. Stocquart, mile. 1907. Aperu de lvolution Juridique du Mariage. I. Espagne. Bruxelles: Oscar Lamberty. Review: Baldwin 1907. Vicent, Bernard, and James Casey. 1987. Casa y familia en la Granada del Antiguo Rgimen. In La Familia en la Espaa Mediterranea (s. XV-XIX), edited by Pierre Vilar. Pp. 172-211. Barcelona: Crtica. ITALIAN MEDIEVAL COLLECTIONS Duby, Georges, and Jacques Le Goff. (eds.) 1981. Famiglia e Parentela nellItalia Medievale. Bologna: Mulino. 206 P. GENERAL Drell, Joanna H. 1992. Kinship and Conquest: Family Strategies in the Principality of Salerno During the Norman Period 1077-1194. Ithaca: Cornell University Press. Haas, Louis. HAVE 1995. Il Mio Buono Compare: Choosing Godparents and the Uses of Baptismal Kinship in Renaissance Florence. Journal of Social History 29 (2): 341-356. Herlihy, David.

1969. Family Solidarity in Medieval Italian History. In Economy, Society, and Government in Medieval Italian History: Essays in Memory of Robert L. Reynolds, edited by David Herlihy, Robert S. Lopez, and Vsevolod Slessarev. Pp. 173-184. Kent. Herlihy, David, and Christiane Klapisch-Zuber. 1978. Les Toscans et Leur Familles. Une tude du Catasto Florentin de 1427. Paris: Presses de la Fondation Nationale des Sciences Politiques. Reviews: Martines 1979; Kent F. 1980; Gutmann 1981. Hughes, Diane O. 1975. Urban Growth and Family Structure in Medieval Genoa. Past and Present 66: 328. Hughes, Diane O. 1977. Kinship and Neighbors in Medieval Genoa. In The Medieval City, edited by Harry Miskimin and Davod Herlihy. Pp. 95-112. New Haven: Yale University Press. Martin, Jean-Marie. 2002. Personal Names and Family Structure in Medieval Southern Italy and Sicily. In Personal Names Studies of Medieval Europe: Social Identity and Familial Structures, edited by George Beech, Monique Bourin and Pascal Chareille. Pp. 109-117. Kalamazoo: Medieval Institute Publications, Western Michigan University. Mineo, E. Igor. 2001. Nobilit di Stato: Famiglie e Identit Aristocratiche nel Tardo Meioevo. La Sicilia. Roma: Donzelli. Raggio, Osvaldo. 1990. Faide et Parentele: Lo Stato Genovese Visto dalla Fontanabuona. Turin: Giulio Einaudi. Review: Smail 1996. MODERN SPECIAL ISSUES Melograni, P. 1988. Famiglia Italiana dallOttocento a Oggi. Bari: Laterza. Signorini, Italo. (ed.) 1987. Forme di Comparatico Italiano. LUomo 11 (1). Solinas, Pier G. (ed.) 1992. Forme di Famiglia: Ricerche per un Atlanta Italiano. Pt 1. La Ricerca Folklorica 25. Solinas, Pier G. (ed.) 1993. Forme di Famiglia: Ricerche per un Atlanta Italiano. Pt 2. La Ricerca Folklorica 27. Terpstra, Nicholas. (ed.)

2000. The Politics of Ritual Kinship: Cofraternities and Social Order in Early Modern Italy. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Reviews: Banker 2001; DAndrea 2001. GENERAL Alinei, Mario. 1992. Onomasiologia strutturale: Il sistema lessicale del padrinaggio nei dialetti italiani e corsi. Quaderni di Semantici 13: 195-222. Anderson, Gallatin. 1956. A Survey of Italian Godparenthood. Kroeber Anthropological Society Papers 15: 1110. Anderson, Gallatin. 1957. Il Comparragio: The Italian Godparenthood Complex. Southwestern Journal of Anthropology 13 91): 32-53. Arioti, M. 1985. Sistema di parentela e scambi matrimoniali in una communit contadina dellUmbria. Rassegna Italiana di Sociologia 24 (2): 253-288. Arioti, M. 1988. Non Desiderare la Donna dAltri.Gruppi Sociali, Parentela e Matrimonio nella Communit Mezzadrile di Prodo. Milano: Angeli. Barbagli, M., and D. I. Kertzer. 1992. Storia della Famiglia Italiana, 1750-1950. Bologna: Il Mulino. Berkner, D. 1984. La famiglia ceppo e il ciclo di sviluppo della famiglia contadina. In Famiglia e Mutamento Sociale, edited by M. Barbagli. Pp. 116-140. Bologna: Mulino. Bertoletti, Nello. 2006. Un continuatore di amita e la flessione imparisillaba nei nomi di parentela. Lingua e Stile 41 (2): 159-200. Bestard-Camps, Joan. 1986. Casa y Familia: Parentesco y Reproduccin Domstica en Formentera. Barcelona: Institut dEstudis Balerics. Translated into English as Whats in a Relative? Household and Family in Formentera, by Robert Pitt. New York and Oxford: Berg, 1991. Review: Pina-Cabral 1994. Bianco, C. 1983. Paesano o forestiero? Esperimenti genealogice sullemigrazione. LUomo 7 (1-2): 237-251. Bianco, C. 1988. The Mezzadria Family: A Study of Kinship Roles in the Life Cycle. Ethnologia Europaea 18: 135-148.

Biondi, G., and A. Vienna. 2001. Parent et patronymes chez les minorits ethniques en Italie du Sud et en Sicile. Le Patronyme: Histoire, Anthropologie, Socit, edit par G. Brunet, P. Darlu et G. Zei. P. 285-299. Paris: CNRS. Cammarosano, Paolo. 1977. Les structures familiales dans les villes de lItalie communale (XIIe-XIVe sicles). In Famille et Parent dans lOccident Mdival, edited by Georges Duby and Jacques Le Goff. Pp. 181-194. Rome: cole Franaise de Rome. Cardona, G. R. 1988. I nomi della parentela. In Famiglia Italiana dallOttocento a Oggi, a cura di P. Melograni. Pp. 287-325. Bari: Laterza. Delille, Grard. 1976. Classi sociali e scrambi matrimoniali nel Salernitano. Quaderni Storici 33: 983-997. Delille, Grard. 1985. Famille et Propriet dans la Royaume de Naples (XVe-XIXe Sicle). Rome. Translated into Italian as Famiglia e Propriet nel Regno di Napoli, by Grard Delille. Torino: Einaudi, 1988. Delille, Grard. 1994. Consanguinit proche en Italie du XVIe au XIXe sicle In pouser au Plus Proche: Inceste, Prohibitions et Stratgies Matrimoniales autour de la Mditerranne, edited by Pierre Bonte. Pp. 323-340. Paris: ditions de lcole des Hautes tudes en Sciences Sociales. Donati, Pierpaolo. 1974. Sulla mobilit matrimoniale in Italia: endogamia ed esogamia professionale nei matrimoni in Italia (1969-70). Quaderni di Sociologia 23 (4): 290-306. DOnofrio, Salvatore. 1987. Amicizia ed eros nel comparatico siciliano. Prime considerazioni sull'incesto di terzo tipo e latomo di parentela spirituale. LUomo 11 (1). (Special Issue: Forme di Comparatico Italiano.) DOnofrio, Salvatore. 2000. Identit et parents en Sicile. LHomme 154-155: 225-240. (Special issue: Question de Parent.) Douglass, William A. 1980. The South Italian Family: A Critique. Journal of Family History 5: 338-359. Garigue, Philip, and Raymond W. Firth. 1956. Kinship Organisation of Italianates in London. In Two Studies of Kinship in London, edited by Raymond W. Firth, Pp. 67-93. London: University of London/Athlone Press. Grilli, Simonetta. HAVE

1992. Famiglie vecchie e parenti alla persa. Cicli domestici, dinamiche genealogiche e mobilit poderale in una fattoria del Senese. La Ricerca Folklorica 25: 25-34. (Special Issue: Forme di Famiglia: Ricerche per un Atlante Italiano. Pt. 1.) Jud, J. HAVE 1908. Sprachgeographische Untersuchungen. IV. Oberitalienisch barba Onkel. Archiv fr das Studium der Neuren Sprachen und Literaturen 62: 96-102. Kertzer, D. I. 1984. Family Life in Central Italy, 1880-1910: Sharecropping, Wage Labor, and Coresidence. New Brunswick, NJ: Rutgers University Press. Reviews: Sarti 1985; Rose S. 1986; Stirling 1986. Kertzer, D. I., and D. P. Hogan. 1989. Family, Political Economy, and Demographic Change: The Transformation of Life in Casalecchio, Italy, 1861-1921. Madison, WI: University of Wisconsin Press. Reviews: Holmes 1991; Laslett P. 1991; Litchfield 1991; Pitkin 1991; Powell V. 1991; Tilly 1991. LaPalombara, Joseph. 1967. Clientela e Parentela: Studio sui Gruppi dinteresse in Italia. Milano: Edizioni di Comunit. 403 P. Luzzati, Michele. 1977. Familles nobles et familles marchandes Pise et en Toscane dans les Bas Moyen Age. In Famille et Parent dans lOccident Mdival, edited by Georges Duby and Jacques Le Goff. Pp. 275-296. Rome: cole Franaise de Rome. Magatti, M., and E. Mingione. 1994. Stratgies familiales et dveloppement conomique: Les deux cas italiens. LEthnographie 90 (115): 51-72. (Special Issue: conomie et Parent.) Manfredini, Matteo, and Marco Breschi. 2008. Marriage and the Kin Network: Evidence from a 19th-Century Italian Community. In Kinship and Demographic Behavior in the Past, edited by Tommy Bengtsson, and Geraldine P. Mineau. Pp. 15-36. Dordrecht and London: Springer. Merzario, Raul. 1981. Il Paese Stretto. Strategie Matrimoniali nella Diocese di Como, XVI-XVIII Secolo. Torino: Einaudi. Merzario, Raul. 1990. Land, Kinship, and Consanguineous Marriage in Italy from the Seventeenth to the Nineteenth Centuries. Journal of Family History 15 (4): 529-546. Miller, Maria G., and Roy A. Miller. 1987. Mamme, mammane, matrigne, and madrine: The Role of Women in Ritual Kinship in Central Lucania. LUomo 11 (1). (Special Issue: Forme di Comparatico Italiano.) Minicuci, M.

1986. La memoria genealogica in un paese della Calabria di oggi. In La Modle Familial Europen. Normes, Dviances, Contrle du Pouvoir. Pp. 155-163. Roma: Ecole Franaise de Rome. Minicuci, M. 1989. Qui e Altrove. Famiglie di Calabria e di Argentina. Milano: Franco Angeli. [Cross-listed in AMERICA.] Moss, Leonard W., and Stephen C. Cappannari. HAVE 1960. Patterns of Kinship, Comparaggio and Community in a South Italian Village. Anthropological Quarterly 33 (1): 24-32. Ortalli, Gherardo. 1977. La famille Bologne au XIIIe sicle, entre la ralit des groupes infrieurs et la mentalit des classes dominnates. In Famille et Parent dans lOccident Mdival, edited by Georges Duby and Jacques Le Goff. Pp. 205-223. Rome: cole Franaise de Rome. Owen-Hughes, D. 1979. Ideali domestici e comporatmento sociale: Testimonianze della Genova medievale. In La Famiglia nella Storia, a cura di Charles E. Rosenberg. Pp. 147-184. Torino: Einaudi. Palumbo, Berardino. 1986. Esser fatto cristiano: Sacralit, simbolismo e valenze sociali dei legami di parentela spirituale in una comunit sannita. LUomo 10 (2). Palumbo, Berardino. 1987. La lunga catena dei compari: Struttura e mutamento in un sistema di comparatico italiano. LUomo 11 (1). (Special Issue: Forme di Comparatico Italiano.) Palumbo, Berardino. 1991. Madre Madrina. Rituale, Parentela e Identit in un Paese del Sannio (San Marco dei Cavoti). Milano: Franco Angeli. Palumbo, Berardino. HAVE 1992. Casa di mugliera, casa di galera. Identit, residenza e parentela in un paese del Sannio. In Forme di Famiglia: Ricerche per un Atlanta Italiano. Pt 1. La Ricerca Folklorica 25: 7-24. Papa, C. 1983. Il ciclo della vita familare mezzadrile. Alcuni resultati di uninchiesta nel commune di Santa Maria Tiberina. LUomo 7 (1-2): 185-204. Pellegrini, Giovan B. 1977. Terminologia matrimoniale. Settimane di Studio della Fondazione Centro italiano di Studi sull'Alto Medioevo 24: 43-102. Pettener, D., P. Gueresi et F. Martuzzi Veronesi. 2001. Patronymes et structure gntique de la Rpublique de Saint-Marin. In Le Patronyme: Histoire, Anthropologie, Socit, edit par G. Brunet, P. Darlu et G. Zei. Pp. 353-365. Paris: CNRS. Piasere, Leonardo.

1994. Fratelli dItalia. Fraternit, sororit et ingalit dans les terminologies de parent italiennes. In Les Cadets, edit par G. Ravis-Giordani et M. Segalen. Paris: CNRS. Piselle, F. 1981. Parentela ed Emigrazione. Mutamenti e Continuit in una Communit Calabrese. Torino: Einaudi. Resta, Patrizia. 1987. Tradizione ed innovazione: Un esempio pugliese di comparatico simmetrico. LUomo 11 (1). (Special Issue: Forme di Comparatico Italiano.) Roncire, Charles M. de la.. 1977. Une famille florentine au XIVe sicle: Les Velluti. In Famille et Parent dans lOccident Mdival, edited by Georges Duby and Jacques Le Goff. Pp. 227-248. Rome: cole Franaise de Rome. Rosetti, Gabriella. 1977. Histoire familiale et structures sociales et politiques Pise aux Xie et XIIe sicles. In Famille et Parent dans lOccident Mdival, edited by Georges Duby and Jacques Le Goff. Pp. 159-180. Rome: cole Franaise de Rome. Salvioni, C. HAVE 1897. Per i nomi di parentela in Italia a proposite di un recente studio. Rendiconti, Reale Instituto Lombardo di Scienze e Lettere Serie 2, 30: 1497-1520. Milano. [Reaction to Tappolet 1895.] Sciama, Lidia D. 2003. A Venetian Island: Environment, History and Change in Burano. New York: Berghahn Books. [Pp. 75-116: Kinship and residence.] Reviews: Siporin 2005; Scott 2007. Sellan, Giuliana. 1983a. Il nome e la terra: procedure di classificazione in una societ contadina del Nord Italia. LUomo 7 (1-2): 74-92. Sellan, Giuliana. 1983b. Scambi Matrimoniali in un Villaggio Mocheno. Report 7. Universita degli Studi di Verona, Facolt di Magistero-Istituto di Psicologia. Sellan, Giuliana 1987. Aspetti della parentela spirituale tra i Mcheni. LUomo 11 (1). (Special Issue: Forme di Comparatico Italiano.) Severi, Carlo. 1980. Le Nom de ligne. Les sobriquets dans un village dmilie. LHomme 20 (4): 105118. Solinas, Pier G. 1987. La dot e la part. Transmission des biens, fils et filles dans les familles polynucleaires des metayers Sienneis. In Femmes et Patrimonie dans les Socits Rurales de lEurope Mditranenne, edit par G. Ravis-Giordani. Pp. 166-188. Paris: Editions du Centre National de la Recherche Scientifique.

Solinas, Pier G. HAVE 1992. La residenza instabile. In Forme di Famiglia: Ricerche per un Atlanta Italiano. Pt 1. La Ricerca Folklorica 25: 41-50. Solinas, Pier G., and P. Clementi. 1983. I cicli di sviluppo delle famiglie mezzadrili del senese. LUomo 7 (1-2): 165-184. Tabacco, Giovanni. 1977. Le rapport de parent comme instrument de domination consortiale: Quelques exemples pimontais. In Famille et Parent dans lOccident Mdival, edited by Georges Duby and Jacques Le Goff. Pp. 153-158. Rome: cole Franaise de Rome. Tukey, Ann. 1967. Italian Dialect Kinship Terminology. Italica 44: 344-353. HAVE

Vincenzi-Amato, D. 1988. La famiglie e il diritto. In Famiglia Italiana dallOttocento a Oggi, a cura di P. Melograni. Pp. 629-700. Bari: Laterza. Violante, Cinzio. 1977. Quelques caractristiques des structures familiales en Lombardie, milie et Toskane aux Xie et XIIe sicles. In Famille et Parent dans lOccident Mdival, edited by Georges Duby and Jacques Le Goff. Pp. 87-148. Rome: cole Franaise de Rome. Yanagisako, Sylvia. 2002. Producing Culture and Capital: Family Firms in Italy. Princeton: Princeton University Press. Zeli, Rosanna. 1985. Di barba zio e di alcuni nomi del ginepro: Osservazione su due recenti articoli. Vox Romanica 44: 87-104. PORTUGUESE MEDIEVAL Durand, Robert. 2002. Family Memory and the Durability of the Nomen Paternum. In Personal Names Studies of Medieval Europe: Social Identity and Familial Structures, edited by George Beech, Monique Bourin and Pascal Chareille. Pp. 77-86. Kalamazoo: Medieval Institute Publications, Western Michigan University. Lurdes, Rosa Maria de. 1996. Mariage et empchements canoniques de parent dans la socit portugaise (14551520). Mlanges de lEcole Franaise de Rome. Moyen-Age, Temps modernes 108 (2): 525-608. MODERN Arajo, A. C. 1996. A esfera pblica da vida privada: a famlia nas Artes de bem morrer. Revista Portuguesa de Historia 31: 341-371. Coimbra. Brettell, Caroline B. HAVE

1991. Kinship and Contract: Property Transmission and Family Relations in Northwestern Portugal. Comparative Studies in Society and History 33 (3): 443-465. Callier-Boisvert, Colette. 1968. Remarques sur le systme de parent et sur la famille au Portugal. LHomme 8 (2): 87-103. ONeill, Brian J. 1983. Dying and Inheriting in Rural Trs-os-Montes. Journal of the Anthropological Society of Oxford 14: 44-74. ONeill, Brian J. 1987. Pul Eliya in the Portuguese Mountains: A Comparative Essay on Kinship Practices and Family Ideology. Sociologia Ruralis 27 (4): 278-303. Rowland, D. 1984. Sistemas familiars e padres demogrficos em Portugal: Questes para uma investigao comparada. Ler Histria 3: 13-32. Santos, Armindo dos. 1986. Configurations Spatiales et Organisation Sociale: Structure Agraire et Systme de Parent dans le Village de Chos de la Rgion de Beira-Beixa au Portugal. Ph.D. dissertation. Paris: cole des Hautes tudes en Sciences Sociales. Wall, Karin. 1998. Famlias no Campo: Passado e Presente em Duas Freguesias do Baixo Minho. Lisboa: Publicacos Dom Quixote. Review: Callier-Boisvert 2000. Willems, E. 1962. On Portuguese Family Structure. International Journal of Comparative Sociology 3 (1): 65-79. ROMANIAN MEDIEVAL Cron, Gheorghe. 1969. Instituii Medievale Romnesti: nfrirea de Moie; Jurtorii. Bucharest: Editura Academiei Republicii Socialiste Romania. [Medieval Romanian Institutions: Kinship; Jurors.] Reviews: Hitchins 1971; Fischer-Galati 1975. MODERN Binder, Stephan. 1932. Kind, Knabe, Mdchen in den Nrdlichen Dialekten des Dakoromanischen Sprachgebietes. Ein Beitrag zur Onomasiologie. Bukarest: Presa. Bogrea, V. 1922. O problema semantica. Dacoromania 2 (1921-1922): 664-666. Cluj. [On the semantic connection between knee and generation.]

Bonfante, Giuliano. HAVE 1959. Sulla latinit del Romeno. Acta Philologica della Societas Academica Dacoromana 2: 189-195. Roma. [Romanian kin terms compared to Latin and other Romance systems.] Reprinted in Studii Romeni, para Giuliano Bonfante. Pp. 85-89. Roma: Societ Accademica Romena, 1973. HAVE

Chelcea, Liviu. HAVE 2003. Ancestors, Domestic Groups, and the Socialist State: Housing Nationalization and Restitution in Romania. Comparative Studies in Society and History 45 (4): 714-740. Ciobanel, Alina I. 1996. Tipologia relatiilor de rudenie. Anuarul Institutului de Etnografie i Folclor Constantin Brailoiu 7: 19-35. Bucureti. [Pp. 34-35: English summary; Romanian kinship in the 20th century; typological aspects.] Constantinescu, Nicolae. 1987. Relatiile de Rudenie n Societatile Traditionale: Reflexe n Folclorul Romnesc. Bucuresti: Editura Academiei Republicii Socialiste Romnia. 183 P. [English summary.] Constantinescu, Nicolae. 2000. Etnologia si Folclorul Relatiilor de Rudenie. Bucuresti: Editura Univers. 247 P. [Revised edition of Constantinescu 1987] Cuisenier, Jean. 1994. Le Feu Vivant: La Parent et ses Rituels dans les Carpates. Paris: Presses Universitaires de France. Review: Mesnil 1995. Diaconescu, Paula. HAVE 1979. Un phenomne de symetrie entre la flexion et la catgorie smantique de parent. Revue Roumaine de Linguistique 24/ Cahiers de Linguistique Thorique et Applique16: 107-116. Graur, A. 1937. Notes detymologie roumaine. Bulletin Linguistique 5. [Pp. 62-63: On Rom bunik grandfather.] Lorint, Florica. 1967. Traditia Moasei de neam in Gorj. Revista de Etnografie si Folclor 12 (2): 127132. Lorint, Florica, and Constantin Eretescu. 1967. Mosii in obiceiurile vietii familiale. Revista de Etnografie si Folclor 12 (4): 299308. [p. 308: French summary; 300, n. 2: etymology and use as kin term] HAVE Marcu, L. P. 1972-1973. Aspecte ale corelatiei dintre structura familiei i terminologia de rudenie la vlahii balcanica. Analele Societatii Limba Romna 3-4: 281-287. Melnik, V. HAVE

1961. Yn legeture ku petrunderia elementulei slav reseritian yn graiurile moldovenesht (terminei pentru nociunia bunik). Limba i Literatura Moldoveniaske 4: 26-33. Pandrea, Andrei. 1980-1981. Le mariage et la rsidence a Boioara (Tara Lovistei). Bulletinul Bibliotecii Romane 8 (12): 61-134. Pop, Mihai. 1979. The Relationship between the System of Kinship Relations and the System of Customs. In Europe as a Cultural Area. 9th International Congress of Anthropological and Ethnological Sciences, Chicago, 1973, edited by Jean Cuisenier. Pp. 135-146. The Hague: Mouton. Popovici, Victoria. 1990. Romanische Verwandtschaftsnamen: Die Subsysteme der sozialen Verwandtschaft. Revue Roumaine de Linguistique 35 (3): 167-182. Sala, M. HAVE 1955. Termenii pentru unchi dup Atlasul Lingvistic Romn. Studii i Cercetri Lingvistice 6 (1-2): 133-155. [Terms for uncle; summaries in Russian (pp. 153-154) and French (p. 154-155).] Scurtu, Vasile. 1962. Contributii la studiul terminologiei de nrudire n limba romna. Contributii Lingvistice 7 (2): 275-292. Scurtu, Vasile. 1963. Contributii la studiul terminologiei de nrudire n limba romna. Studii i Cercetri Lingvistice 14: 457-469. Scurtu, Vasile. 1966. Termenii de nrudire n Limba Romna. Bucureti: Editura Academiei Republicii Socialiste Romnia. Todoran, Romulus. 1943. Moa sage-femme. Dacoromania 10 (2): 278-284. HAVE

Vtescu, C. 1997. Termes dorigine latine concernant la parent, conservs en albanais et en roumain. Revue des tudes Sud-Est Europennes 35 (3-4): 189-196. [Cross-listed in ALBANIAN.] Vulpe, Magdalena. HAVE 1966. Rpartition territoriale des noms de parent en Daco-Roumain (daprs lAlr). Revue Roumaine de Linguistique 11: 31-61. SARDINIAN COLLECTIONS Oppo, A. 1990. Famiglia e Matrimonio nella Societ Sarda Tradizionale. Cagliari: La Tarantola. GENERAL Addari Rapallo, C.

1990. Nome e famiglia in Sardegna. In Famiglia e Matrimonio nella Societ Sarda Tradizionale, edited by A. Oppo. Cagliari: La Tarantola. Angioni, G. 1990. Nota sulla famiglia sarda tradizionale. In Famiglia e Matrimonio nella Societ Sarda Tradizionale, edited by A. Oppo. Cagliari: La Tarantola. Da Re, Maria G. 1987. Tous gaux, tous differentes. Notes sur le systme de transmission des bien materiels en Trexenta (Sardaigne). In Femmes et Patrimonie dans les Socits Rurales de lEurope Mditranenne, edit par G. Ravis-Giordani. Pp. 137-162. Paris: Editions du Centre National de la Recherche Scientifique. Da Re, Maria G. 1990. Forme di patrimonio in parentela a Baunei. In Famiglia e Matrimonio nella Societ Sarda Tradizionale, edited by A. Oppo. Cagliari: La Tarantola. Da Re, Maria G. 1993. Gli eredi della Santa. Una festa di parenti a Baunei (Sardegna). In Forme di Famiglia, edited by P. G. Solinas. La Ricecra Folklorica 27. Da Re, Maria G. 1997. Gruppi parentali in Sardegna. In Famiglia Meridionale Senza Familismo. Strategie Economiche, Reti di Relazioni i Parentela, edited by B. Meloni. Roma: Donzelli. Da Re, Maria G. 1998. tre parents. Sang, hritage et frquentation en Sardaigne. Europaea: Journal des Europanistes 4 (1). Da Re, Maria G. 2000. La parentela consanguinea in Sardegna. Qualche riflessione sul metodo della ricerca. Revista de Filologia Romanica 17: 97-108. Diefenbach, Lorenz. 1863. Review of Dictionnaire dtymologie Francaise dAprs les Rsultats de la Science Moderne par A. Scheler. Bruxelles, 1862. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 12: 75-80. [P. 77: etymology of Sard cunchiu uncle from *coavunculus.] Blasco Ferrer, Eduardo. 2001. Etimologia ed etnolinguistica: Zoonimi parentelari e totemismo in Sardegna. Quaderni di Semantica: Rivista Internazionale di Semantica Teorica e Applicata 22 (2, 44): 187-214. [Animal names and kin terms.] Meloni, B. 1990. Economia familiare e regolazione sociale delleconomia in centro Sardegna. In Famiglia e Matrimonio nella Societ Sarda Tradizionale, edited by A. Oppo. Cagliari: La Tarantola. Murru Corriga, Giannetta. 1990. Dalla Montagna ai Campidani. Famiglia e Mutamento in una Communit di Pastori. Cagliari: EDES. Murru Corriga, Giannetta.

1993. Do madre in figlia, di padre in figlio. Un caso di descendenza parallela in Sardegna. In Forme di Famiglia, edited by P. G. Solinas. La Ricecra Folklorica 27. Murru Corriga, Giannetta. 1996. La discendenza in Sardegna. Annali della Facolt di Scienze dellEducazione. Cagliari. Murru Corriga, Giannetta. 1997. Discendenza e residenza nella Sardegna moderna. In Famiglia Meridionale Senza Familismo. Strategie Economiche, Reti di Relazioni i Parentela, edited by B. Meloni. Roma: Donzelli. Murru Corriga, Giannetta. 2000. La carne e il sangue. Appunti sui vincoli di parentela in Sardegna. Revista de Filologia Romanica 17: 109-128 Oppo, A. 1990. La nuclearit della famiglia in Sardegna. In Famiglia e Matrimonio nella Societ Sarda Tradizionale, edited by A. Oppo. Cagliari: La Tarantola. Ortu, C. G. 1988. Famiglia, patrimonio e azienda nella sardegna moderna; I coni di Masullas. Quaderni Storici 86 (1). Ortu, C. G. 1990. Famiglia e azienda nella Sardegna feudale e moderna: Variabili mediterranee dek tempo genealogico. In Famiglia e Matrimonio nella Societ Sarda Tradizionale, edited by A. Oppo. Cagliari: La Tarantola. Solinas, P. G. 1990. Famiglia sarda e famiglia toscana. In Famiglia e Matrimonio nella Societ Sarda Tradizionale, edited by A. Oppo. Cagliari: La Tarantola. SLAVIC GENERAL Bari, Henrik. 1919. Albanorumnische Studien. T. 1. Sarajewo: Instituts fr Balkanforschung. [P. 7980: etymology of Slav *nevsta bride; cross-listed in ALBANIAN.] HAVE Berneker, Erich. 1899. Von der Vertretung des idg. eu im baltisch-slavischen Sprachzweig. Indogermanische Forschungen 10: 145-167. [P. 155: etymology of Slav *urin wifes brother as cognate with *swe-kuros husbands father; 166: etymology of Slav nevesta bride.] Brandt, Roman. HAVE 1908. Zolovka. In Jagi-Festschrift. Zbornik v Slavu Vatroslava Jagia. Pp. 348-354. Berlin: Weidmannsche Buchhandlung. [Slavic term for husbands sister.] Bruer, Herbert. 1961. Slavische Sprachwissenschaft. I. Einleitung. Lautlehre. Berlin: Walter de Gruyter. [P. 25: netiji; 126: stryji; 133: zolovka.]

Brckner, Aleksander. 1907. Review of Vergleichende Slavische Grammatik, by W. Vondrk. Archiv fr Salvische Philologie 29: 110-120. [P. 119: Slavic *nestera niece as contraction of neti+sestra.] Brckner, Aleksander. 1910. Etymologische Glossen. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 43: 301327. [P. 304: shortened forms of some Slavic kin terms.] HAVE Brckner, A. 1926-1827. Wzory etymologii i krytyki rdowej. Slavia 5: 417-438. [Pp. 435-436: on Slavic terms of affinity.] HAVE Curta, Florin. 2001. The Making of the Slavs: History and Archeology of the Lower Danube Region c. 500-700. New York: Cambridge University Press. [Pp. 311-334: segmentary societies and the early Slavs.] Review: Barford 2002. Darden, Bill J. 1978. On the Slavic Reflexes of Indo-European *pt. General Linguistics 18 (1): 10-13. [Specifically on a consonant cluster found in several kin terms.] DellAgata, G. 1967. La struttura delle terminologia della parentela acquisita nelle lingue slave. Studi e Saggi Linguistici 7: 23-48. Pisa. (Suplemento alla revista LItalia Dialettale.) Frnkel, Ernst. HAVE 1950. Slavisch gospod, lit. viepats, preuss. waispattin und Zubehr. Zeitschrift fr Slavische Philologie 20: 51-89. [extensively on Slavic terms for nephew and niece.] Frnkel, Ernst. 1952. Baltisches und Slavisches. I. Zur Gutturalbehandlung im Baltischen und Slavischen. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 70: 129-152. [P. 130: on Slav *swekr, *swekry husbands parents.] HAVE Gasparini, Evel. 1953. Lesogamia degli antichi Slavi. Ricerchi Slavistiche 2. Gasparini, Evel. 1956. La Civilt Matriarcale degli Slavi: Diritto Famigliare e Esogamia. Venezia: La Goliardica. 567 P. Gasparini, Evel. 1973. Il Matriarcato Slavo: Antropologia Culturale dei Protoslavi. Firenzi: Sansoni. [Pp. 215-490: Social Culture. Includes extended family, postmarital residence, clans, marriage.] Review: Eliade 1974. Gippert, Jost. HAVE

2002. Neues zu Slavisch st aus lterem pt? In Namen, Sprachen und Kulturen. Imena, Jeziki in Kulture. Festschrift fr Heinz Dieter Pohl zum 60. Geburtstag, herausgegeben von Peter Anreiter, Peter Ernst und Isolde Hausner. Pp. 239-256. Wien: Praesens. Gob, Zbigniew. 1977. Nazwa etniczna Serbowie (sch. Srbi gu. Serbja) na tle etnonimi sowiaskije. Akademija Nauka i Umjetnosti Bosne i Hercegovine, Posebna Izdanja. Kn. 34. Odeljenje Drutvenih Nauka, Kn. 6. Sarajevo. Gob, Zbigniew. HAVE 1982. About the Connection Between Kinship Terms and Some Ethnica in Slavic (The Case of *Srbi and *Slovne). International Journal of Slavic Linguistics and Poetics 25/26: 165-171. (Special Issue: Slavic Linguistics and Poetics: Studies for Edward Stankiewicz on His 60th Birthday 17 November 1980.) Gob, Zbigniew. HAVE 1994. Slavic elovk homo against the Background of Proto-Slavic Terminology. Journal of Indo-European Studies 22 (3-4): 179-193. Hamp, Eric. 1978. Slavic stryj fathers brother. General Linguistics 18 (1): 1-9. HAVE

Hermann, Eduard. HAVE 1935. Entstehung der slavischen Substantiva ayf -yi. Zeitschrift fr Slavische Philologie 12: 119-120. [Feminine forms of certain Slavic kin terms.] LHermitte, R. 1959. Compte-rendu de Trubacev 1957. Bulletin de la Socit de Linguistique de Paris 54 (2): 11. Hube, Joseph. 1836. Geschichtiche Darstellung der Erbfolgerechte der Slaven. Posen: Theodore Scherk. 96 P. Iljinskij, Grigorij. 1902. Zur slavischen Wortbildung. III. Die Etymologie des Wortes nevsta. Archiv fr Slavische Philologie 24: 227-228. (Followed by editors commentary pp. 228-229). Iljinskij, Grigorij. HAVE 1906. Slavische Etymologien. III. Ursl. svst. Archiv fr Slavische Philologie 28: 455457. [Term for wifes sister.] Iljinskij, Grigorij. 1907. Der Reflex des indogermansichen Diphthongs u im Urslavischen. Archiv fr Slavische Philologie 29: 481-497. [Pp. 495-496: the Slavic term for great-grandfather and its connections.] HAVE Kalima, Jalo. 1941. Slav. *sbr Nachbar, Kamerad und balt. *sebras. Zeitschrift fr Slavische Philologie 17: 342-350. [On social terminology, including some associated kinship concepts. Borrowings into Finnish.] Kortlandt, Frederik. HAVE

1982. IE *pt in Slavic. Folia Linguistica Historica 3 (1): 25-28. [Includes discussion of Slavic reflexes of IE terms for nephew, niece, and fathers brother.] Kowalewsky, Maxim M. 1890. Marriage among the Early Slavs. Folklore 1 (4): 463-480. Lvov, A. S. 1957. Iz staroslavjanskata leksika: -enich-nevstnik. Blgarski ezik 7: 44-46. Machek, Vaclav. HAVE 1942. Aus der slavischen Hochzeitsterminologie. Zeitschrift fr Slavische Philologie 18: 315-331. [Includes *nevsta and *svat.] Machek, Vclav. HAVE 1948. tymologies slaves. 1. Terminologie de lancienne organisation sociale slave (*pan, *voldyka). Recueil Linguistique de Bratislava 1: 93-101. Machek, Vclav. 1968. Etymologick slovnk jazyka ceskho. Praha: Academia. [Pp. 39-40: baba; 667-668: ujec, 422: otec; 584: stryc, etc.] Meillet, Antoine. 1918. Les vocatifs slaves du type mo. Mmoires de la Socit de Linguistique 20: 95102. Meillet, Antoine. HAVE 1902. Etymologies. 7. pesti, pestera caverne. In tudes sur ltymologie et le Vocabulaire du Vieux Slave, par Antoine Meillet. Pp. 166-168. Paris: Librairie mile Boullon. [P. 167: on ORuss nestera niece and Lat matertera mothers sister.] Meillet, Antoine. 1953. Les origines du vocabulaire slave. Revue des tudes Slaves 5: 5-13. [Pp. 6-7: IE kin terms in Slavic.] HAVE Meillet, Antoine, and Andr Vaillant. 1934. Le Slave Commun. Paris: H. Champion. [Pp. 30, 52, 60, 62, 78, 95, 113, 128, 149, 163, 177, 348, 425, 427, 496, 498: various aspects of kin terms; 495: a list of kin terms; Reviews: Kent 1934; Gray L. 1935. Melich, Johann. 1913. Miscellen. Archiv fr Slavische Philologie 34: 545-552. [P. 549: the -stems in Slavic, including kin terms.] HAVE Meriggi, Bruno. HAVE 1962. Su alcuni termini di parentela Slavi. In Studi in Onore di Ettore lo Gatto e Giovanni Nauer. Pp. 477-490. Firenze: Sansoni. Meriggi, Bruno. HAVE 1973. Nomi di parentela Slavi. In Serta Slavica in Memoriam Aloisii Schmaus, herausgegeben von Wolfgang Gesemann. Pp. 492-498. Mnchen: Rudolf Trofenik

Mikkola, J. J. HAVE 1908. Zur slavischen Etymologie. 6. Abg. stryj patruus. Indogermansiceh Forschungen 23: 124-125. Mikkola, J. J. 1913. Urslavische Grammatik. Einfhrung in das Vergleichende Studium der Slavischen Sprachen. Heidelberg: Carl Winter. [Pp. 41, 44, 50, 52, 58, 74, 64, 65, 76, 120: various aspects of the phonology and morphology of Slavic kin terms.] HAVE Revised edition, by Peeter Arumaa. Heidelberg: Carl Winter, 1965. Reviews: Worth 1967. Mozdzierz, Barbara M. 1997. Tracing the Development of Proto-Slavic. Review of The Dawn of Slavic: An Introduction to Slavic Philology, by Alexander M. Schenker. Slavic and East European Journal 41 (4): 678-681. [P. 679: the treatment of consonant clusters in Slavic, including examples such as sestra, nestera and netiji.] Orr, Robert. 2000. Common Slavic Nominal Morphology: A New Synthesis. Bloomington: Slavica. [Pp. 32-33, n. 43: on the possible cases of syncope in Slavic, e.g. pastorka stepdaughter (after Szemerenyi); 70: On the formative role of semantic change in *gwenHwoman, wife on the evolution of IE gender system (after Miranda 1975); 93: on the preservation of a *-stem paradigm of *swekr husband's mother in Slavic vs. its loss in Baltic.] Review: Hart D. 2002. Pedersen, Holger. 1895. Das Indogermanische s im Slavischen. Indogermanische Forschungen 5: 33-87. [Pp. 34, no. 8: snxa daughter-in-law.] HAVE Pedersen, Holger. 1934-1935. Lit. iau. Studi Baltici 4: 150-154. [P. 153: on Slavic term for wifes brother.] Pikur, Milena. HAVE 1965. Pomenska analiza besede baba. Jezik in Slovstvo 10: 6-16. Ljubljana. [Mostly on non-kin (zoological) extensions of this kin term.] Pohl, H. D. 1980. Slavisch st aus lterem *pt? Die Sprache 26 (1): 62-63. [An unproven correspondence involving Slavic terms for nephew and fathers brother.] Popovich, Ivan. 1959. Blg. maika, srbohrv. majka. Blgarsi Ezik 9: 62-65. [Name for mother in Bulgarian and Serbo-Croatian.] Prusk, Fr. HAVE 1895. Slavische miscellen. 4. Slav. nevsta. Heterosyllabisches e-u = lit.-slav. ev. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 33: 160-162.

Rhamm, Karl. 1902. Der Verkehr der Geschlechter unter den Slaven in seinen gegenstzlichen Erscheinungen. Globus 82: 103-108. Rozwadowski, Jan M. 1928. Cimbri Sjabri. In Sbornik statei v chest' akademika Alekseia Ivanovicha Sobolevskogo, izdannyi ko dniu ego rozhdeniia Akademiei nauk po pochinu ego uchenikov. Pod redaktsiei V. N. Peretz. P. 361. Leningrad: Izd-vo Akademii nauk SSSR. [On certain Slavic affinal terms.] Reprinted in: Wybr Pisem. Vol. 2. P. 209. Warszawa: Pastwowe Wydawnictwo Naukowe, 1961. aur, Vladimr. 1975. Etymologie Slovanskch Pbuzenskch Termn. Praha: Academia Nakladatelstvi eskoslovensk. Schachmatov, Alexander. HAVE 1912. Zu den ltesten slavisch-keltischen Beziehungen. Archiv fr Slavische Philologie 33: 51-99. [Pp. 91-92: Slav *otc father compared to OIr. aithech farmer, peasant.] Schelesniker, Herbert. 1987. Slavisch *nevsta "Braut" und Zugehriges. In Studien zum Indogermanischen Wortschatz, herausgegeben von Wolfgang Meid. Pp. 245-248. Innsbruck: Institut fr Sprachwissenschaft der Universitt Innsbruck. Schuster-ewc, Heinz. 1961. Zur slawischen Bezeichnung der Grossmutter. Zeitschrift fr Slawistik 6: 574-578. Shapiro, Michael. 1983. Baba-Jaga: A Search for Mythopieic Origins and Affinities. International Journal of Slavic Linguistics and Poetics 28: 109-135. [A mythological derivative of the Slavic term for grandmother.] Shevelov, George Y. 1964. A Prehistory of Slavic: The Historical Phonology of Common Slavic. Heidelberg: Carl Winter. [Pp. 143, 145: on the Slavic term for husbands father.] HAVE Review: Lunt 1966. Sawski, Fr. 1947. Oboczno o : u w jenzykach slowiaskich. Slavia Occidentalis 18: 246-290. [P. 273: Slav *wnuk : wnk and its IE cognates.] HAVE Sawski, Fr. 1948. Szaber siabr. Jzyk Polski 28: 50-51. Solmsen, Felix. HAVE 1904. Russ. pserb poln. pasierb und der name der Serben und Sorben. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 37: 592-697. Stahl, P.H. 2003. Les errements de la parent. Revue des tudes Sud-Est Europennes 41 (1-4): 353363.

Stankiewicz, Edward. HAVE 1958. Slavic Kinship Terms and the Perils of the Soul. Journal of American Folklore 71 (280): 115-122. Reprinted (with changes) in: The Slavic Languages: Unity in Diversity, by Edward Stankiewicz. Pp. 453-465. Berlin: Walter de Gruyter, 1986. Stankiewicz, Edward. HAVE 1962. The Etymology of Common Slavic *vno k/* vnuk. Slavic and East European Journal 6: 28-33. [An etymology of the Slavic term for grandson.] trekelj, Karl. 1904. Zur slavischen Lehnwrterkunde. Denkschriften der Kaiserlichen Akademie der Wissenschaften. Philosophisch-Historische Klasse 50: 1-76. Wien. [Pp. 41-42: on Russ nyanya nurse, nursing mother and other kinship Lallwrter.] Trubachev, O. N. 1959. Istorija Slavjanskikh Terminov Rodstva i Nekotorykh Drevnejshikh Terminov Obshchestvennogo Stroja. Moscow: Akademiia Nauk SSSR. Review: Friedrich 1963. Turner, Paul. 1874. Slavisches Familienrecht. Strasburg and London: Trbner. 64 P. Uhlenbeck, C. C. HAVE 1894. Die Behandlung des indg. s im Slavischen. Archiv fr Slavische Philologie 16: 368-384. [Pp. 377: sestra sister.] Vaillant, Andr. 1931. Slave commun vnuk. Revue des tudes Slaves 11: 206. [Slavic term for grandson.] Vaillant, Andr. 1938. Slave m o . Revue des tudes Slaves 18: 75-77. [Slavic term for husband.] Vaillant, Andr. 1958. Grammaire Compare des Langues Slaves. T. II. Morphologie. Lyon: IAC. [Pp. 108-109: declension of the term for son; 167: the term for husbands brother in the IE context; 172: the terms for nephew and niece in the IE context.] HAVE Van Wijk, N. 1942. Aksl. matern, dtern. Zeitschrift fr Slavische Philologie 18: 32-35. HAVE

Vey, Marc. 1931. Slavic st- provenant di.e. *pt-. Bulletin de la Socit de Linguistique de Paris 32: 65-67. [Discusses Slavic terms for fathers brother and niece.] Vey, Marc. HAVE 1958. K etimologii drevnerusskogo Stribog. Voprosy iazykoznaniia 7 (3): 96-99. [Includes observations on Slav *ientry husbands brothers wife and *dter daughter.].

Vey, Marc. 1959. Compte-rendu de Etymologicky slovnik jazyka ceskho, par Vclav Machek. Bulletin de la Socit de Linguistique de Paris 54 (2): 212-214. [P. 213: on IE *pt > Slav *st in kin terms.] HAVE Vondrk, Vclav. HAVE 1906. Vergleichende Slavische Grammatik. Bd. 1. Lautlehre und Stammbildungslehre. Goettingen: Vandehoeck & Ruprecht. [P. 432: an explanation of Slav *nestera sisters daughter as derived directly from Slavic *neti-, Gen. netere, against Miklosics *nep(s)tera.] Vykypl, Bohumil, and Adolf Erhart. HAVE 2000. otc otec, Vater. In Etymologick Slovnk Jazyka Staroslovnskho. T. 10. Pp. 611-612. Praha: Akademia. Witczak, Krzysztof T. 2004. Dwa terminy prasowiaskie w ujciu diachronicznym. 1. *zly > *zlva siostra ma, szwagierka. Slavia Occidentalis 55: 133-138. Zawistowicz-Adamska, K. 1971. Systemy Krewniacze za Sowiaszczyznie w Ich Historyczno-Spoecznym Uwarunkowaniu. Wrocaw: Wyd. Zak. Nar. im. Osslinskich. Zubat, Josef. HAVE 1891. Slav. pastork. Archiv fr Slavische Philologie 12: 315-317. [A Slavic term for step-son.] Zubat, Josef. HAVE 1894. Slavische Etymologien. Archiv fr Slavische Philologie 16: 385-425. [Pp. 404-406: on Slav *nevesta bride.] OLD CHURCH SLAVIC Huntley, David. 1993. Old Church Slavonic. In The Slavonic Languages, edited by Bernard Comrie and Greville G. Corbett. Pp. 125-187. London and New York: Routledge. [P. 185: kin terms.] HAVE EAST SLAVIC BELORUSSIAN Mayo, Peter. 1993. Belorussian. In The Slavonic Languages, edited by Bernard Comrie and Greville G. Corbett. Pp. 887-946. London and New York: Routledge. [Pp. 941-942: kin terms.] BULGARIAN Arnim, B. von. 1935. Mazedonisch-bulgarische Studien. Teil 3. Neubulgarische Synonyme fr dterja Tochter. Zeitschrift fr Slavische Philologie 12: 2-16. Brunnbauer, Ulf, and Karl Kaser. 2001. Vom Nutzen der Verwandten: Soziale Netzwerke in Bulgarien (19. und 20. Jahrhundert). Wien: Bhlau. 408 P.

angova, P. 1996. Blgarski rodove i rodstveni otnoeni v Ungari. a 22 (5-6): 101-112. [Bulgarian kinship in Hungary.] Choi, Gwon-Jin. HAVE 1997. Viewpoint Shifting in Korean and Bulgarian: The Use of Kinship Terms. Pragmatics 7 (3): 389-395. [Cross-listed in KOREAN.] Georgiev, Vladimir. 1958. Vprosi na blgarskata etimologiia. Sofia: Blgarska akademiia na naukite. [P. 23: etymology of Bulgarian terms for fathers brother/fathers brothers wife.] HAVE Georgieva, E. 1959. Mama i maika. Blgarski Ezik 9: 287-289. Georgieva, I. 1971a. The Bulgarian Kinship System. Ethnologia Slavica 3: 151-157. Georgieva, I. 1971a. Rodninskite nazvanija u nas (Predvaritelno suobenie). Izvestija na Etnografskija Institut i Muzej 13: 271-285. Sofija. Georgieva, I. 1972. Terminologina sistema na krvno rodstva u Blgarite. Izvestija na Etnografskija Institut i Muzej 14: 159-173. Sofija. Georgieva, I., D. Moskova, and L. Radeva. 1971. tude sur la terminologie de parent en Bulgarie. Blgarska Akademia Naukite Etnograficheskii Institut-Muzei 13: 271-285. Golubov, I. 1963. Za proizchada na grupa nazvanija ot blgarskata narodna rodninska terminologija. Izvestija na Etnografskija Institut i Muzej 6: 301-310. Sofija. Ivanova, M. 2001. enata sinor nma. Blgarska Etnologia 27 (3): 49-65. [On relationship between parents-in-law.] Ivanova, R. 2001. Kumstvoto kato simvolino rodstvo v nai dni. Blgarska Etnologia 27 (2): 66-78. [On relationship between parents-in-law.] Karteva, Svetla. 1994. Contrastive Semantic Analysis of the Polysemantic Kinship Terms in the Bulgarian and in the Mongolian Languages. BIAMS 15 (1): 24-28. [Cross-listed in ALTAIC.] Nedlkova, D. 2001. Km vprosa za socialnata struktura na blgarskata obredna pesen. Nau. alm. na Varnenski Svoboden Univ. Seria: Istori, kultura, media 1: 76-87. Varna. [The social structure of Bulgarian ritual songs. ] Radoeva, D. 1988. Rodninskie otnosheniia v zhivota na svremenniia blgarin. Sotsiologichni Problemi 20 (2): 37-51.

Scatton, Ernest. 1993. Bulgarian. In The Slavonic Languages, edited by Bernard Comrie and Greville G. Corbett. Pp. 188-248. London and New York: Routledge. [P. 244: kin terms.] HAVE Shabashov, A. V. 1997. Niakoi teoretichny rezultati ot izsledvaneto na sistemata na rodstva u blgarite v Ukraina. In Blgarite v Severnoto Prichernomorie. Izsledovaniia i materially. T. 6. Veliko Trnovo. Todorova, Maria. 1983. Population Structure, Marriage Patterns, Family, and Household (According to Ottoman Documentary Material from Northeastern Bulgaria in the 60s of the 19th Century). tudes Balkaniques 19: 59-72. Todorova, Maria. 1993. Balkan Family Structure and the European Pattern: Demographic Developments in Ottoman Bulgaria. Washington, DC: American University Press. Reviews: Levin 1995; McCarthy 1994. Topoliska, Zuzanna. 1988. Autour de la relation possessive. In Papers Presented at the 5th International Congress of South-East European Research Studies, held in Belgrade (11-16th September 1984). Pp. 131-184. Skopje: Institute of National History. [Kin terms and body parts in Bulgarian.] Vukov, Nikolai. 2005. Identichnostta na mrtvite: Aspekti na motiva za raspoznavane na rodstvenik v blgarskiiu iunashki epos. Blgarski Folklore 1. [The Identity of the Dead: Aspects of the Motif of Recognizing a Relative in Bulgarian Folklore Epics.] CZECH and SLOVAK Hayekov, M. 1957. O pribuzenskch nzvoch bratanec, bratranec, bratenica, sesternica, sestrenica, sestrenec. Slovensk Re 22: 124-127. Hujer, O. 1915. Vyraz pro pojem rodie v jazicich inder. Listy Filologick 42: 426-433. Jireek, Hermenegild. 1863. Slovansk prvo v echach a na Morave. Praga: Karl Bellmann. [Pp.63-74: clans and clan rule. Includes the use of some kin terms and politonyms.] Konek, J. M. 1930. Slov. nevsta. Listy Filologick 57: 8-15. [The word for bride, with comparative notes on IE affinal terms.] Majtn, M. 1971. O slovenskej pribuzenskej terminologii. Kultura Slovena 8: 279-281. Otrbski, Jan. HAVE

1927. Sow. nevsta. Prace Filologiczne 11: 284-289. Short, David. 1993a. Czech. In The Slavonic Languages, edited by Bernard Comrie and Greville G. Corbett. Pp. 455-532. London and New York: Routledge. [P. 527: kin terms.] HAVE Short, David. 1993b. Slovak. In The Slavonic Languages, edited by Bernard Comrie and Greville G. Corbett. Pp. 533-592. London and New York: Routledge. [Pp. 587-588: kin terms.] HAVE Stein, Howard F. HAVE 1975. Structural Change in Slovak Kinship: An Ethnohistoric Inquiry. Ethnology 14 (1): 99-108. POLISH A. G. 1939. Jeszcze o rodzestwie u Mickiewicza i Slowackiego. Jzyk Polski 24: 89. A. G. 1939. Jeszcze o rodzen'stwie jako rodzinie, dzeiciach. Jzyk Polski 24: 127. A. G. 1945. Rodzestwo. Jzyk Polski 25: 8. Bieniak, Janusz. 1977. Clans de chevalerie en Pologne du XIIIe au XVe sicle. In Famille et Parent dans lOccident Mdival, edited by Georges Duby and Jacques Le Goff. Pp. 321-333. Rome: cole Franaise de Rome. Translated into English as Knight Clans in Medieval Poland in The Polish Nobility in the Middle Ages Brckner, Aleksander. 1927. Pokrewiestwo. In Slownik Etymologiczny Jezyka Polskiego. Pp. 427-428. Krakw: Krakowska Splka Wydawn. Dortheymerwna, F. 1930. W sprawie znaczenia wyrazu rodzestwo. Jzyk Polski 15: 180-181. Estreicher, Tadeusz. 1939. Jeszcze o rodzestwie jako rodzinie, dzieciach. Jzyk Polski 24: 127. Jurkowski, Eugeniusz, Ireneusz Lapinski, and Mieczysaw Szymczak. 1959. Slownictwo Warmii i Mazur. 5. Stopnie Pokrewiestwa ycie Spoleczne i Zawody. Wrocllaw: Zaklad Narodowy im. Ossolinskich. 99 P. [Pp. 7-34: Kinship terms.] Karowicz, J. 1885. Imiona zbiorowe polskie typu *bracia. Prace filologiczne 1: 121-124. Lo, J 1914. Nazwy stopni pokrewiestwa i powinowactwa w Dawnej Polsce. Jzyk Polski 2: 17.

Moszyski, K. 1953. Uwagi do 2. zeszytu Sownika etymologicznego jzyka polskiego Fr. Sawskiego. Dziedzic, dziedzina. Jzyk Polski 33 (5): 359-361.

HAVE

Nitsch, K. 1924. Zberanie sownictwa udowego. Jzyk Polski 9: 88-92. [Pp. 89-92: on wnuk vs. wnk grandson.] Reprinted under the title Wnuk in: Wybr Pism Polonistycznych. T. 1. Pp. 134-136. Wrocaw: Zakad Imenia Ossoliskich. HAVE Nitsch, Kazimierz. 1927. Kilka uwag o dwu wyrazach z zakresu pokrewiestwa (i czci ciala). Jzyk Polski 12: 119-122. Nitsch, Kazimierz. 1929a. Dwa szczegly z jzyka Mickiewicza 1. Rodzestwo jako rodzina. In Wybr Pism Polonistycznych. T. 1. Ss. 18-23. Wroclaw. Nitsch, Kazimierz. 1929b Jeszcze o rodzestwie jako rodzinie, dzeiciach. Jzyk Polski 14: 128. Nitsch, Kazimierz. 1945. Rodzestwo. Jzyk Polski 25: 28-29. Nitsch, Kazimierz. 1948. Jak kobieta w niewiast si przeobrazia? Jzyk Polski 28: 55. [On kin and age terms.] Obrbska, Antonina. 1929. Stryj, wuj, swak w dialektah i historii jzyka polskiego. Krakw: Nakl. Polskiej Akademii Umiejetnosci; Skl. Gl. w Ksieg. Gebethnera i Wolffa. 100 P. (Monografie Polskich Cech Gwarowych 5.) Ogarek-Czoj, Halina. 2002. Problematyka przekadu utworw literackich z jzyka koreaskiego na polski na przykadzie terminw okrlajcych pokrewiestwo. In Jzyki Orientalne w Przekadzie, edited by Anna Krasnowolska, Barbara Mkarska, and Andrzej Zaborski. Pp. 209-213. Krakw: Wydawnictwo Oddziau Polskiej Akademii Nauk. [Cross-listed in KOREAN.] Parkin, Robert. HAVE 1995. The Contemporary Evolution of Polish Kinship Terminology. Sociologus 4 (2): 140-152. Pigo, S. 1939. Jeszcze o rodzestwie u Mickiewicza i Slowackiego. Jzyk Polski 24: 89. Pine, Frances. 1995. Kinship, Work and the State in Rural Poland. Cambridge Anthropology 18 (2): 4758. Pine, Frances.

1996. Naming the House and Naming the Land: Kinship and Social Groups in the Polish Highlands. Journal of the Royal Anthropological Institute 2: 443-459. Pine, Frances. 2004. Reproducing the House: Kinship, Inheritance and Property Relations in Highland Poland. In Distinct Inheritances: Property, Family and Community in a Changing Europe, edited by Hannes Grandits and Patrick Heady. Pp. 279-296. Mnster: LIT. Rothstein, Robert A. 1993. Polish. In The Slavonic Languages, edited by Bernard Comrie and Greville G. Corbett. Pp. 686-758. London and New York: Routledge. [P. 754: kin terms.] Rysiewska, T. 2000. Struktury pokrewiestwa utrwalone na cmentarzyskach. In Ziemie Polskie w X Wieku i Ich Znaczenie w Ksztatowaniu si Nowej Mapy Europy. S. 279-301. Krakw. Schuster-ewc, Heinz. 1993. Zur Etymologie von poln. wnuk / wnk Enkel und das Problem des prothetischen (v)n- in den slawischen Sprachen. In Munera Linguistica: Ladislao Kuraszkiewicz Dedicata, edited by Mieczyslaw Basaja and Zygmunt Zagrski. Pp. 295-300. Wroclaw: Zakl. Narodowy im. Ossoliskich. Reprinted in: Das Sorbische im Slawischen Kontext: Ausgewhlte Studien von Heinz Schuster-ewc. Ss. 303-307. Bautzen: Domowina, 2000. HAVE Safarewicz, J. 1946. O kobiecie i niewiecie. Jzyk Polski 26: 154. Szymczak, Mieczyslaw. 1966. Nazwy stopni pokrewiestwa i powinowactwa rodzinnego w historii i dialektach jzyka polskiego. Warszawa: Panstwowe Wydawnitstwo. Naukowe. Szymczak, Mieczyslaw. 1969. O analogii semantyczno-slowotwrczej w polskiej terminologii rodzinnej. Prace Filologiczne 24: 119-126. Tymicki, Krzysztof. HAVE 2008. When Do Kinsmen Really Help? Examination of Cohort and Parity-Specific Kin Effects on Fertility Behavior. The Case of the Bejsce Parish Register Reconstitution Study, 17th-20th Centuries, Poland. In Kinship and Demographic Behavior in the Past, edited by Tommy Bengtsson, and Geraldine P. Mineau. Pp. 135-154. Dordrecht and London: Springer. RUSSIAN ANCIENT Black, Josef L. HAVE 1973. The State School Interpretation of Russian History: A Re-Appraisal of Its Genetic Origins. Jahrbcher fr Geschichte Osteuropas 21 (4): 509-530. [On the theory of kin rule in Early Russian history.] Krysko, Vadim B. HAVE 2002. Die Reste des elliptische Duals im Altrussischen. Historische Sprachforschung 115 (1): 128-137. [On kin terms.]

Ewers, Johann P. G. von. 1826. Das lteste Recht der Russen in Seiner Geschichtlichen Entwickelung. Dorpat: August Sticinsky; Hamburg: Friedrich Perthes. [Pp. 1-18: the beginnings of the kin rule theory.] HAVE Kennedy, Craig. HAVE 1995. Fathers, Sons, and Brothers: Ties of Metaphorical Kinship between the Muscovite Grand Princes and the Tatar Elite. In : Rhetoric of the Medieval Slavic World. Essays Presented to Edward L. Keenan on His Sixtieth Birthday by His Colleagues and Students, edited by Nancy S. Kollmann, Donald Ostrowski, Andrei Pliguzov and Daniel Rowland. Pp. 292-301. Cambridge, MA: Harvard Research Institute. (Harvard Ukrainian Srudies 19.) Kivelson, V. A. 1994. The Effects of Partible Inheritance: Gentry Families and the State in Muscovy. Russian Review 53 (2): 197-212. Reutz, Alexander von. 1829. Versuch ber die Geschichtliche Ausbildung der Russischen Staats- und RechtsVerfassung. Mitau: Steffenhagen. [One of the first hints at a later theory of kin rule in ancient Russia.] MODERN GENERAL Ankeria, Santeri. 1951. Beseda semja v russkih bilinah. Slavistina Revija 4: 87-92. Ljubljana. [The use of the familyword for wife.] Bohac, Rodney D. 1985. Peasant Inheritance Strategies in Russia. Journal of Interdisciplinary History 16: 23-42. Chasles, Pierre. 1921. La famille paysanne russe daprs le droit coutumier. Revue des tudes Slaves 1: 240-254. Comrie, Bernard. HAVE 1999. Grammatical Gender Systems: A Linguist's Assessment. Journal of Psycholinguistic Research 28 (5): 457-466. [Pp. 459-460: Russian kin terms and their gender.] Cooper, Brian 1987. Problems with the In-Laws: The Terminology of Russian Family Relationships. Journal of Russian Studies 52: 37-46. Czap, Peter. 1982. The Perennial Multiple Family Household, Mishino, Russia, 1782-1858. Journal of Family History 7: 5-26. Czap, Peter.

1983. A Large Family: The Peasants Greatest Wealth: Serf Households in Mishino, Russia, 1814-1858. In Family Forms in Historic Europe, edited by Richard Wall, Jean Robin, and Peter Laslett. Pp. 105-151. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Dickenmann, E. 1934. Untersuchungen ber die Nominalkomposition im Russischen. Leipzig. [Pp. 71-74: dvandva compounds, including kin terms.] HAVE Farnsworth, Beatrice. HAVE 1986. The Litigious Daughter-in-Law: Family Relations in Rural Russia in the Second Half of the Nineteenth Century. Slavic Review 45 (1): 49-64. Friedrich, Paul. 1963. An Evolutionary Sketch of Russian Kinship. In Symposium on Language and Culture. Proceedings of the 1962 Annual Meeting of the American Ethnological Society (1962: Washington, D.C.), edited by Viola E. Garfield, and Wallace L. Chafe. Pp. 1-26. Seattle. Friedrich, Paul W. 1966. The Linguistic Reflex of Social Change: From Tsarist to Soviet Russian Kinship. In Explorations in Sociolinguistics, edited by Stanley Lieberson. Pp. 31-57. Bloomington: Bloomington, Indiana University. Reprinted in: Language, Context and the Imagination, by Paul W. Friedrich. Pp. 168-200. Stanford: Stanford University Press, 1979. Friedrich, Paul W. 1964. Semantic Structure and Social Structure: An Instance from Russian. In Explorations in Cultural Anthropology: Essays in Honor of George Peter Murdock, edited by Ward H. Goodenough. Pp. 131-166. New York: McGraw-Hill. Reprinted in: Language, Context and the Imagination, by Paul W. Friedrich. Pp. 126-167. Stanford: Stanford University Press, 1979. Gessat-Anstett, lisabeth. HAVE 2000. Histoires et mutations. Les terminologies russes de parent. LHomme 154-155: 613-634. Gsovsky, Vladimir. 1947. Family and Inheritance in Soviet Law. Russian Review 7: 71-87. Reprinted in: Soviet Society: A Book of Readings, edited by Alex Inkeles and Kent Geiger. Pp. 530-540. Boston: Houghton Mifflin. Heady, Patrick. 2003. Kinship and Economy in the Russian Countryside: A Provisional Model. In Distinct Inheritances: Property, Family and Community in a Changing Europe, edited by H. Grandits and Patrick Heady. Pp. 257-292 Mnster: LIT. Jakobson, Roman. 1936. Beitrag zur allgemeinen Kasuslehre. Gesamtbedeutungen der russischen Kasus. Travaux du Cercle Linguistique de Prague 6. tudes Ddies au Quatrime Congrs de

Linguistes. Pp. 240-288. Prague. [P. 271: observations on the verbal aspects of Russian kin terms.] HAVE Johns, Andreas. 1998. Baba Iaga and the Russian Mother. Slavic and East European Journal 42 (1): 2136. [Cross-listed in THEORY.] Kanitschev, Valery. 2004. The Development of the Family Structure in the Tambov Region, 1800-1917. In Where the Twain Meet Again: New Results of the Dutch Russian Project on Regional Development, 1780-1917, edited by P. Kooij and Richard Paping. Groningen: Nederlands Agronomisch Historisch Instituut. Kachtchenko, Serguei, and Svetlana Smirnova. 2004. Conjugality in the Olonets Province in the Nineteenth and Early Twentieth Centuries. In Where the Twain Meet Again: New Results of the Dutch Russian Project on Regional Development, 1780-1917, edited by P. Kooij and Richard Paping. Groningen: Nederlands Agronomisch Historisch Instituut. Kovalevsky, Maxime. 1891. Modern Customs and Ancient Laws of Russia. London: David Nutt. Review: Morgan E. 1891. Excerpted under title The Modern Russian Family in: Anthropology and Early Law: Selected from the Writings of Paul Vinogradoff, Frederic W. Maitland, Frederick Pollock, Maxim Kovalevsky, Rudolf Huebner and Frederic Seebohm, edited by Lawrence Krader. Pp. 148-170. New York and London: Basic Books. Kiparsky, Valentin. 1963. Russische Historische Grammatik. Bd. I. Die Entwicklung des Lautsystems. Heidelberg: Carl Winter. [P. 87: Rus zolovka husbands sister vs. MBulg zlva as verevka vs Latv vrve.] Lewy, Ernst. 1931. Russ. mizinec usw. Zeitschrift fr Slavische Philologie 8: 129-130. [On pinky, youngest son.] Machek, Vclav. 1954. Review of Russisches Etymologisches Wrterbuch, by Max Vasmer. Slavia 23: 6367. [P. 67: on Russian step-kin terms.] HAVE Meyer, Karl H. 1923. Historische Grammatik der Russischen Sprache. Bonn: Friedrich Cohen. [P. 38: zolovka husbands sister; 106: kinship plurals in -ovja.] Mosely, Philip E. 1949. The Russian Family: Old Style and New. In The Family: Its Function and Destiny, edited by Ruth N. Anschen. Pp. 104-122. New York: Harper & Bros. Sussex, Roland. 1993. Slavonic Languages in Emigration. In The Slavonic Languages, edited by Bernard Comrie and Greville G. Corbett. Pp. 999-1036. London and New York: Routledge. [P. 1022: the decay of Dukhobor Russian kin terminological system.]

Timberlake, Alan. 1993. Russian. In The Slavonic Languages, edited by Bernard Comrie and Greville G. Corbett. Pp. 827-886. London and New York: Routledge. [Pp. 679-681: kin terms.] HAVE Vanek, Anthony L., and Regna Darnell. HAVE 1971. Canadian Doukhobor Russian in Grand Forks, B.C.: Some Social Aspects. In Linguistic Diversity in Canadian Society, edited by Regna Darnell. Pp. 267-290. Edmonton and Champaign: Linguistic Research. [Pp. 280-288: kin terminology as compared to traditional and modern Russian.] Wagner, William G. 1994. Marriage, Property, and Law in Late Imperial Russia. Oxford: Clarendon Press. Reviews: Farrow 1995; Worobec 1996. COSSACK ORourke, Shane. 2000. Warriors and Peasants: The Don Cossacks in Late Imperial Russia. Macmillan and New York: St Martin's Press. [Pp. 134-170: family and community.] Reviews: Frierson 2001; Longworth 2001; Moon 2001. UKRAINIAN Koenig, Samuel. 1937. Marriage and the Family among the Galician Ukrainians. In Studies in the Science of Society, edited by George P. Murdock. Pp. 299-318. New Haven: Yale University Press. Nahodil, O. 1958. Die berreste der Grossfamilie bei den Ukrainern in der Ostslovakei. Zeitschrift fr Slawistik 3 (1): 88-106. Shevelov, George Y. 1993. Ukrainian. In The Slavonic Languages, edited by Bernard Comrie and Greville G. Corbett. Pp. 947-998. London and New York: Routledge. [P. 993: kin terms.] SOUTH SLAVIC GENERAL Buric, Olivera, and Andjelka Zecevic. 1967. Family Authority, Marital Satisfaction, and the Social Network in Yugoslavia. Journal of Marriage and the Family 29: 325-336. Djordjevic, Tihomir R. 1924. La polyandrie chez les Slaves du Sud. Revue des tudes Slaves 4 (1-2): 101-112. Filipovi, Milenko S. 1963. Forms and Functions of Ritual Kinship among South Slavs. In Actes du VIe Congrs International des Sciences Anthropologiques et Ethnologiques. Paris, 1960. T. 2. Pp. 77-80. Paris.

Gossiaux, J.-F. 1993. La zadrouga et le systme familial sud-slave. In Production, Pouvoir et Parent dans le Monde Mditerranen de Sumer Nos Jours. Pp. 257-279. Paris. Hammel, Eugene A. 1968. Alternative Social Structures and Ritual Relations in the Balkans. Englewood Cliffs, N. J.: Prentice-Hall. [Ritual kinship (kumstvo) in Serbia and Montenegro.] Reviews: Stoianovich 1969; Rheubottom 1970. Hammel, Eugene A. 1972. The zadruga as Process. In Household and Family in Past Time, edited by Peter Laslett. Pp. 335-374. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Hammel, Eugene A., and Djordje Soc. HAVE 1973. The Lineage Cycle in Southern and Eastern Yugoslavia. American Anthropologist 75 (3): 802-814. Kotil, Ivan. HAVE 1921. Etimologichke sitnitse. B. Slovenaki punca puella iz starijeg polnica? C. Srbohrv. pnica, slovenaki plnica, pnica socrus, mater uxoris. Junoslovenski Filolog 2 (1-2): 182-184. Markotic, Vladimir. 1968. The Kinship Systems from Yugoslavia. Alberta Anthropologist 2: 44-50. HAVE

Mosely, Philip E. HAVE 1976. Adaptation for Survival: The Varzic Zadruga. Slavonic and East European Review 2 (1): 147-173. Reprinted in: Communal Families in the Balkans: The Zadruga, edited by Robert F. Byrnes. Pp. 31-57. Notre Dame, IN: University of Notre Dame Press, 1976. COMPARATIVE Markiova, Ana. 2004. Nazvi za obelezavanja rodbinskih odnosa u slovackom i srpskom jeziku. Slavistika 8: 155-163. MACEDONIAN Feleszko, Kazimierz. HAVE 1981-1982. Das Problem des Numerusparadigmas der Mazedonischen Namen fr Art und Stufe des Verwandtschaftsverhltnisses. Makedonski Jazik 32-33: 761-764. Friedman, Victor A. 1993. Macedonian. In The Slavonic Languages, edited by Bernard Comrie and Greville G. Corbett. Pp. 249-305. London and New York: Routledge. [Pp. 260, 263, 286, 293-294, 299 (list): kin terms. Especially extensive on possession.] HAVE Grossmith, C. J. 1976. The Cultural Ecology of Albanian Extended Family Households in Yugoslav Macedonia. In Communal Families in the Balkans: The Zadruga, edited by Robert F. Byrnes. Pp. 232-243. Notre Dame, IN: University of Notre Dame Press.

Hammel, Eugene A. 1980. Household Structure in Fourteenth-Century Macedonia. Journal of Family History 5: 242-273. Schubert, Violeta D. HAVE 2004. Refusing to Sing: Gender, Kinship and Patriliny in Macedonia. Australian Journal of Anthropology 16 (1): 62-75. (Special Issue: Paradigms Lost? The Study of Kinship in the 21st Century.) Schubert, Violeta D. 2005. Dynamics of Macedonian Kinship in a Mediterranean Perspective: Contextualizing Ideologies and Pragmatics of Agnation. Journal of Mediterranean Studies 15 (1): 25-49. MONTENEGRO ubrilovi, Vasa. 1957. Terminologija Plemenskog Drutva u Crnoj Gori. Beograd: Etnografski Institut. [Pp. 53-4: French summary; deals with the notions and institutions of porodica, familija, zadruga, rod, bratstvo, koleno, pleme and others.] Popovi, I. 1954. Neki Gentilni i Njima Srodni Termini kod Crnogoraca i Arbanasa. Sarajevo. (Nauno drutvo NR Bosne i Hercegovine. Radovi 2. Odjeljenje istorisko-filolokich nauka 1.) [Cross-listed in ALBANIAN.] SERBO-CROATIAN Bari, Loraine. 1966. Kinship and Community in Yugoslavia. Ph.D. dissertation. London School of Economics. Bari, Loraine. 1967. Levels of Change in Yugoslav Kinship. In Social Organization: Essays Presented to Raymond Firth, edited by Maurice Freedman. Pp. 1-24. Chicago: Aldine. Bjeleti, Marta. 1996a. Hungarizmi i germanizmi u srpskohrvatskoj terminologijisrodstva. In O leksickim pozajmljenicama: Zbornik radova sanaunog skupa Strane rei i izrazi u srpskom jeziku, sa osvrtom na istiproblem u jezicima nacionalnih manjina, Subotica 18-20. oktobar 1995. Pp. 199-208. Subotica: Gradska biblioteka Beograd, Institut za srpski jezik SANU. Bjeleti, Marta. 1996. Od devet brata krv (fitonimi i termini srodstva). Kodovi 1: 89-101. Bjeleti, Marta. 2001. Bele pcele. Kodovi 6: 106-118. [English abstract, p. 163; white bees - from an apicultural term for swarm of abyswarm to a kinship term for descendants of the fourth generation.] Bona, V. 1960. Strukturwandlungen der jugoslawischen Familie. Klner Zeitschrift fr Soziologie et Sozialpsychologie 12: 421-437.

Browne, Wayles. 1993. Serbo-Croat. In The Slavonic Languages, edited by Bernard Comrie and Greville G. Corbett. Pp. 306-387. London and New York: Routledge. [Pp. 380-382: kin terms; 370: kin terms as permitting dative possessors.] Cuisenier, Jean. 1974. Lorganisation familiale traditionnelle en Yougoslavie et ses variations. In Simpozijum: Etnoloko Prouavanje Savremenih Promena u Narodnoj Kulturi. Pp. 137160. Beograd. (Srpska Akademija Nauka i Umetnosti. Etnografski Institut. Posebna Izdanja 15.) upurdija, Branko. 1981. Drushtveni zhivot na salashima u okolini Subotitse. [La vie sociale des fermiers dans la rgion de Subotica.] Zbornik Radova Enografskog Instituta 13: 1-42. Beograd. [Pp. 10-17: kinship, zadruga, marriage; 40-41: summary in French.] Divac, Zorica. 1984. Ispitivane poroditse i braka u okolini Beograda. [Ltude de la famille et de lunion conjugale dans les environs de Belgrade.] Zbornik Radova Enografskog Instituta 14-16: 85100. Beograd. Djordjevic, Tihomir R. 1907. Bigamija i poligamija kod Srba. Srpski Knjizhevni Glasnik, November 1: 662-672. Drljaa, Duan. 1984. Promene u braku i poroditsy u prigradskim selima Pirota. [Transformations familiales et conjugales dans les environs de Pirot.] Zbornik Radova Enografskog Instituta 14-16: 415424. Beograd. Dunji, Olivera. 1996. Termin za svojtu u eljinskoj upi. Serpski Jezik 1 (1-2): 316-323. Ernout, M. A. HAVE 1953. Expos. Bulletin de la Socit de Linguistique de Paris 49: XXVII-XXIX. [P. XXIX: on Serb punica husbands mother.] Fancev, Franjo. 1907. Beitrge zur serbokroatischen Dialektologie. Archiv fr Slavische Philologie 29: 305-389. [Pp. 308: on some kin terms, including borrowings.] HAVE Filipovi, Milenko S. 1960. Brak izmedju prvih rodjaka (bint amm) kod srpskohrvatskih muslimana. Sociologija 2: 55-66. Belgrade. [First-cousin marriage among Serbo-Chroatian Moslems.] Filipovi, Milenko S. 1963b. Srodstvo po mleku u juhih slovena. Etnoloki Pregled 5: 33-65. Belgrade. Filipovi, Milenko S. 1964. Simbolina adopcija. Rad Vojvodanskih Muzeja 12-13: 37-42. Novi Sad. Filipovi, Milenko S. 1965. Symbolic Adoption among the Serbs. Ethnology 4: 66-71.

Filipovi, Milenko S. 1976. Zadruga (Kucna Zadruga). In Communal Families in the Balkans: The Zadruga, edited by Robert F. Byrnes. Pp. 268-279. Notre Dame, IN: University of Notre Dame Press. Foley, John M. 1992. Synthetic Kinship in Serbo-Croatian Epic. In De Gustibus: Essays for Alan Renoir, edited by John M. Foley. 201-215. New York and London: Garland. [Fictive kinship.] Freidenberg, M. M. 1969. Kin Groups in Dalmatian Croatia, 11th-16th Centuries. Soviet Anthropology and Archaeology 7: 29-40. Halpern, Joel M. 1956a. Social and Cultural Change in a Serbian Village. Ph.D. dissertation. Columbia University. 578 P. Halpern, Joel M. 1956a. Social and Cultural Change in a Serbian Village. New Haven: HRAF. 619 P. (Pre-Publication Monograph, HRAF-25.) Halpern, Joel M. 1958. A Serbian Village. New York: Columbia University Press. [Pp. 134-165: Social Organization, including marriage, kinship as well as kin and affinal terminology.] Review: Denitch 1969. Halpern, Joel M. 1974. Town and Countryside in Serbia in the Nineteenth-Century Social and Household Structure as Reflected in the Census of 1863. In Household and Family in Past Times, edited by Peter Laslett. Pp. 401-427. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Halpern, Joel M., and Barbara Kerewsky Halpern. 1972. A Serbian Village in Historical Perspective. New York, etc.: Holt, Rinehart and Winston. 132 P. [Pp. 22-25: family relations and kin terminology.] Review: Tomasevich 1974. Halpern, Joel M., and Richard A. Wagner. HAVE 1984. Time and Social Structure: A Yugoslav Case Study. Journal of Family History 9: 229-244. Hammel, Eugene A. HAVE 1957. Serbo-Croatian Kinship Terminology, with an appendix on Albanian Terms. Kroeber Anthropological Society 16: 45-75. [Cross-listed in ALBANIAN.] Hammel. Eugene A. 1969. Economic Change, Social Mobility, and Kinship in Serbia. Southwestern Journal of Anthropology 25: 188-197. Reprinted in: Readings in Kinship and Social Structure, edited by Nelson Graburn. Pp. 126-131. New York: Harper & Row, 1971.

Hammel, Eugene A. 1972. The Zadruga as Process. In Household and Family in Past Time, edited by Peter Laslett. Pp. 335-373. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Hammel, Eugene A. 1976. Some Medieval Evidence on the Serbian Zadruga: A Preliminary Analysis of the Chrysobulls of Decani. In Communal Families in the Balkans: The Zadruga, edited by Robert F. Byrnes. Pp. 100-117. Notre Dame, IN: University of Notre Dame Press. Hammel, Eugene A. 1984. The Yugoslav Family in the Modern World: Adaptation to Change. Journal of Family History 9: 217-228. Hammel, Eugene A., and Djordje Soc. 1973. The Lineage Cycle in Southern and Eastern Yugoslavia. American Anthropologist 75 (3): 802-814. Hammel, Eugene A., and Charles Yarbrough. 1974. Preference and Recall in Serbian Cousinship: Power and Kinship Ideology. Journal of Anthropological Research 30: 95-115. Hraste, Mate. 1956. Nazivi za rodbinu i svojtu. Jezik: asopis za Kulturu Hrvatskogo Knjievnog Jezika 1 (5): 1-4. Ivanievi, Jovan F. 1906. Imenik narodnijeh naziva rodbine i srodbine. Sarajevo. (s.n.) 41 P. Ivanievi, Jovan F. 1931. Narodni Nazivi Podbine i Srodbine. Sarajevo: Piscevo. 45 P. 2d edition: Saraevo: Drzavna Stamparija. 69 P. Jovanovi, Milka. 1984. Promene u braku i poroditsy u nekim naselima u okolini Leskovtsa. [Transformations familiales et conjugales dans les environs de Leskovac.] Zbornik Radova Enografskog Instituta 14-16: 303-318. Beograd. Kerewsky Halpern, Barbara. 1977. Genealogy as Genre. In Selected Papers on a Serbian Village: Social Structure as Reflected by History, Demography and Oral Tradition, edited by Barbara Kerewsky Halpern and Joel M. Halpern. Pp. 141-164. Amherst, MA: University of Massachusetts. (Department of Anthropology, University of Massachusetts, Research Reports 17.) Kocher, Margaret. 1967. Second Person Pronouns in Serbo-Croatian. Language 43 (3, pt. 1): 725-741. [Forms of address in kinship relations.] Koprivica, Branko. 1998. Rodbinska terminologija nikikog govornog podruzja. Niki: CID. 168P. Kuanda, Dubravko. 1985. Some Thoughts on the Dative of Possession. Zbornik Pedagokog Fakulteta.

Humanistike i Drutvene Znanosti 1: 37-54. [Includes kin terms as permitting dative possessors.] Mandi, O. 1952. Bratstvo u ran-srednjevjekovnoj Hrvatskoj. Historiski zbornik 3-4: 225-225. Zagreb. [On the phratry among the Croats.] Milicic, Bojka. 1995. The Structure of Cross-Sibling Relations: A Mediterranean Case. Journal of Mediterranean Studies 5 (1): 129-143. Milicic, Bojka. 1998. The Grapevine Forest: Kinship, Status, and Wealth in a Mediterranean Community. In Kinship, Networks, and Exchange: New Directions in Kinship Studies, edited by T. Schweizer and Douglas White. Pp. 15-35. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. Muti, M., and I. Martinovi. 1894. I opet rod, rodbina, svojta. kolski vjestnik: 631-635. Nemani, D. 1883. akavisch-kroatische Studien. Sitzungberichte der Philosophisch-Historischen Classe der Kaiserlichen Akademie der Wissenschaften 104: 363-428; 505-572. Wien. [Pp. 401, 542: attestation of two rare forms for nephew and niece.] HAVE Radovanovi, Miljana. 1984. Poroditsa, brak, srodstvo i srodnichki odnosi y selima u neposrednoj okolini Novog Pazara. [La famille, le mariage, la parent et les relations familiales dans les environs de Novi Pazar.] Zbornik Radova Enografskog Instituta 14-16: 527-542. Beograd. Raki, Radomir D. 1991. Terminologija Srodstva u Srba. Beograd: Filozofski fakultet. (Etnoantropoloki problemi, monografije 13.) Stojanevi, Vidosava. 1980. Sovremene promene u porodnichnom zhivotu i obichajima, braku, srodnichkim odnosima i drushtvenom obichajnom zhivotu u prigradskim selima Krushevtsa. [Changements contemporains dans les relations de parent traditionnelles, dans la mariage, la vie familiale et les coutumes sociales.] Zbornik Radova Enografskog Instituta 10: 111-134. Beograd. Stojanevi, Vidosava. 1984. Sovremene promene u traditsionalnim srodnichkim odnosima, braku, porodnichnom i drushtvenom obichajnom zhivotu. [Transformations modernes du mode de vie et des coutumes familiales et conjugales, des relations familiales et la vie sociale dans les banlieues de Kruevac.] Zbornik Radova Enografskog Instituta 14-16: 169-200. Beograd. Tanocki, Franjo. 1983. Rjecnik Rodbinskih Naziva. Osijek: Revija Izdavacki Centar Radnickog Sveucilista Bozidar Maslaric. Vucinich, Wayne. 1976. A Zadruga in Bileca Rudine. In Communal Families in the Balkans: The Zadruga, edited by Robert F. Byrnes. Pp. 162-186. Notre Dame, IN: University of Notre Dame Press

SLOVENE Bjeleti, Marta. 1996. Od devet brata krv (fitonimi i termini srodstva). Kodovi Slovenskih Kultura 1: 89-101. Beograd. [Nine brothers blood - phytonyms and kinship terms.] Priestly, T. M. S. 1993. Slovene. In The Slavonic Languages, edited by Bernard Comrie and Greville G. Corbett. Pp. 388-451. London and New York: Routledge. [P. 446: kin terms.] HAVE WEST SLAVIC CASSUBIAN Stone, Gerald. 1993. Cassubian. In The Slavonic Languages, edited by Bernard Comrie and Greville G. Corbett. Pp. 759-794. London and New York: Routledge. [Pp. 791-792: kin terms.] POLABIAN Polaski, Kazimierz. 1993. Polabian. In The Slavonic Languages, edited by Bernard Comrie and Greville G. Corbett. Pp. 795-824. London and New York: Routledge. [Pp. 822-823: kin terms.] SORBIAN Fasske, H., H. Jentsch, und S. Michalik. (eds.) 1982. Sorbischer Sprachatlas. T. 8. Terminologie der Sachgebiete: Verwandtschaft, Berufe und Gesellschaft. Bautzen: LND. Review: Schuster-ewc 1984. HAVE

Schuster-ewc, Heinz. HAVE 1964. Serbo-uycka terminologia pokrewiestwa przyrodniego. Prace Filologiczne 18 (2): 213-218. Stone, Gerald. 1993. Sorbian. In The Slavonic Languages, edited by Bernard Comrie and Greville G. Corbett. Pp. 593-685. London and New York: Routledge. [Pp. 679-681: kin terms.] Stieber, Zdzislaw. 1934. Stosunki pokrewiestva jzykw luyckich. Krakw: Gebethner & Wolff. 98 P. wela, Bogumi. 1952. Grammatik der Niedersorbischen Sprache. Domowina: Bautzen. [Pp. 101-103: kin terminology.] HAVE THRACIAN Boadjiev, Dimitr. 2000. Les Relations Ethno-Linguistiques en Thrace et en Msie pendant lpoque Romaine. Sofia: Presses Universitaires St. Kliment Ohridski. [Pp. 83-121: the attestation and analysis of brutes as daughter-in-law; young woman, wife.]

Georgiev, Vladimir I. 1977. Trakite i tekhnijat ezik. Sophia: Bulgarska Akademija Naukite. [Pp. 201, 231-233: attested kin terms.] HAVE Hamp, Eric P. 1982. Indo-European Notes. 3. Thracian -(), -. Indogermanische Forschungen 87: 73-74. [On the terms for children.] TOCHARIAN Adams, Douglas Q. HAVE 1978. Ablaut and Umlaut in the Tocharian Vowel System. Journal of the American Oriental Society 98 (4): 446-450. [On tkacer daughter, pacer father, procer brother.] Adams, Douglas Q. HAVE 1998. Review of On the Chronology of Sound Changes in Tocharian. Volume I: From Proto-Indo-European to Proto-Tocharian, by Don Ringe. Language 74 (3): 615-617. [Pp. 615-616: on the problems with vowels in Tocharian words for brother, father and mother.] Benveniste, mile. 1936. Tocharien et Indo-Europen. In Germanen und Indogermanen: Volkstum, Sprache, Heimat, Kultur. Festschrift fr Herman Hirt, herausgegeben von Helmut Arnitz. Ss. 227240. Heidelberg: Carl Winter. [P. 236: Toch and IE words for son.] Brock, Nadia von. 1977. Remarques sur le vocalisme du tokharien. Zeitschrift fr Vergleichende Sprachforschung 91: 77-92. [Pp. 86, 90-91: on ckcar, tkcer daughter.] HAVE

HAVE

op, Bojan. 1975. Miscellanea Tocharologica I. In Univerza v Ljubljani. Filozofska fakulteta, Oddelek za primerjalno jezikoslovje in orientalistiko, Series Comparative I. Ljubljana. [Pp. 30-35: on Tocharian words for son.] Evangelisti, Enzo. 1950. I modi di articolazione indoeuropei nelle palatalizzazioni tocariche. Ricerche Linguistiche 1: 132-140. [P. 135: basic kin terms.] Frnkel, Ernst. 1935. Zur tocharischen Grammatik. Indogermanische Forschungen 50: 1-20, 97-108. [P. 8: on the Toch words for son and their Greek parallel; 9, 97: on Toch daughter; 17: IE *swe- own and kin terms.] HAVE Hackstein, Olaf. 2003. Review of A Dictionary of Tocharian B, by Douglas Q. Adams. Indo-Iranian Journal 46 (2): 177-189. [P. 187: on Tocharian procer brother.] HAVE Hilmarsson, Jrundur. 1984. Toch. A se, B soy son = Gk. son. Another Mirage? Indogermanische Forschungen 89: 29-38. Hilmarsson, Jrundur. 1989. The Dual Forms of Nouns and Pronouns in Tocharian. Reykjavik: Tocharian and Indo-European Studies Supplementary Series 1. [Pp. 50-52: on pacere fathers.]

Hilmarsson, Jrundur. 1996. Materials for a Tocharian Historical and Etymological Dictionary, edited by Alexander Lubotsky and Gurn rhallsdttir. Reykjavik: Malvisindastofnun Haskola Islands. [Pp. 157-159: terms for woman and wife.] HAVE Klingenschmitt, Gert. 1994. Das Tocharische in indogermanischer Sicht. In Tocharisch. Akten der Fachtagung der Indogermanischen Gesellschaft, Berlin, September 1990, herausgegeben von Bernfried Schlerath. Ss. 310-411. Reykjavik: Malvisindastofnun Haskola Islands. [Pp. 371, 377, 378, 379: aspects of kin terms.] HAVE Kortlandt, Frederik. HAVE 1988. The Tocharian Word for Woman. Tocharian and Indo-European Studies 2: 77-79. Lane, George S. 1945. The Tocharian Palatalization (I). Language 21 (1): 18-26. [Pp. 19: Toch daughter; 23, 26: Toch sister.] HAVE

Lane, George S. HAVE 1960. The Indo-European Labiovelars in Tocharian. In Indogermanica: Festschrift fr Wolfgang Krause zum 65. Geburtstage am 18. September 1960. Ss. 72-79. Heidelberg: Carl Winter. [Pp. 73, 74, 78: on the term for woman, wife.] Lvi, Sylvain, and Antoine Meillet. 1914. Remarques sur les formes grammaticales de quelques textes en Tokharien B. Mmoires de la Socit de Linguistique de Paris 18: 1-33. [P. 25, n. 1: the identification of no woman as related to IE *gwenH- wife, woman.] Meillet, Antoine. 1911-1912. Les noms de nombre en Tokharien B. Mmoires de la Socit de Linguistique de Paris 17: 281-294. [P. 286: Tokh soya ~ Gk uios son.] Naert, Pierre. 1964. Contacts lexicaux entre le tokharien et ses voisins non-indoeuropens. Orbis 13 (1): 253-259. [P. 255-256: A kuli, B kl(y)iye femme as borrowed from Jugan Ostyak kli wifes sister; wife's brothers daughter. The nostratic origin of the term is reiterated, comp. Lat gls.] Pedersen, Holger. 1925. Le Goupement des Dialectes Indo-Europens. Kbenhavn: Andr. Fred. Hst & Sn. (Det Kongelige Danske Videnskabernes Selskab, Historisk-filologiske Meddelelser 11 (3).) [Pp. 38-39: on a couple of Tocharian kin terms.] HAVE Poucha, Pavel. HAVE 1930. Tocharica. I. Archiv Orientln 2: 300-326. [Pp. 322, 325-326: on some kin terms.] Poucha, Pavel. HAVE 1931. Tocharica. IV. Archiv Orientln 3: 162-188. [P. 166: on kin terms in -ter.] Poucha, Pavel. 1940. O tochartin ili jazyku riu. Listy Filologick 67: 197-217. [P. 200: Toch terms for brother and daughter in comparison with other IE languages.]

Reuter, J. N. 1934. Tocharisch und Kutschanisch. Journal de la Socit Finno-Ougrienne 27: 123. [Pp. 8-9: on attested Tocharian kin terms in the IE perspective.] HAVE Ringe, Don. 1987. On the Prehistory of Tocharian B Accent. In Studies in Memory of Warren Cowgill, edited by Calvert Watkins. Pp. 254-269. Berlin: Mouton de Gruyter. [Pp. 264265: on the term for sister.] Ringe, Donald A. 1996. On the Chronology of Sound Changes in Tocharian. New Haven: American Oriental Society. [Pp. 61-63: on the Toch terms for son.] HAVE See also Adams 1998. Ringe, Don. 1998. Schwa-Rounding and the Chronology of Sound Changes in Tocharian A. In Mr Curad: Studies in Honor of Calvert Watkins, edited by Jay Jasanoff, H. Craig Melchert and Lisi Oliver. Pp. 611-618. Innsbruck: Institut fr Sprachwissenschaft. [P. 616: on the term for sister.] Sapir, Edward. 1936. Tibetan Influences on Tocharian I. 1. Tocharian Heart Father. Language 12: 259261. Reprinted in: Selected Writings of Edward Sapir in Language, Culture and Personality, edited by David G. Mandelbaum. Pp. 273-275. Berkeley and Los Angeles: University of California Press. Schindler, Johem. 1977. Tocharische Mizsellen. B s,er, A s,ar Schwester. Indogermanische Forschungen 72 (3): 249. HAVE Schmidt, Klaus T. 1980. Zu Stand und Aufgaben der etymologischen Forschung auf dem Gebiete des Tocharischen. In Lautgeschichte und Etymologie. Akten der VI. Fachtagung der Indogermanischen Gesellschaft, Wien, 24. 29. September 1978, herausgegeben von Manfred Mayrhofer, Martin Peters und Oskar E. Pfeiffer. Ss. 394-411. Wiesbaden: Ludwig Reichert. [Pp. 409-410: terms for woman and wife.] HAVE Thomas, Werner. HAVE 1988. Tocharisch B orotse-pacere Grosseltern. Historische Sprachforschung 101: 155165. Van Windekens, Albert J. HAVE 1938. Le tmoignage tocharien pour une alternance sw: s, w initiale des mots. Bulletin de la Socit de Linguistique de Paris 41: 203-207. [P. 203, 205: Toch sister.] Van Windekens, Albert. J. 1941. Recherches sur letymologie du Tokharien. 3. A tl homme (VIR). Revue Belge de Philologie et dHistoire 20: 107-110. [P. 110: Toch tl man and IE atta father.]

Van Windekens, Albert J. HAVE 1947. Observations sur quelques mots tokhariens. 1. A. pcar, B. pcer pre et A. ckcar, B tkcer fille. Revue des tudes Indo-Europennes 4: 289-290. Van Windekens, Albert J. HAVE 1950. Notes Tokhariennes. 2. A s,ar, B s,er soeur. Archiv Orientln 18 (1-2): 521-522. Van Windekens, Albert J. HAVE 1960a. Contacts linguistiques anou-tokhariens. 2. Termes se rapportant lhomme et la famille. b) An. amak- et tokh. B ammakki. Anthropos 55: 757. [Cross-listed in AINU.] Van Windekens, Albert J. 1960b. tudes dtymologie et de grammaire compare. Lingua Posnaniensis 8: 30-43. [Pp. 40-43: on the terms for son.] HAVE Van Windekens, Albert J. HAVE 1962. Recherches sur le vocabulaire tokharien. 5. Mots clins communs au tokharien, au gilyak et lanou. Orbis 11 (1): 345-346. [On Toch diminutives appakke and ammakki and their Nivkh parallels.] Van Windekens, Albert. J. 1964. tudes de morphologie tokharienne I: Les origines indo-europennes des noms en o (B). Orbis 13 (1): 281-298. [Pp. 284, 291, 295, 296, 297, 298: B ana wife and its IE cognates.] Van Windekens, Albert J. HAVE 1965. Deux mots tokhariens dorigine non-indo-europenne. 2. A s,ar, B s,er soeur. Orbis 14 (1): 139-140. Van Windekens, Albert J. HAVE 1974. Domaine tokharien. Sur deux termes tokhariens dorigine Prkrit. Orbis 23 (2): 525. [On the terms for son.] Van Windekens, Albert J. 1976. Le Tokharien Confront avec les Autres Langues Indo-Europennes. Vol. 1. La Phonetique et le Vocabulaire. Louvain: Centre International de Dialectologie Gnrale. [Pp. 251, 263-264, 351, 387, 424-425, 449: daughter, sister, son, brother, father, mother.] HAVE Van Windekens, Albert J. 1979. Le Tokharien Confront avec les Autres Langues Indo-Europennes. Vol. 2. La Morphologie Nominale. Louvain: Centre International de Dialectologie Gnrale. [Pp. The morphology of kin terms as r-stems.] HAVE Van Windekens, Albert J. HAVE 1988. Notes de grammaire compare indo-europenne. IV. La structure phontique de A se, B soy fils. In Studia Indogermanica et Slavica: Festgabe fr Werner Thomas zum 65. Geburtstag, herausgegeben von Peter Kosta. Ss. 111-115. Mnchen: O. Sagner. Winter, Werner. 1962. Nominal and Pronominal Dual in Tocharian. Language 38 (2): 111-134. [Pp. 123, 124, 127: dual number in Tocharian and other IE kin terms.] Winter, Werner. HAVE

1985. Tocharian B soy, A se and Related Forms. Journal of the American Oriental Society 105: 259-264. [Term for son.] Winter, Werner. HAVE 2003. Review of A Dictionary of Tocharian B, by Douglas Q. Adams. Journal of the American Oriental Society 123 (1): 202-208. [Nominative vs. oblique forms of kin terms; elementary kin terms.] VENETIAN Lejeune, Michel. 1973. The Venetic Vocabulary of Relations Between Persons. Journal of Indo-European Studies 1: 345-351. Lejeune, Michel. HAVE 1974. Manuel de la Langue Vnte. Heidelberg: Carl Winter. [P. 335: attested kin terms.]

Das könnte Ihnen auch gefallen